summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/66030-0.txt8769
-rw-r--r--old/66030-0.zipbin145833 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66030-h.zipbin304611 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66030-h/66030-h.htm11298
-rw-r--r--old/66030-h/images/cover.jpgbin150679 -> 0 bytes
8 files changed, 17 insertions, 20067 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..f67efb2
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #66030 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/66030)
diff --git a/old/66030-0.txt b/old/66030-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index d26a98f..0000000
--- a/old/66030-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,8769 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg eBook, A Lad of Mettle, by Nat Gould
-
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-
-
-
-Title: A Lad of Mettle
-
-
-Author: Nat Gould
-
-
-
-Release Date: August 10, 2021 [eBook #66030]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-
-***START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A LAD OF METTLE***
-
-
-E-text prepared by Demian Katz, Craig Kirkwood, and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team (http://www.pgdp.net) from page images generously made
-available by Villanova University Digital Library
-(https://digital.library.villanova.edu/)
-
-
-
-Note: Images of the original pages are available through
- Villanova University Digital Library. See
- https://digital.library.villanova.edu/Item/vudl:279070
-
-
-Transcriber’s note:
-
- Text enclosed by underscores is in italics (_italics_).
-
- A detailed transcriber’s note is at the end of the book.
-
-
-
-
-
-A LAD OF METTLE
-
-
- * * * * *
-
-NAT GOULD’S SPORTING NOVELS
-
-_Crown 8vo., Picture Boards._
-
- THE DOUBLE EVENT
- RUNNING IT OFF
- JOCKEY JACK
- HARRY DALE’S JOCKEY
- BANKER AND BROKER
- THROWN AWAY
- STUCK UP
- ONLY A COMMONER
- THE MINERS’ CUP
- THE MAGPIE JACKET
- WHO DID IT?
- HORSE OR BLACKSMITH?
- NOT SO BAD AFTER ALL
- SEEING HIM THROUGH
-
-_Also, uniform with the above_,
-
- ON AND OFF THE TURF IN AUSTRALIA
- TOWN AND BUSH
- THE DOCTOR’S DOUBLE
- A LAD OF METTLE
-
- * * * * *
-
-
-A LAD OF METTLE
-
-by
-
-NAT GOULD
-
-Author of ‘The Double Event,’ etc.
-
-
-
-
-
-
-London
-George Routledge and Sons, Limited
-Broadway, Ludgate Hill
-
-
-
-To MY SONS.
-
-
-
-
-CONTENTS
-
-
- CHAPTER PAGE
-
- I. BULLY RAKES TAKEN DOWN 9
-
- II. IN THE CRICKET-FIELD 19
-
- III. A CRITICAL MOMENT 28
-
- IV. LEAVING SCHOOL 38
-
- V. A FURIOUS STORM 46
-
- VI. THE ‘DISTANT SHORE’ 55
-
- VII. WHAT THE MORNING BROUGHT FORTH 64
-
- VIII. IN WAL JESSOP’S COTTAGE 74
-
- IX. UP COUNTRY 83
-
- X. A WILD SCENE 92
-
- XI. YACKA THE BLACK 101
-
- XII. IN SEARCH OF ADVENTURES 110
-
- XIII. BY THE LAGOON 119
-
- XIV. ON THE OVERLAND LINE 129
-
- XV. THROUGH THE RANGES 139
-
- XVI. AFTER THE FIGHT 148
-
- XVII. WONDROUS CAVERNS 158
-
- XVIII. THE WHITE SPIRIT 167
-
- XIX. THE FORCES OF NATURE 176
-
- XX. THE RETURN TO YANDA 186
-
- XXI. AN EXCITING CHASE 195
-
- XXII. TIME FLIES 204
-
- XXIII. AN EVENTFUL NIGHT 214
-
- XXIV. HOME AGAIN 223
-
- XXV. THE SCENE AT LORD’S 232
-
- XXVI. AN UPHILL GAME 241
-
- XXVII. THE CAPTAIN OR HIS GHOST 250
-
- XXVIII. A STRANGE STORY 259
-
- XXIX. WARLIKE SPORTS 269
-
- XXX. GOOD-BYE TO AUSTRALIA 278
-
- * * * * *
-
-A LAD OF METTLE
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I. BULLY RAKES TAKEN DOWN.
-
-
-Lessons were over for the day, and the boys at Redbank School came
-running with shouts and whoops of joy into the playing-fields. They
-were like young colts freed from restraint for a few hours, and eager
-to make the most of their liberty.
-
-Redbank was the home of brilliant cricketers and all-round athletes.
-Many a noted cricketer had received his first lessons in the great game
-on Redbank cricket ground. The lads were proud of the men who played in
-the All England eleven, and who were never slow to acknowledge that to
-Redbank they owed what prowess they possessed.
-
-The Redbank lads were born runners, so many an old hand training them
-for races vowed. Something in the atmosphere of Redbank seemed to make
-the lads athletic. Perhaps the traditions attached to the school had
-much to do with this, for lads are very proud, and justly so, of the
-feats of scholars who have preceded them.
-
-But Redbank was not merely a training ground for famous athletes.
-Redbank scholars had taken high honours at the Universities, and
-afterwards distinguished themselves in various walks of life. The
-Bishop of Flaxham was proud of the fact that he was ‘grounded’ at
-Redbank. He was an eloquent and distinguished man, an ornament to the
-Church, and a brilliant writer of readable books.
-
-When the Bishop of Flaxham came to Redbank, and preached in the chapel,
-the lads with difficulty restrained themselves from giving him a hearty
-cheer at the end of his address. The Bishop knew how to talk to boys,
-and never forgot that at one period of his life he had been bored with
-wearisome sermons about the world, the flesh, and the devil, which
-he did not in the least understand. So he took warning, and told the
-lads to run the race set before them much in the same manner as they
-would a hundred yards sprint, each striving to win the prize and do the
-distance in even time. The Bishop believed that well-trained muscles
-and a healthy body were conducive to an active and moral state of mind.
-The Redbank lads gloried in the fact that the Bishop of Flaxham had
-been one of themselves.
-
-Field-Marshal Lord Kingcraft was a Redbank boy, and his warlike deeds
-and bravery were celebrated in song on the fly-leaves of school-books,
-and occasionally on the panels of doors and the insides of desks.
-
- ‘Lord Kingcraft’s won the great V.C.,
- May Redbank do the same for me.’
-
-was discovered carved, evidently with much labour and pains, on the lid
-of a desk at which the celebrated Field-Marshal formerly worried his
-brains over Euclid and algebra.
-
-This inscription was pointed out to the brave leader of men when he
-visited his old school, and he never forgot it. He hoped, from the
-bottom of his heart, the lad who carved it would one day win his V.C.
-
-Redbank was represented in the navy and in the diplomatic world, and
-one day it was hoped a Redbank lad would become Prime Minister.
-
-So, with all these successful public men constantly before them as an
-example, the lads of Redbank felt bound to endeavour to do great deeds,
-and win renown for themselves and their school.
-
-The head-master of Redbank was the Rev. Henry Hook, and it was
-universally acknowledged that no more suitable man could have been
-selected. He ruled his lads with a firm hand, but he was no tyrant or
-hard task-master. The boys knew he meant what he said, and that his
-word to them could be implicitly relied upon. He had confidence in his
-boys, and they returned it.
-
-When Edgar Foster came to Redbank School he was sixteen, small for his
-age, but muscular and active. At this time there were between two and
-three hundred scholars at Redbank, and naturally out of such a number
-there were several lads whose absence would not have been regretted.
-
-Young Edgar Foster soon became popular. For one thing, his father was
-a well-known man, who had worthily upheld the honour of Redbank in the
-cricket field, and had captained the All England eleven. This was quite
-sufficient to give Edgar a standing in the school.
-
-Bullies exist in almost every walk of life, and a few of this
-undesirable species were to be found at Redbank. The leader of these
-bullies was a lad named Raymond Rakes--‘Bully Rakes’ as he was
-generally called. He was a big, hulking fellow, powerful and strong,
-but deficient in courage, as bullies generally are.
-
-There was nothing manly about Bully Rakes, and the boys knew it. So
-far he had held his own, for he was the biggest boy in the school. Any
-new scholar he at once endeavoured to inspire with awe, and generally
-succeeded.
-
-Our story commences about a week after Edgar Foster’s arrival at
-Redbank. The boys were bounding out of school and soon spread over
-the fields in groups; the bulk of them, however, went towards the
-cricketing nets.
-
-Edgar Foster had not had any opportunity of showing what he could
-do with the bat. He was a lad who did not push himself forward, but
-quietly bided his time, knowing full well that when that time came he
-would not be found wanting. The boy is father to the man, and it will
-be gathered from this story of a lad of mettle that Edgar Foster acted
-in this wise during many trying periods of his after-life.
-
-Edgar watched the practice with keen and critical eyes. His father had
-taught him how to handle a bat as only a skilful player can.
-
-‘Here, Foster, take a turn,’ said the lad who had just finished
-batting. ‘We’ve not had the chance of seeing how you shape yet.’
-
-‘I’m ready,’ said Edgar, pulling off his coat and eagerly holding out a
-hand for the bat.
-
-‘It’s my turn,’ said Bully Rakes. ‘Just you drop that bat, or I’ll make
-you.’
-
-Edgar Foster looked up at the big fellow standing before him, but he
-did not flinch, nor did he drop the bat.
-
-The boys crowded round, anticipating a row, and anxious to see how the
-new-comer would shape with Rakes.
-
-‘If it is your turn,’ said Edgar quietly, ‘I will give you the bat. If
-it is not your turn, under no circumstances will I drop the bat.’
-
-The tones were firm, there was no flinching, and the lad looked
-determined.
-
-Bully Rakes was not accustomed to be addressed in this manner. He eyed
-Edgar scornfully, and said:
-
-‘I shall have to teach you manners. I am the best judge of whose turn
-it is. Will you drop that bat?’
-
-Edgar turned to the lad who had handed him the bat, and said:
-
-‘Do you bat in turns? Has Rakes any right to bat before me?’
-
-Courage is infectious. Will Brown had never defied Rakes before, but he
-felt he must back up his plucky schoolmate.
-
-‘Rakes has no right to bat here at all,’ he replied. ‘He’s been batting
-at the other net, and has just finished his turn.’
-
-Edgar Foster made no further remark, but walked coolly to the wicket.
-
-This defiance of his demands gave Bully Rakes a shock. He knew if he
-allowed Foster to bat his hold over the boys would be gone. He strode
-up to Edgar and said savagely:
-
-‘Give me the bat, or I’ll thrash you!’
-
-‘Had you asked me politely at first, I should probably have handed
-you the bat,’ said Edgar. ‘I shall not do so now. As for thrashing
-me--well, that has to be decided.’
-
-‘Bravo, Foster!’ shouted several lads.
-
-‘Punch his head, Rakes,’ said one of the bully’s toadies.
-
-‘Give me that bat, or fight me!’ shouted Rakes in a passion.
-
-‘Shame!’ shouted the lads.
-
-Rakes was much taller and more powerfully built than Edgar.
-
-Edgar Foster handed the bat to Will Brown, and said:
-
-‘Come on, I’m ready.’
-
-Bully Rakes had his coat off, and the boys, seeing a fight about to
-take place, formed a ring. They would have given much to see Bully
-Rakes get a severe thrashing.
-
-Now they were in a fighting attitude the disparity between the lads was
-more apparent. Edgar was lightly built, but active, and evidently in
-good condition. Bully Rakes was massive, heavy, and ponderous in his
-movements. The boys were determined to see fair play, and gave Edgar
-every encouragement. As usual, when he had to fight, Bully Rakes rushed
-in at close quarters, and tried to overwhelm his smaller opponent by
-the force of his onslaught.
-
-Edgar, however, was ready for him. He knew how to box better than most
-lads of his age. His father had taught him, impressing upon him that
-because he knew how to use his fists he ought not to pick quarrels.
-
-Seeing Bully Rakes rush at him, Edgar sprang nimbly to one side. The
-bigger lad stumbled forward and almost fell. Thus foiled at the first
-attempt, Rakes lost his temper. He heard the lads jeering at him, and
-he determined he would make Edgar suffer for the humiliation.
-
-Recovering himself, Rakes glared at Edgar and then aimed a terrific
-blow at his ribs. Quick as lightning shot out Edgar’s left and caught
-Rakes on the ear. It was a stinging blow, and the bully did not take
-punishment well. Rakes again rushed at Edgar, and, closing with him,
-kicked him severely on the shin. It was a despicable act, and several
-lads pulled Rakes back, others shouting ‘Coward!’ and ‘Foul play!’
-
-‘Hands off!’ shouted Rakes. ‘You’d better not interfere with me.’
-
-‘Leave him to Foster,’ said Will Brown; ‘he’ll settle him.’
-
-A roar of laughter followed this remark, and made Bully Rakes furious.
-
-‘Stand up and fight fair,’ said Edgar. ‘Who taught you to kick? We’re
-not playing football.’
-
-The boys were delighted. Here was young Foster taking it out of Bully
-Rakes, and chaffing him unmercifully.
-
-Rakes again commenced the attack, but with more caution. He was not a
-match for his young opponent when it came to science. He managed to
-land a blow on Edgar’s right eye, but the return he received fairly
-between his own eyes staggered him. Edgar followed up his advantage and
-soon had the satisfaction of seeing Bully Rakes measure his length on
-the grass.
-
-The younger boys danced with delight as the defeat of their enemy
-looked assured.
-
-Rakes, however, was not yet beaten. He staggered to his feet and
-fought again with some determination. Feeling he had met his match, his
-courage, what little he possessed, gave way, and Edgar soon had the
-bully at his mercy. Edgar was not disposed to let him off lightly, and
-he knocked Rakes about in a manner that both astonished and alarmed him.
-
-‘Have you had enough?’ said Edgar, standing over him after another
-knock-down blow. ‘If not, get up, and I’ll repeat the dose.’
-
-‘I’ve done for to-day,’ growled Rakes; ‘but I’ll be even with you for
-this, see if I don’t.’
-
-‘Take your defeat like a man,’ said Edgar, ‘and drop bullying in the
-future. Where’s the bat?’ he added, turning to Will Brown.
-
-But the boys would not let him bat. They cheered him and shook hands
-with him, and Edgar felt he had quickly made a position for himself in
-the school.
-
-Bully Rakes slunk away with one or two companions, who had been tempted
-by his example to bully on a smaller scale, and were downcast at his
-defeat.
-
-‘You’ll get into a row,’ said Will Brown to Edgar. ‘The chief can’t
-bear fighting, but when he hears the truth, I fancy he’ll side with
-you.’
-
-‘He’ll hear the truth then,’ said Edgar. ‘I shall ask to see him when
-we reach school.’
-
-‘I shouldn’t,’ said Will Brown. ‘None of the masters may have noticed
-it.’
-
-‘It makes no difference to me whether they have noticed it or
-otherwise,’ said Edgar; ‘I shall tell the doctor all about it, if he
-will see me. It is the most straightforward way, as I have only been
-about a week in the school.’
-
-‘Perhaps you’re right,’ said Will Brown.
-
-‘Sure of it,’ said Edgar.
-
-That evening Dr. Hook received a polite note from Edgar Foster, in
-which he asked for an interview. Dr. Hook knew Edgar’s father, and
-admired him for his many manly qualities.
-
-‘You wanted to see me, Foster,’ said Dr. Hook, when the lad came into
-his study.
-
-Then, catching sight of Edgar’s discoloured eye, he frowned.
-
-Edgar explained what had occurred in the cricket-field. Dr. Hook
-listened attentively, noting the boy’s face all the time. His scrutiny
-was evidently favourable.
-
-‘I am glad you came to me,’ said the head-master; ‘I strongly object to
-fighting, but in this instance I think it may be overlooked. Send Rakes
-to me when you go out.’
-
-‘Please, sir,’ said Edgar, and hesitated. ‘I hope you will not punish
-Rakes; I gave it him severely this afternoon.’
-
-Dr. Hook smiled as he said:
-
-‘No, I will not punish Rakes; I merely wish to speak to him about his
-conduct. You may go.’
-
-‘That lad will get on in the world,’ thought Dr. Hook, when the door
-closed behind Edgar. ‘I’m glad he thrashed Rakes; it will do him good.’
-
-Bully Rakes got a very different reception to Edgar Foster, and as
-he left the room he vowed he would have his revenge upon Edgar for
-‘sneaking’ to the head-master.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II. IN THE CRICKET-FIELD.
-
-
-The thrashing of Bully Rakes gave Edgar Foster a hold over the
-affections of his schoolfellows, and he never lost it. In twelve months
-he became captain of the eleven, and led them to victory on many
-occasions. Edgar worked hard, both at lessons and play. He found it
-much easier to study when his body was in good order, and his athletic
-exercises helped to make his school tasks the easier. He could not be
-called a brilliant scholar by any means, but he was endowed with an
-amount of perseverance that generally pulled him through.
-
-‘It’s got to be done, and I’ll do it,’ Edgar thought to himself when
-pondering over a difficult task, and he generally succeeded.
-
-The Redbank lads took a defeat from their great opponents, the eleven
-of Fairfield College, with a very bad grace. Not that they allowed
-their successful opponents to see their chagrin, they were too manly
-for that, but they felt the defeat keenly.
-
-Edgar Foster determined to win the return match if possible. He had
-taken great care to select his eleven, and felt confident of success.
-He was the more eager to win because his father was coming to Redbank
-to watch the game. Dr. Hook too was anxious his boys should regain
-their lost laurels, and he encouraged Edgar by his kindly advice.
-
-It so happened that Raymond Rakes, despite his many bad qualities, was
-a very fair cricketer. He had not been chosen to play in the first
-match against Fairfield, and he put his being left out of the team down
-to Edgar’s animosity.
-
-Edgar Foster, however, was not actuated by any such motive. He thought
-Rakes hardly good enough, and therefore did not select him. Since this
-match Rakes had shown such good form that Edgar decided to include him
-in the eleven for the return match.
-
-Bully Rakes was much surprised when Edgar asked him to play. He said he
-would think over the matter, and complained about not being chosen in
-the first match.
-
-‘You had not shown good enough form then,’ said Edgar; ‘you have come
-on wonderfully since, and therefore I ask you to play. It is for the
-honour of the school we are playing this time, so you ought to have no
-hesitation.’
-
-‘Then I’ll play,’ said Rakes, in his usual surly manner.
-
-‘And I hope you will make a good score,’ said Edgar.
-
-As the captain of the Redbank eleven walked away, Rakes looked after
-him with no friendly eyes. He had never forgotten the humiliating
-defeat he sustained when Edgar first came to the school. No opportunity
-had yet occurred of paying off the grudge he owed Edgar on that account.
-
-‘He’s set his heart on winning this match,’ muttered Rakes to himself;
-‘he’d have left me out again if he could. I’ve a good mind to spoil his
-plans. What does it matter whether we win or lose the match? I don’t
-care much which way it goes, and I’d like to see Foster taken down a
-peg or two. I’ll wait and see how our side shapes. I may be able to
-carry out a plan of my own.’
-
-Had Edgar Foster doubted Rakes, he would not have asked him to play;
-but he could not understand any lad throwing away a chance of victory
-merely to spite the captain of the team. Such conduct Edgar would not
-have suspected even in Raymond Rakes.
-
-‘So you’ve asked Rakes to play?’ said Will Brown, who had become a
-stanch friend of Edgar’s ever since the fight with Bully Rakes.
-
-‘Yes,’ said Edgar. ‘He’s not a bad bat at all; he’s a fair field, and
-will do to put on for a change bowler. We must win the match. I’m
-awfully anxious about it. My father will be here, and there’s sure
-to be a big crowd of people. We have a good team, and I’m pretty
-confident this time.’
-
-‘All the same, I should not have played Rakes,’ said Will Brown.
-
-‘Why?’ asked Edgar.
-
-‘Because I don’t trust him. He’s never forgiven you for licking him,
-and if he gets half a chance he’ll throw us over in the match, just to
-spite you,’ said Will.
-
-Edgar looked at his schoolmate in surprise. He could not believe in any
-lad doing such a thing.
-
-‘He’ll never do that,’ said Edgar. ‘Even if it is as you say, and he
-still bears me a grudge, he would never be such a cad as to throw the
-school over in order to annoy me.’
-
-‘I hope he won’t, for your sake,’ said Will; ‘but all the same, I have
-my doubts.’
-
-Will Brown’s words made Edgar feel uneasy for a time, but he soon
-forgot them. It was universally agreed that a better eleven could not
-have been chosen to meet Fairfield College. Masters were not to play;
-it was to be purely a boys’ match.
-
-Early and late Edgar was at the cricket nets watching the practice
-and debating how he should send his team in to bat. For such a young
-lad, he had keen powers of observation, and he made a pretty accurate
-calculation as to the pluck and nerve of each boy. Edgar’s father
-arrived the day before the match, and saw the final practice.
-
-‘You have a real good team,’ he said to his son, ‘and ought to win.
-Remember, a good deal depends upon the captain.’
-
-‘I’m not likely to forget that,’ said Edgar. ‘You have often told me a
-good captain wins many a game at cricket.’
-
-Robert Foster was proud of his son, and naturally felt anxious to see
-him successful.
-
-‘How’s my lad doing?’ he had said to the head-master.
-
-‘Well--very well,’ said Dr. Hook. ‘He is not a brilliant scholar, but
-he will get on in the world. He is like his father in one respect.
-He is about the best cricketer and all-round athlete we have in the
-school.’
-
-Robert Foster’s eyes brightened, and he said:
-
-‘I’m glad of that. I’m not a rich man, and my lad will have to fight
-his own battles. He has a great inclination to go abroad, and I don’t
-know that it will not be a good thing for him. His sister will be able
-to keep me from feeling lonely.’
-
-Dr. Hook looked at Robert Foster with his kindly eyes, and replied:
-
-‘Travel expands the mind. If a lad has plenty of ballast, he will take
-no harm in any part of the world. Your son is a lad of mettle, and you
-need have no fear about his future. If I am a judge of character, I
-should say Edgar Foster is a lad who will surmount difficulties and
-dangers, and he is bound to be a leader of men.’
-
-Robert Foster was proud of the way in which the head-master spoke
-of his son. How little do thoughtless schoolboys know the pleasure
-a father feels in hearing praise bestowed upon his child, or of the
-pang he feels when the son he loves strays from the right path.
-Robert Foster loved his son devotedly, although he made very little
-demonstration of his affection, and Edgar thoroughly understood and
-appreciated the manly qualities of his father.
-
-The eventful day arrived, and a glorious day it was. The sun shone
-brightly, and there was a slight cool breeze. Redbank cricket ground
-was charmingly situated. The pavilion was small, but there were several
-large trees growing at the back which afforded ample shade. The ground
-was level and well-kept, and the pitch had much care bestowed upon it.
-It was a great day at Redbank when this return match with Fairfield
-College was to be played. Flushed with the triumph of their previous
-victory, the Fairfield lads were eager for the fray, and had invited
-many friends to come and witness their further triumph. The captain
-of the Fairfield eleven, Harold Simpson, was almost as popular at
-Fairfield as Edgar Foster was at Redbank. The two captains had a mutual
-liking for each other, although each one was determined to beat the
-other in the great game they were about to play.
-
-Edgar Foster lost the toss, and, as the ground was in such good order,
-Harold Simpson elected to send his men in first.
-
-‘They are a strong batting team,’ said Edgar to his father. ‘It will
-take us some time to get rid of them.’
-
-‘It is a one-day match, so you must do your level best to get them out
-quickly,’ said his father.
-
-As the boys filed on to the field they were cheered by their comrades
-and the Redbank supporters, who had mustered in strong force.
-
-Edgar Foster came in for a special share of applause, and he felt his
-pulses tingle and his heart beat high with hope as he bounded over the
-springy turf towards the wickets.
-
-The two Fairfield batsmen were wildly cheered by their mates, and
-Harold Simpson decided on this occasion to go in first.
-
-Will Brown and Sayers junior were put on to bowl.
-
-An anxious moment is that during which the first ball in a match is
-delivered. The bowler goes back from the wicket, measuring his men; for
-a second or two he hesitates and looks round, then he glances at the
-batsman, sees all is ready, and prepares for the delivery. As he takes
-his run to the wicket the spectators hold their breath. Will this first
-ball be fatal? A sigh of relief goes round as the batsman plays it well
-forward.
-
-Harold Simpson failed to score in Brown’s first over. Sayers junior
-then took the ball, and his first delivery made the bails fly, much to
-the delight of the Redbank boys, who shouted and cheered vociferously.
-
-Edgar Foster felt they had commenced well, and was anxious for the
-good-fortune to continue. The Fairfield boys were determined bats, and
-a long stand took place before the second batsman was got rid of.
-
-Harold Simpson still kept his wicket up, and runs came freely. At the
-fall of the fifth wicket Fairfield had put a hundred runs on, of which
-the captain had made forty.
-
-Edgar Foster went on to bowl. He was not such a good bowler as Rakes,
-who thought he ought to have been tried before, and looked sullen.
-
-In his first over Harold Simpson skied a ball to Raymond Rakes. It
-was an easy catch, but Rakes missed it, and so clumsily that the boys
-jeered at him.
-
-Will Brown, who had been watching him, thought:
-
-‘He dropped that on purpose, because Edgar bowled it.’
-
-Nothing daunted at this stroke of bad luck, Edgar sent another similar
-ball down. Harold Simpson hesitated for a moment as to what he should
-do with it; then he struck out, and, strange to say, the ball went to
-Rakes again.
-
-It was not such an easy catch as the former one, but, still, there
-ought to have been very little difficulty in a good fielder securing
-it. Rakes fumbled it badly, and again missed the catch.
-
-Edgar Foster could not help thinking of what Will Brown had said to
-him. He was very much annoyed, and at the conclusion of his over said
-to Rakes:
-
-‘Those were two easy catches to miss; they may cost us the match.’
-
-‘They were not as easy as they looked,’ said Rakes. ‘You don’t suppose
-I dropped them on purpose, do you?’
-
-‘I should be very sorry to think that,’ said Edgar; ‘but be more
-careful next time.’
-
-At last Will Brown secured Harold Simpson’s wicket, and the others
-followed rapidly, the innings closing for a hundred and thirty-four, a
-good score in a one-day school match.
-
-‘What do you think of it, Edgar?’ asked his father. ‘Shall you be able
-to wipe that off?’
-
-‘I think so,’ replied Edgar. ‘We should have had a much easier task had
-Rakes held those two catches off my bowling.’
-
-‘He made an awful mess of them,’ said Robert Foster. ‘How he dropped
-the first puzzles me; he had it fairly in his hands.’
-
-‘Look here, Edgar!’ said Will Brown. ‘It’s no use mincing matters. I’m
-sure Rakes missed those catches purposely. When are you going to send
-him in?’
-
-‘About seventh,’ said Edgar.
-
-‘Put him in last,’ said Will.
-
-‘That would only make matters worse,’ said Edgar; ‘he would know I
-doubted him, and act accordingly. He shall go in sixth wicket down. It
-will give him a chance of making up for missing those catches.’
-
-‘As you wish,’ said Will. ‘Mind, if you are in with him, he does not
-run you out.’
-
-‘No fear of that,’ said Edgar, laughing.
-
-And he crossed over to speak to Raymond Rakes.
-
-‘You go in sixth wicket down,’ he said.
-
-‘All right,’ replied Rakes, ‘that will suit me.’
-
-‘We’ve not been very good friends,’ said Edgar, ‘but you know it is not
-my fault. We want to win this match, and it may be that your batting
-will turn the scale in our favour at a critical point of the game. I
-shall rely upon you to do your best for the honour of the school. You
-missed two very easy catches; try and make up for it by playing your
-best when you go in to bat.’
-
-‘I always do,’ said Rakes sulkily, and walked away.
-
-Edgar Foster felt rather sorry he had included Raymond Rakes in the
-Redbank eleven.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III. A CRITICAL MOMENT.
-
-
-As Edgar Foster walked to the wickets he felt much depended upon him.
-He was going in first, taking first over, and if he failed to play with
-confidence it would set a bad example to the remainder of the team. It
-was, however, at such moments as these that Edgar Foster’s courage and
-spirit did not fail him.
-
-As he took his position at the wicket he looked round him with a
-confident air to see how the field was placed. He saw Harold Simpson
-had so placed his men that not a chance would be thrown away, provided
-the bowlers were in good form. After a few moments’ delay Edgar handled
-his bat confidently, and prepared to receive the first ball of the over.
-
-A lad named Winter was bowling, and Edgar knew he was a promising
-youngster. The first ball pitched short and then shot forward at a
-tremendous pace. It was a ball that might have deceived any batsman,
-and Edgar had only just time to change his mind and block it. The
-escape was narrow, and the boys saw it, but they knew the ball was well
-played, and cheered.
-
-‘Thought it had him,’ said Robert Foster to one of the Redbank masters.
-
-‘It would have been a stroke of bad luck for us if he had gone out,’
-was the reply.
-
-Off the next ball Edgar scored a couple, and the fourth ball of the
-over he skied on to the pavilion.
-
-‘That first ball put him on his mettle,’ thought his father.
-
-Strange to say, in the next over Edgar’s partner was dismissed first
-ball in a similar manner to that in which the Fairfield batsman was out.
-
-Will Brown was next in, and he and Edgar made things lively. They
-fairly collared the bowling, and gave the Fairfield team plenty of
-leather-hunting. Fours came freely, and Harold Simpson began to look
-rather downcast. However, when Will Brown was bowled with the score at
-eighty, the Fairfield captain brightened up again. He knew how often a
-collapse followed a long stand, and how ‘glorious’ was the uncertainty
-of cricket.
-
-Will Brown’s partnership with Edgar had put the Redbank boys into an
-excellent humour, and they were prepared to cheer every hit. What they
-were not prepared for happened. This was the collapse of the next four
-batsmen. Three of them were bowled in one over, and the fourth had his
-bails sent flying when he had scored two. Eighty for two wickets, and
-eighty-two for six wickets altered the game completely.
-
-It was now the turn of the Fairfield boys to give vent to their
-delight. The prospect of defeat had not been pleasant, but this
-sudden change mended the fortunes of their side, and they were wild
-with the sudden revulsion of feeling. They chaffed the Redbank lads
-unmercifully, until at one time there was danger of a fistic war.
-
-This was, however, happily averted by the appearance of Raymond
-Rakes, who was cheered as he went to the wickets. Although Rakes
-was unpopular, the boys knew he was a fair bat, and they wished to
-encourage him to make a stand with Edgar Foster.
-
-As Rakes came to the wickets Edgar went forward to meet him.
-
-‘Play steady,’ said Edgar; ‘I feel I am well set. If you play carefully
-for a few overs you will soon master the bowling. Remember how much
-depends upon you. We shall have to win the match between us.’
-
-‘I’ll see what I can do,’ said Rakes. ‘It’s precious bad luck four of
-our best bats going out like this.’
-
-‘Don’t think of that,’ said Edgar. ‘Try and make up for it by piling up
-a good score.’
-
-Raymond Rakes followed Edgar’s advice, and soon found he had very
-little difficulty in playing the bowling. He knew how anxious Edgar
-was, not only to win the match, but to make fifty because his father
-was present.
-
-‘I’m well set,’ thought Rakes. ‘I’d like to get him out. It would cut
-him up terribly to be run out. Even if he got out we have a chance. I
-can make a fair score, and our tail-end is not a bad one.’
-
-Still harbouring such thoughts as these Raymond Rakes batted steadily,
-and Edgar was immensely pleased to see him scoring freely, and the
-Redbank boys were cheering every stroke. They watched the scoring-board
-intently, and grew more and more excited with every run. Suddenly there
-was a loud cry of dismay from the boys. Some shouted ‘Run, Rakes!’
-others ‘Go back, Foster!’
-
-Edgar Foster hit a ball forward, and called to Rakes to run. Had Rakes
-come at once it would have been an easy but smart run. Rakes started
-late, and then when Edgar Foster was three parts of the way down the
-pitch shouted to him to go back, and ran back himself. This left Edgar
-in a most unenviable position. The ball was smartly fielded, and as
-Edgar ran back he saw it flash past him straight for the wicket-keeper.
-
-‘I’m done,’ thought Edgar, but he ran on as fast as possible.
-
-It was a critical moment. The wicket-keeper in some unaccountable way
-fumbled the ball, and only knocked the bails off as Edgar reached the
-crease.
-
-‘How’s that?’ came from wicket-keeper, bowler, and fielders in a
-general chorus.
-
-They were anxious to see Edgar out, for he had given them a lot of
-trouble, and seemed likely to give more.
-
-‘Not out!’ promptly came the decision of the umpire, and a roar
-of applause echoed over the field as the Redbank lads danced with
-delight, and flung their caps high into the air because their captain
-had another chance given him. Edgar knew the decision of the umpire
-was correct, and he thanked his lucky star that the wicket-keeper had
-fumbled the ball. When he thought of Raymond Rakes he felt inclined to
-give him a bit of his mind, but he determined to treat the matter as a
-pure accident until the close of the game. As for Raymond Rakes he was
-savage at the non-success of his plan. He had deliberately tried to run
-Edgar out. It was a dirty trick, and he knew it, but he was bitterly
-disappointed that it had not been successful.
-
-‘Hang the fellow! he seems to have all the luck,’ thought Raymond. ‘I
-wonder if he suspects anything?’
-
-The idea of Edgar Foster suspecting he had acted in such a manner
-made Rakes feel uneasy, for he had not forgotten the punishment Edgar
-gave him when he first came to the school. He did not bat with such
-confidence, and Edgar put this down to its proper cause. Runs came
-freely again, for Edgar felt the result of the match depended almost
-entirely upon himself. When his score reached fifty the cheering broke
-out again, and made Rakes turn green with envy.
-
-‘He shall have a new bat for that,’ said Robert Foster. ‘By Jove! he
-deserves it. He’s batting splendidly. I’m glad that big hulking fellow
-did not run him out.’
-
-Before the score reached a hundred Rakes was caught. He was not very
-warmly greeted as he returned to the pavilion. The boys knew how
-matters stood between him and Edgar, and they had a shrewd suspicion
-Bully Rakes had tried to get Edgar run out.
-
-Rakes flung his bat down in a corner of the dressing-room and took off
-his pads.
-
-‘You didn’t manage to run him out,’ said Will Brown.
-
-‘Who wanted to run him out?’ said Rakes angrily; ‘I didn’t. It was his
-own fault. There was no run, and I didn’t want to get out through his
-foolishness.’
-
-‘You’d better tell him that when the match is over,’ said Will Brown.
-‘He’ll probably want an explanation. If he believes you, well and
-good; if not--oh my, won’t you just catch it!’
-
-Bully Rakes took up a pad and hurled it at his tormentor.
-
-‘Get out of this, you little beast!’ he said. ‘You know I can’t touch
-you here, or you’d not be so cheeky.’
-
-‘Mind and keep clear of Edgar’s left if it comes to war,’ said Will
-Brown. ‘I fancy you know he’s a good fist at the end of his left arm.’
-
-Bully Rakes jumped to his feet and made towards the speaker; but Will
-Brown was too quick for him, and shot out at the side door.
-
-Meanwhile the game was at a critical stage. Edgar Foster was playing
-at his best. He did not give a chance, nor did he throw away an
-opportunity of stealing a run. He knew that every run was of vast
-importance. A run lost might mean the match lost. Sayers junior was in
-with him, and blocked steadily while his captain made the runs. The
-fielders were on the alert, and were smart and active, and many a run
-was saved. Harold Simpson was a good general, and handled his men well.
-
-‘It does one good to watch a game like this,’ said Robert Foster to
-Dr. Hook. ‘I have seldom seen lads field better, and Edgar is batting
-really well. Who is the little chap keeping his end up so well?’
-
-‘Sayers junior,’ said Dr. Hook. ‘He’s helping your son famously.’
-
-‘Playing a most unselfish game,’ said Robert Foster. ‘That is how
-matches are won. A selfish player at any game is a big handicap on his
-side.’
-
-A burst of cheering from lusty throats stopped the conversation. It
-was caused by Edgar Foster hitting a ball over the pavilion--a mighty
-stroke for a lad.
-
-‘Well hit!’ ‘Bravo, Foster!’ ‘Three cheers for our skipper!’ And the
-Redbank lads shouted until they were hoarse.
-
-The match was, however, not yet won. Sayers junior played a ball on to
-his wicket when ten runs remained to be got to tie and eleven to win.
-
-‘I am afraid we shall lose,’ said Dr. Hook, as the ninth man was clean
-bowled and the last of the team went in.
-
-‘Can he bat at all?’ asked Robert Foster anxiously.
-
-‘He is uncertain, but at times he shapes well,’ said one of the masters.
-
-‘Then I hope it is his day for shaping well,’ said Edgar’s father.
-
-‘Block them, Bull,’ said Edgar, as the lad came to the wicket.
-
-‘I’ll do my level best,’ said Bull, ‘and I don’t feel a bit nervous.’
-
-‘That’s right,’ said Edgar. ‘Then, between us we must win the match.’
-
-Fortunately Edgar was batting, and he hit the first ball sent him after
-Bull came in for a single. It was fielded smartly, thrown in swiftly,
-the wicket-keeper could not quite reach it, and there was another run
-for an overthrow. This gave Edgar another chance before the over was
-finished, and he promptly took advantage of it, hitting the next ball
-round to leg for three. The excitement was intense. Would Bull be
-able to keep his wicket up during this over? The Redbank boys vowed
-they would make Bull a presentation if he managed to do so. It was a
-surprise to them when Bull fluked a ball past point, and another run
-followed. Edgar determined to finish the game if possible, and a couple
-of runs were got by a somewhat lucky stroke. This left three runs to
-win, and the boys of both schools were in a fever of excitement.
-
-‘If Edgar can only manage to hit a three,’ said Will Brown, ‘then we
-shall be all right. He’s done wonders, considering everything.’
-
-The next ball Edgar could do nothing with. It puzzled him, and nearly
-got past his bat.
-
-Then came a comparatively easy ball, and Edgar lifted it over the
-ropes, amidst a perfect hurricane of cheers. This hit won the match,
-and the Redbank boys rushed wildly over the ground and, surrounding
-Edgar, bore him shoulder-high to the pavilion. It was a scene seldom
-witnessed even on this famous school-ground, and as Edgar’s father
-looked on he felt the moisture well up into his eyes, and his heart
-beat with pride. He knew what this moment of triumph would mean to his
-son, and he gloried in it. He made his way to the dressing-room, and as
-he came the boys stood on one side and cheered him again and again.
-They were proud of the father and proud of the son, and were not slow
-to show it.
-
-‘Splendidly done, my lad!’ said Robert Foster, as he placed his
-hand on Edgar’s shoulder. ‘It was a plucky, uphill fight, and your
-schoolfellows are enthusiastic about it. I never saw you play a
-steadier or better game.’
-
-‘It was hard work,’ said Edgar, ‘but I did not feel a bit nervous. We
-have won, but it was a narrow shave. I think it ought to have been an
-easier victory had Rakes done his best.’
-
-‘Then, you think Rakes behaved badly? I should give a boy like that a
-wide berth.’
-
-‘We are not friends,’ said Edgar, ‘but I bear him no animosity.’
-
-The Redbank boys could do nothing but talk over their victory, and
-Edgar Foster found they gave most of the credit to himself.
-
-Edgar gave Rakes to understand he believed he had tried to run him out.
-
-‘I may be wrong, but that is my opinion,’ said Edgar.
-
-‘Your opinion is worth nothing to me,’ said Rakes, ‘so you may keep it
-to yourself.’
-
-‘That may be,’ replied Edgar; ‘but the honour of the school ought to be
-worth something to you. I shall not ask you to play again during the
-time I am captain of the eleven.’
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV. LEAVING SCHOOL.
-
-
-The time arrived, all too soon, when Edgar Foster was to leave Redbank.
-Unlike many lads, he was not eager to have done with lessons, and take
-his place in the busy world. During his stay at Redbank he had made
-many friends, Will Brown being an especial favourite with him. Dr. Hook
-was proud of his scholar, for Edgar had done as well at work as at play.
-
-When the holiday time came round, Edgar Foster bade farewell to Redbank
-with feelings of regret. As he looked back at the school he was leaving
-he thought of the many happy hours he had spent within its walls. He
-had gone through trial and struggle, such as every lad must encounter,
-but they only made victory taste the sweeter.
-
-‘I shall feel quite lonely next term,’ said Will Brown, who was going
-home with Edgar to spend a few days. ‘It’s lucky for some of us Rakes
-is leaving, or he would have made it uncomfortably hot. I shall never
-forget the thrashing you gave him. It did me good to see you punish
-him;’ and Will Brown chuckled with delight at the mere thought.
-
-‘If I never have a harder battle to fight than that,’ said Edgar, ‘I
-shall be lucky.’
-
-‘What are you going to do?’ asked Will Brown.
-
-‘With my father’s permission I shall go to Australia,’ said Edgar. ‘You
-know how fond I have always been of reading and learning about our
-great colonies. I think it is a splendid thing to start life in a new
-country, where you are not bound down by a lot of old-world prejudices.’
-
-‘And what shall you do in Australia?’ asked Will Brown.
-
-‘I hardly know, but you may be sure I shall not remain idle very long.
-There ought to be plenty for an active young fellow like me to do out
-there.’
-
-‘They are great cricketers, the Australians,’ said Brown. ‘You’re sure
-to get into one of the best elevens, and that will help you along.’
-
-‘And give me a chance of a trip home perhaps,’ said Edgar. ‘I should
-hardly like playing against England.’
-
-‘I expect you will become such an enthusiastic colonist that you will
-be only too eager to assist in lowering the flag of old England on the
-cricket-field.’
-
-‘We shall see,’ replied Edgar. ‘Of one thing you may be quite sure: I
-shall look upon Australia as my home if I have to earn my living there.’
-
-Robert Foster was heartily glad to welcome his son’s schoolmate at Elm
-Lodge. He was a believer in schoolboy friendships when judiciously made.
-
-Elm Lodge was not a large place, but it was old-fashioned and
-picturesque, and overlooked the Thames near Twickenham. Robert Foster,
-in addition to being a great cricketer, was a skilful oarsman, and
-many a Thames waterman had found it a hard task to row with him. He was
-also an enthusiastic fisherman, and knew the favourite haunts of the
-famous Thames trout, and where many a good jack was to be found. There
-was a boathouse at Elm Lodge, and Edgar always anticipated a good time
-on the great river.
-
-Doris Foster was a bright, merry girl of seventeen, a perfect picture
-of ruddy health, her cheeks untouched by any artificial beautifier.
-Nature was her lady’s-maid, and Doris Foster would not have changed
-her for the most skilful of tire-women. It was a difficult matter
-to keep Doris Foster indoors, no matter how bad the weather might
-be. She revelled in sunshine, but she loved the keen, sharp, frosty
-air of winter, and the sound of the frozen snow crunching beneath
-her tiny feet. She knew the names of the wild-flowers, and was well
-acquainted with their haunts, and also their habits. She was not a
-clever girl, but she was thoroughly domesticated, a far more desirable
-accomplishment. Her father and brother were her best friends, and she
-made but few new acquaintances. Doris Foster was a true-born English
-girl, not a forced artificial production such as may be encountered
-by the score in the Row, or the fashionable thoroughfares of the West
-End. She had not learned to talk slang, and to consider it correct to
-endeavour to make people think, ‘What a pity she is not a man!’
-
-With the enthusiasm of a schoolboy, Will Brown adored Doris Foster.
-There was no maudlin, sentimental love nonsense about his adoration. It
-was the pure affection and liking a healthy youth feels for a healthy
-girl.
-
-‘Excuse the expression, Edgar,’ he said one day, ‘but your sister is a
-brick.’
-
-The schoolboy ‘brick’ is synonymous for everything that is good. When
-one lad calls another a ‘brick’ there’s a ring about the word that is
-unmistakable. So, when Will Brown called his sister a brick, Edgar
-Foster heartily endorsed the sentiment.
-
-‘I’d like to know,’ said Will, ‘if there is anything she cannot do?’
-
-‘Several things,’ said Edgar.
-
-They were sitting in a boat close to the garden hedge, and passing
-their time pleasantly enough.
-
-‘Enumerate some of them,’ said Will Brown incredulously.
-
-‘She cannot smoke,’ said Edgar solemnly; ‘nor can she make a speech.
-She would be a ghastly failure as a woman politician, or a leader of
-fashion. I am afraid she could not write a book, and drag all her
-female friends through a moral pillory in it. Oh, there are heaps of
-things Doris cannot do!’
-
-‘And a jolly good thing, too!’ said Will Brown. ‘I hate stuck-up
-girls--they’re worse than spoony girls. Now, your sister--well, a
-fellow can make a chum of her, and all that, don’t you know.’
-
-‘Comprehensive, certainly,’ laughed Edgar. ‘What does “all that, don’t
-you know” mean?’
-
-Will Brown waved his hand towards the flowing river, and was at a loss
-for an answer.
-
-Splash!
-
-‘What’s that?’ said Will, as he shook the water off his boating-jacket.
-
-‘That is Miss “All that, don’t you know,”’ laughed Edgar.
-
-‘Where is she?’ said Will, jumping up, and narrowly missing overturning
-the boat.
-
-‘In safety, on the other side of the hedge,’ said Edgar loudly. ‘She
-dare not come nearer, for fear of the consequences.’
-
-Splash!
-
-‘We had better get out of this,’ said Will.
-
-A merry peal of laughter sounded from the other side of the hedge.
-
-‘You lazy boys! I thought I would rouse you. Pull the boat round to the
-steps, and take me for a row immediately.’
-
-‘We decline to be ordered about,’ said Edgar. ‘Ask politely, and your
-request may be granted.’
-
-‘Will Mr. William Brown and Mr. Edgar Foster, of Redbank School--ahem!
-College--have the goodness to row to the steps of Elm Lodge, where they
-will find Miss Doris Foster at home?’
-
-‘That’s much better,’ said Edgar. ‘Our compliments to Miss Doris
-Foster, and we hasten to comply with her request.’
-
-‘Pull, Edgar, you lazy beggar!’ said Will, ‘for Elm Lodge, home, and
-beauty.’
-
-Doris Foster looked charming in her light summer dress and large river
-hat, as she stood on the steps leading from the lawn to the water.
-
-‘Your ladyship has showered many favours upon us of late,’ said Will
-Brown, as he gave her his hand and she stepped into the boat; ‘in fact,
-we are in danger of being overwhelmed with them.’
-
-‘Doris, you ought not to throw stones,’ said Edgar, with an attempt to
-be serious.
-
-‘I did not throw stones,’ said Doris.
-
-‘You hear her?’ said Edgar to Will. ‘She did not throw stones! I blush
-for my sister.’
-
-‘They were two half-bricks,’ said Doris. ‘Didn’t they splash!’ And she
-laughed merrily.
-
-‘There’s prevarication!’ said Edgar. ‘A brick in this instance is to
-all intents and purposes a stone.’
-
-‘A brick is a brick,’ said Doris; ‘therefore it cannot be a stone.’
-
-‘A brick is not a brick when it is only half a brick,’ said Edgar.
-
-‘If you don’t stop it,’ said Will Brown, ‘I’ll----Look out!’ he shouted.
-
-There was a bend in the river, and they did not see the small launch
-until it was nearly on to them. The swirl she made in the water caused
-their boat to dance up and down in the swell.
-
-‘All your fault,’ said Edgar to his sister. ‘But, thank goodness! it
-has put an end to your argument.’
-
-They had a pleasant row, and came back glowing with health, and very
-hungry. Luncheon proved most acceptable, and was thoroughly enjoyed by
-these young people with good appetites and no thoughts of indigestion.
-
-Doris Foster missed Will Brown when he left Elm Lodge, for she had come
-to regard him as a sincere friend. She had, however, other things to
-occupy her mind now, for Edgar was to sail for Australia in a couple
-of months. She dreaded the parting with her brother, not only on her
-own account, but because she knew how much her father would miss him.
-She was half inclined to be angry with Edgar because he had chosen to
-go abroad. At the same time, she admired the spirit of adventure that
-tempted him away from a comparatively easy life in England. She knew if
-she had been a man she would have followed her brother’s example.
-
-Robert Foster made the most of the time his son was to remain at home.
-
-‘I shall be sorry to part with you,’ he said to Edgar; ‘but you are
-young, and I am not old. So I hope, ere many years have gone, we may
-meet again. I believe it will do you good to go abroad. One thing you
-must bear in mind: come home again if you do not like it.’
-
-Edgar Foster was fond of the sea, and, as his father knew the owner of
-one of the principal lines of sailing ships trading to Australia, he
-had decided to make the voyage in the _Distant Shore_, a large vessel
-holding a quick record.
-
-‘You are quite sure you prefer to go out in a sailing vessel?’ said
-Robert Foster. ‘It will be a tedious voyage.’
-
-‘I am sure the time will pass quickly,’ said Edgar. ‘I love the sea.
-Those big steamers are too much like hotels, and I cannot bear hotel
-life.’
-
-‘Please yourself, my boy. The _Distant Shore_ is a fine vessel, and
-Captain Manton a good seaman. He’ll look after you well, I feel sure.’
-
-The weeks rolled all too quickly by, and the time drew near when the
-_Distant Shore_ was to sail for Sydney.
-
-Edgar Foster paid a visit to Redbank, and was heartily welcomed by his
-old schoolmates, who wished him a prosperous voyage and success in the
-new country. Dr. Hook was very kind to him, and gave him some good
-advice.
-
-As Edgar shook hands with him, Dr. Hook said:
-
-‘An old friend of mine once gave me what I consider good advice. He
-said: “Don’t fret, keep your temper, and mind your own business.” If
-you carry out his precepts, I think you will do well.’
-
-Edgar did not feel in very good spirits when his last night at home
-arrived. As he looked around the cosy room, he wondered how many years
-it would be before he saw it again, and the dear ones he must leave
-behind. He said to himself he must work hard and earn a good name, and
-then he would come home and be received with open arms.
-
-His father was kinder than ever on this their evening of parting, and
-Doris did all in her power to make things bright and cheerful. Edgar
-never ceased to remember this particular night, and it came vividly
-before him on many occasions when far away.
-
-Robert Foster and his daughter saw Edgar sail in the _Distant Shore_,
-and waved him a tearful farewell.
-
-As Edgar stood looking at them he felt lonely, and when they gradually
-receded from his sight he heaved a sigh, and felt a choking sensation
-in his throat.
-
-When Robert Foster and Doris reached Elm Lodge again he kissed her
-fondly, and said in a broken voice:
-
-‘God knows when we shall see him again, Doris. You are all I have left
-now; you must not leave your father.’
-
-‘Edgar will return some day,’ she said quietly. ‘I will take his place
-until then. When he comes back you will forget all the sorrow of
-parting.’
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V. A FURIOUS STORM.
-
-
-Hundreds of people hurrying to business in Sydney at an early hour in
-the morning cast anxious eyes at the dull leaden sky, across which
-heavy clouds rolled, hanging over the harbour and the city. They also
-gazed in wonderment, and with feelings not devoid of awe, upon a mass
-of peculiar white clouds banked up in an exactly opposite direction to
-the harbour. These clouds were of a fleecy whiteness, balloon-shaped,
-and clung together until they were heaped almost mountains high.
-
-There was a peculiar stillness about the atmosphere--the calm that
-usually precedes a storm. All day long the clouds hung suspended
-overhead, and towards the middle of the afternoon it grew much darker.
-People residing at harbour suburbs hurried home as fast as possible,
-and were glad when they were ferried safely across the water.
-
-The Watson’s Bay ferry-boat was throwing off from the landing-stage as
-a well-built man in a pilot’s coat jumped on board.
-
-‘Nearly missed it, Wal,’ said the skipper of the _Fairy_. ‘The next
-boat will have a rough passage, I reckon.’
-
-‘Yes; it’s been brewing all day,’ replied Walter Jessop. ‘We shall have
-a terrible night, I fear. It will be dangerous near the coast to-night.
-Luckily, there’s no vessel been sighted anywhere handy.’
-
-The speaker was evidently a seaman. He had an honest, open face,
-weather-beaten and tanned with exposure, and his hands were hard and
-big and used to hard work.
-
-Pilot Jessop was well known in Sydney. In years gone by he had done
-good service as a pilot, and he still followed his calling, but
-fortune had favoured him in the shape of a windfall from a rich
-relation, and he only took on work when he felt inclined.
-
-Walter Jessop knew the coast of Australia as well as any man, and he
-had sailed up most of the harbours and rivers between Adelaide and
-Normanton. Such a man was not likely to make many mistakes about the
-weather, and he knew what these lowering clouds that had been hanging
-about all day meant.
-
-The _Fairy_ was one of the smallest ferry boats on the harbour, and at
-this time Watson’s Bay was not such an important place as it is now.
-Pilot Jessop, however, found it handy to live at Watson’s Bay, as it
-was under the great shadows of South Head, beyond which lay the open
-sea. Many a ship had he piloted to a safe anchorage in the harbour.
-
-When the landing-stage was reached, he bade the skipper of the _Fairy_
-good-night, and walked to his home, which nestled in a sheltered
-position high up above the harbour.
-
-A bright little woman, clad in a homely dress, gave him a hearty
-welcome. Mrs. Jessop was just the wife for such a man, and they had
-only one regret: they had no child to lavish their affection upon.
-
-‘We’re in for a storm,’ said Wal Jessop, as he was generally called. ‘I
-hope there’s no vessel making for the harbour; they’d better keep away
-from our coast to-night.’
-
-‘I’m right glad you have no occasion to go to sea on such nights,’ said
-his wife. ‘It would make an old woman of me before my time if you were
-out in these storms.’
-
-‘I weathered a good many storms before I met you,’ said Wal Jessop,
-‘but I don’t feel much inclined for it again when I come to such
-comfortable quarters as these.’
-
-A low murmuring sound could be heard, a door banged, and the windows
-creaked ominously.
-
-‘It’s coming,’ said Jessop. ‘Make everything snug, my lass; there’ll be
-a perfect hurricane before morning.’
-
-As Wal Jessop sat at the well-laden tea-table, he suddenly put down his
-knife and fork, and drew a paper from his coat-pocket.
-
-‘I’d quite forgotten,’ he said. ‘I hope they’re not making for Sydney
-in such a gale as this will be.’
-
-‘What ship do you mean?’ asked his wife.
-
-‘The _Distant Shore_ is due here early next week. It’s Saturday, and
-the agents expect her on Monday at the latest. I hope Captain Manton
-has not made an extra quick passage. She’s a clipping sailer, is the
-_Distant Shore_, and he’s a bit venturesome--likes to make a rapid run.
-I shouldn’t wonder if she’s not far away to-night.’
-
-‘I hope not,’ said Mrs. Jessop.
-
-Captain Manton often paid a visit to the Jessops when in Sydney, and
-the pilot and his wife were very fond of his company.
-
-As the evening wore on the storm raged in all its fury. Every hour
-seemed to add to the velocity of the gale. A great roar like distant
-thunder could be heard in the cottage as the waves dashed against the
-mighty rocks of South Head, and then rushed back, baffled and angry.
-
-‘It’s beginning to rain,’ said Wal Jessop; ‘I’ll just see if the pony’s
-all right before it comes on faster.’
-
-‘Be quick in again,’ said his wife, ‘or you’ll be drenched.’
-
-A fierce gust came in as he opened the door and quickly shut it again.
-
-‘It doesn’t rain after all,’ he said, as he looked up at the dark
-clouds through which the moon occasionally shone in fitful gleams.
-
-As if to convince him he had made a mistake, and that his first surmise
-was correct, a shower of heavy drops fell upon him. He stood still and
-thought for a moment; then he touched the wet on his coat and tasted
-it. It was salt, and he knew the waves outside were running high and
-dashing showers of salt spray over the top of the rocks, and the wind
-carried it across the village.
-
-‘Such a sea is worth having a look at,’ he thought. ‘I’ll have a walk
-up to the cliffs before I turn in.’
-
-He told his wife it was the spray from the waves being dashed on the
-rocks, and she knew it must be terrible out at sea.
-
-Walter Jessop could not rest. He felt uneasy, and had an undefinable
-feeling that some dire catastrophe was about to take place. He sat down
-and tried to read the evening paper, but nothing in it interested
-him. His pipe continually went out because he was so deep in thought
-he failed to draw sufficiently to keep it alight. His wife watched
-him with anxious eyes. She had seen him like this before when he had
-been affected by a presentiment of evil. He got up from his chair and
-restlessly paced about the room.
-
-‘Have a glass of something,’ said his wife. ‘It’s getting on for
-bedtime.’
-
-‘Don’t mind if I do,’ he said. ‘I’ll tell you what it is, lass: I fear
-there’ll be something awful happen before the night’s over.’
-
-‘It’s the storm makes you feel like that,’ said his wife. ‘This will do
-you good.’ And she handed him a glass of toddy.
-
-Wal Jessop drank it with evident relish. Then he looked at his watch,
-and said:
-
-‘Ten o’clock. I’ll just go up on the cliffs, and have a look out to
-sea; I’ll never rest if I don’t.’
-
-‘If you say you’ll go I know you mean it,’ said his wife; ‘but do be
-careful. You might get blown over the rocks.’
-
-‘There’s a moon,’ he said; ‘and I’m more likely to be blown away from
-the rocks than over them. I’ll not be gone long. You go to bed.’
-
-He put on a thick coat and slouch hat, kissed his wife, and then went
-out into the stormy night.
-
-‘If he fancies I’m going to bed until he comes home he’s mistaken,’
-said Mrs. Jessop to herself. ‘Oh, these sailors! A furious gale seems
-to tempt them outside when other folk are only too anxious to hide
-their heads under the bedclothes.’
-
-Wal Jessop felt the full force of the wind as he made his way up a
-narrow path towards the top of the cliff. He battled with it, and
-seemed to take a fierce delight in overcoming it. A terrific gust
-nearly swept him off his feet, and he muttered:
-
-‘Nearly had me that time, but I’ll beat the winds as I have done
-before. There’s some satisfaction in fighting a gale like this, but I’d
-sooner be doing it here than out at sea yonder.’
-
-At last he reached the roadway, which he crossed, and then climbed up
-again towards the top of the rocks. As he made his way slowly the salt
-spray dashed into his face, and wetted him all over. He could hear the
-waves thundering against the rocks, and every roar was followed by a
-dense shower of spray. When he reached the top of the rocks the moon
-came out from behind a cloud, and shed a pale light on the scene.
-
-Wal Jessop looked out to sea, and saw nothing but a black mass of
-tumultuous water and fierce waves chasing each other in mad sport. Then
-he looked down below and saw masses of foam tossed about and flung
-high into the air. He saw the great waves roll across the jutting
-rock, then dash furiously against the solid mass opposed to them, and
-cast up spray like a waterspout. This battle between the waves and the
-rocks had been going on for centuries, and would, he knew, continue
-for centuries more. The waves, constantly baffled and defeated, had
-to retreat, but they returned again and again to the charge, bringing
-up reinforcements from their mighty reserves, until at last the rocks
-seemed to give way inch by inch, and their jagged, worn fronts bore
-unmistakable testimony to the fierceness of the onslaught.
-
-Pilot Jessop could not tear himself away from this scene of tumult and
-fierce war. He stood alone upon the rocks, the spray drenching him,
-and the wind whistling and whining in his ears. He knew there was a
-warm bed awaiting him at home, and yet he could not leave the spot. He
-peered out to sea, and saw an empty space. The moon was again hidden,
-and all was black and desolate. Suddenly he started, and gave vent to
-an exclamation. He thought he saw a tiny light sparkle far away out
-in the gloom. He looked again and again, but could see nothing. Could
-his eyes have deceived him? What could he have mistaken for a light
-so far out at sea? There it was again. He could not mistake it this
-time. There were two lights like stars; now he saw three. A cold, dull
-feeling came over him, and froze the blood in his veins; his heart beat
-loudly, and he put his hands to his head to think.
-
-Was it a ship out at sea and heading for the harbour on such a night as
-this? Surely no captain would be so mad and foolish as to risk passing
-through that narrow strait between the Heads in such a gale! He looked
-again and again, and the more he looked the more he was convinced it
-was a vessel being driven on to the rocks. He knew if it was a ship she
-would be dashed into a thousand pieces and not a soul on board could be
-saved. Hoping against hope, he looked again. The light had gone, and he
-breathed more freely. His eyesight must have deceived him.
-
-He felt a tug at his sleeve, and turning quickly round, faced his wife.
-
-‘I could bear it no longer,’ she said; ‘you have been out over three
-hours. The suspense was terrible. I thought you were blown over the
-rocks. Come home, Wal, you are wet through.’
-
-‘Three hours!’ he exclaimed, then, knowing how he had been compelled to
-struggle to reach the rocks, he took his wife in his arms, strained her
-to his breast, kissed her fondly, and said:
-
-‘You are a brave little woman, and I’m a brute for causing you anxiety.
-We will go home at once. This is no fit place for you.’
-
-‘Wal, Wal!’ she cried as she stared over his shoulder with wide,
-terror-stricken eyes; ‘look, there’s a light; two lights, three! It’s a
-ship! Lord have mercy on ’em!’
-
-‘Good God, she’s seen it! Then my eyes have not deceived me. That’s
-what I’ve been watching this hour,’ he said.
-
-They looked together out across the furious ocean, and saw the lights
-plainly now.
-
-Mary Jessop hid her face on her husband’s shoulder and sobbed aloud.
-She knew not a single man, woman, or child on the ill-fated vessel
-could expect to live when the ship was shattered to pieces. As she
-stood there in the rocks with the wind roaring around her, safe in her
-husband’s strong arms, she offered up a prayer to the God who rules the
-seas to save the ship from destruction.
-
-As for Pilot Jessop, he seemed for the moment incapable of action. He
-quickly recovered, and said in a hollow voice:
-
-‘Suppose it’s the _Distant Shore_?’
-
-His wife shuddered and said:
-
-‘Can nothing be done to save her?’
-
-‘No, Mary; she’s beyond control. No captain would be here on such
-a night if he had control of his ship. She’s helpless, and we are
-helpless; but we can rouse the folk and do all we can. Come.’
-
-They went down the rocky path and hurried to the village, where,
-despite the gale, the people were sleeping soundly.
-
-They roused two or three men, and telling them to pass the word on,
-they fought their way back to the top of the cliffs.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI. THE ‘DISTANT SHORE.’
-
-
-The _Distant Shore_ made a quick voyage towards Australia, and her
-captain felt sure of beating the sailing record by two or three days.
-Captain Manton had taken a great liking to Edgar Foster, who spent many
-a pleasant hour in his cabin with him. On this voyage Captain Manton
-was accompanied by his wife and child, a bright little girl about three
-years of age. The child was very fond of Edgar, and he played with the
-little one on deck for hours at a stretch.
-
-‘I never remember a more favourable voyage,’ said the captain to Edgar
-one morning; ‘we ought to be in Sydney harbour in the course of two or
-three days. Looks as though we are going to finish with a squall,’ he
-added, pointing to the restless clouds overhead.
-
-‘I am quite anxious to weather a storm before we get to our journey’s
-end,’ said Edgar, smiling, ‘or I shall fancy I have not been to sea.’
-
-‘Your wish is likely to be gratified,’ he said; ‘but the _Distant
-Shore_ is a good ship, and it will be an uncommon bad storm she cannot
-sail through safely.’
-
-‘With a good ship and a clever captain we have not much to fear,’ said
-Edgar. ‘Here’s little Eva coming for her morning romp. I should have
-been quite lonely on board without her.’
-
-Edgar held out his arms, and the child ran into them. He lifted her
-above his head, where she laughed with delight, and looked at her
-father with merry eyes.
-
-‘Pass her on to me,’ said Captain Manton; and Edgar tossed her into her
-father’s arms.
-
-‘Back again,’ she cried, and she was tossed to Edgar again.
-
-The captain watched them for a few moments as they played on the deck,
-and then cast an anxious look at the sky. He knew they were in for a
-storm, probably a bad one.
-
-During the night Edgar heard the vessel creak and groan, and her
-timbers strain in a most unusual manner. The sailors were hard at work
-on deck, and he knew the storm must have burst upon them. He turned
-over in his berth, and felt thankful the _Distant Shore_ was such a
-safe vessel, and her captain a trustworthy seaman.
-
-Edgar had some difficulty in reaching the deck next morning. Not a
-single passenger was in the saloon as he staggered through, holding on
-first to one thing, and then another.
-
-‘You had better keep below, sir,’ said one of the stewards; ‘you’ll
-stand a good chance of being blown overboard if you venture on deck. We
-are finishing up with a real bad storm.’
-
-‘That’s just what I want to see,’ said Edgar.
-
-‘You can’t get out that way,’ said the man; ‘the hatches are down. Come
-this way, and I will show you how to get on deck.’
-
-Edgar followed the man to the fore-part of the ship, and was well
-knocked about during the journey.
-
-‘Go up there, and you’ll be able to see what it’s like before you go on
-deck,’ said the steward.
-
-‘Just as well to look before I leap, I suppose,’ said Edgar.
-
-‘I don’t think you’ll want to leap on deck when you have had a look
-out,’ was the reply.
-
-Edgar climbed up the steep steps, holding on with all his might. When
-he reached the top he saw there was a thick glass with bars across it.
-He could see well enough through the glass, and the sight almost took
-away his breath.
-
-A huge wave towered high above the ship, and Edgar thought if it came
-over the deck the vessel must surely go down. The _Distant Shore_ gave
-a mad plunge, and he nearly lost his foothold. The ship seemed to dive
-down into the depths of the sea, and then, coming up again, shook
-herself all over. On second thoughts Edgar decided to remain where he
-was, or rather down below in the saloon. Captain Manton entered a few
-minutes after Edgar succeeded in finding his way back.
-
-‘Well, my lad, you’ve got a storm at last,’ said the captain; ‘I hope
-you are satisfied. My wife and Eva are in their cabin, and I don’t
-think they are quite so pleased as you are about the weather. It will
-get worse before it mends.’
-
-‘Worse?’ said Edgar. ‘Why, it’s blowing a regular hurricane, and the
-sea is running as high as the ship.’
-
-‘How did you find that out?’ said Captain Manton. ‘I gave orders no one
-was to be allowed on deck.’
-
-Edgar explained, and the captain was satisfied.
-
-‘So you did not like the look of things?’ he asked.
-
-‘No,’ said Edgar. ‘I think I am safer here, although I confess I feel a
-little queer.’
-
-Captain Manton smiled as he replied:
-
-‘Sea-sickness will soon cure you of a longing for storms. I’d advise
-you to turn in before you have to be carried to your berth.’
-
-‘Oh, it’s not so bad as that,’ said Edgar. ‘It will pass off.’
-
-‘No doubt,’ said the captain with a meaning smile.
-
-All that day the storm raged, and the _Distant Shore_ battled with
-it. As night came on, Captain Manton became anxious. He knew they
-were nearing the coast of New South Wales, and the wind was driving
-them straight in that direction. He tried in vain to alter the ship’s
-course, but he could not keep out to sea; some uncontrollable current
-appeared to drive the vessel along. As the night wore on there were no
-signs of the storm abating; in fact, the gale was worse than ever.
-
-A terrible crash made everyone on board quake. A huge sea dashed over
-the ship, sweeping her deck well-nigh clear. The boats were smashed to
-atoms; two sailors were washed overboard, and Captain Manton was dashed
-against his cabin and almost stunned. Before the _Distant Shore_ could
-right herself another merciless sea swept over her, and at the same
-moment the rudder chain snapped, and the vessel swung helplessly round.
-
-Captain Manton at once realized the danger they were in. By the fitful
-light of the moon he saw the terrible havoc the waves had made on deck.
-Then he saw something that made his heart quail; it was the flashing of
-the light from South Head lighthouse. Well might a brave man tremble at
-the thought of being dashed to pieces on those great rocks. His ship
-was no longer under control, and he could do nothing to save her from
-being driven to destruction. Had the steering gear held firm he might
-have tried to dash through the Heads into the harbour. That would have
-been a mere chance; but even this, small as it was, had gone. Despair
-seized upon him, and held him in chains; but he burst the bonds at the
-thought of the lives of those on board. They were still some distance
-from the Heads; the light flashed out many miles to sea. He must
-prepare them as quietly as possible to await their fate.
-
-Leaving the mate in charge of the vessel, he went below. He made for
-Edgar’s cabin and entered without knocking.
-
-Edgar was wide awake and dressed, and he knew there must be something
-wrong when he saw the captain.
-
-‘What is it?’ said Edgar. ‘Any danger?’ and he tumbled out of his berth.
-
-‘You are a brave lad,’ said Captain Manton, ‘and I have come to you
-first. There is no time to lose. We are in deadly peril. I have no
-control over the ship, and we are being blown straight for the rocks.’
-
-‘What can I do?’ said Edgar.
-
-He was pale, but perfectly calm.
-
-‘Very little,’ said Captain Manton; ‘but you can set a good example. A
-panic will only make matters worse. If the passengers are kept under
-control, it may be possible to save some of them. Will you call them up
-in the saloon cabin? Tell them to dress, and try and calm them. I will
-tell my wife and take her and Eva up with me. You will find them in my
-cabin. If it comes to the worst, do what you can for them. I must stick
-to the ship. I’ll save her if I can, but I see no chance at present.
-Good-bye!’
-
-He held out his hand and Edgar gripped it hard. They looked firmly into
-each other’s eyes. They were not afraid of facing death. Edgar seemed
-to have grown older, and Captain Manton saw the look of determination
-on his face and thought to himself:
-
-‘This lad will not fail me. He will give his life to save those I love.’
-
-‘Good-bye,’ said Edgar, and without another word he went to rouse his
-fellow-passengers.
-
-So well did he accomplish his difficult task that, although the peril
-they were in was understood, there was no panic. Happily there were
-very few women and children on board, and the men behaved well.
-
-It was an awful sight, Edgar thought: the saloon filled with people
-hastening to their death, awaiting the summons from the captain, ‘All
-hands on deck,’ which meant they were to sell their lives as dearly as
-possible. The very suddenness of the danger appeared to have taken all
-sense of fear away. Not a word was spoken; the sobbing of children,
-and the half-smothered, heart-rending groan of some poor mother, could
-alone be heard.
-
-A great rush of wind, followed by a loud shout, aroused them:
-
-‘All hands on deck!’
-
-Edgar led the way, and then stood by while the women and children were
-helped up the stairs. The men followed. Edgar was the last to leave the
-saloon. Once on deck he saw what their danger was, and from whence it
-came. The lighthouse stood high up on the rocks, flashing across the
-sea, and they were so near now that the rays lighted up the faces of
-those in deadly peril on the doomed ship. Edgar forced his way towards
-the captain’s cabin, and found Mrs. Manton and Eva crouching down,
-overcome with fear. He spoke a few words of encouragement, and little
-Eva looked up into his face with wistful eyes.
-
-Then Edgar looked round the ship as the light flashed on it again. He
-saw pale, blanched faces all round him, men clinging in desperation to
-ropes and bars, and women holding their children fast, themselves held
-by strong men’s disengaged arms. It was an awful sight, but Edgar felt
-no fear for himself as he looked at it. He thought of the grand voyage
-they had gone through, and how near they were to their destination.
-The good ship was struggling on, and after going these thousands of
-miles was to be dashed to pieces at the very entrance to the harbour
-of safety. His mind wandered to those at home, and he seemed to see his
-father and sister sitting in the dear old room at Elm Lodge, as on that
-last night in the home he loved so well. Their voices seemed to ring in
-his ears, giving him hope and encouragement. He smiled faintly as he
-imagined he could hear his father say:
-
-‘You’re in a tight fix, my lad, but never despair; be brave and fight
-to the end.’
-
-A loud cry of despair echoed through the night. It was wafted to the
-watchers on the rocks, who stood there helpless, unable to lend a hand
-to save the men and women going to sure destruction. Again it rose
-above the roar of the sea, and Edgar shuddered as he heard it.
-
-Well might the doomed ones cry aloud. To the right of them, not many
-yards away, yawned a large opening between the gigantic rocky Heads.
-Through that opening lay safety and rest, and yet no power on earth
-could drive the _Distant Shore_ through it. Facing them was another
-gap, but there was no opening there; the solid rock rose straight out
-of the sea. On came the _Distant Shore_ through the boiling, seething
-mass of waters.
-
-Captain Manton stood at his post. Once he cast his eyes in the
-direction of his cabin, and a satisfied smile played over his face as
-he saw Edgar there.
-
-‘My life for theirs, O God!’ he cried.
-
-He was not a man given to many prayers, but he believed his cry would
-be heard.
-
-Edgar looked ahead. He saw the vessel heaved high upon the waves; he
-saw the merciless rock in front. There was not a moment to spare. He
-rushed into the cabin.
-
-‘Give me Eva,’ he said. ‘You will have a better chance alone.’
-
-The mother pressed her child to her heart and smothered her with kisses.
-
-Edgar snatched the child away and sprang out of the cabin. At the same
-moment there was a terrific crash, a rending and splitting of timbers,
-cries and groans, shrieks for help, and strange, unearthly sounds.
-
-Edgar, with the child firmly clasped in his arms, was hurled against
-the side of the vessel. He felt it give way, and as he glanced round he
-saw the ship shattered into a thousand pieces, and great timbers hurled
-high into the air. Then he felt the water rush over him, he was lifted
-off his feet and flung into the furious waves, with little Eva still
-clasped firm in his arms.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII. WHAT THE MORNING BROUGHT FORTH.
-
-
-And what of the watchers on South Head? Wal Jessop’s summons had been
-obeyed, and a small knot of men, and one or two women, stood looking
-out to sea at the doomed ship.
-
-‘What is she, Wal?’ said one man. ‘Do you know her name?’
-
-‘Not for certain; but I’m afraid it’s the _Distant Shore_,’ replied
-Jessop.
-
-‘Captain Manton? I hope not,’ was the reply.
-
-‘She’s helpless,’ said Jessop. ‘There’s no control over that ship. It’s
-awful! Here we are, and cannot lend a helping hand. No boat could live
-in such a sea; no man could swim near those rocks.’
-
-They saw the ship lifted upon the top of the waves, and then sink out
-of sight again. The large vessel was no more to the merciless sea than
-a mere cork.
-
-‘It will not be many minutes now,’ said Jessop to his wife; and she
-shuddered, and stepped back from the cliffs. ‘Go home, Mary,’ he said;
-‘this is no place for you.’
-
-‘I’ll face it now I’m here,’ she said; ‘the crash will be awful. Can
-nothing be done to save them?’
-
-‘Nothing,’ he replied. ‘We must wait and see what the morning brings
-forth; the sea may have gone down by then. There’s very little hope
-that anyone will be saved.’
-
-They crowded dangerously near the edge of the cliffs, and strained
-their eyes in the direction of the ship.
-
-Suddenly the vessel shot upright under them, deep down below. She was
-heaved forward with tremendous force on the waves, and then came the
-crash, which seemed to shake the rock upon which they stood. It was an
-awful sound, this rending of timbers, the grinding and splitting to
-pieces of a fine ship, with her living freight, within a few yards of
-the harbour.
-
-Cries came up from this abyss and made strong men tremble and weep.
-Cries for help, and they could not help, although there was not a man
-amongst them but would have risked his life cheerfully had he thought
-there was the slightest hope of saving those on board.
-
-They heard the ship grinding on the rocks, they heard groans and
-shrieks, and in a few moments there came an awful stillness. Even the
-waves seemed awed by this terrible disaster, and there was a lull in
-the storm. The wind dropped quickly and moaned dismally.
-
-Wal Jessop lay flat down, and, while a man held his legs, peered into
-the depths below, but he could see nothing but the white foam from the
-waves. There was not a trace of the vessel, so far as he could make out.
-
-‘We must wait till morning, but it’s weary work,’ he said. ‘Would to
-God we could do something to help them! They’re beyond help now, I’m
-afraid. Poor Manton!’
-
-‘Then, you feel sure it’s the _Distant Shore_?’
-
-‘I have a presentiment it is. She’s due shortly, and Manton always
-liked to make a quick passage. If it is the _Distant Shore_, it will be
-the last trip he will ever make,’ said Jessop.
-
-‘What shall we do as soon as it’s light?’
-
-Wal Jessop was always the man addressed; the others recognised him as
-the guiding hand in this trouble.
-
-‘We must have ropes ready,’ he said. ‘I’m going down the rocks as soon
-as it’s light.’
-
-‘No, no,’ said his wife; ‘you must not, Wal. It will mean death to you,
-and then to me. If the rope broke you would be dashed to pieces. Wait
-until you can row round through the Heads.’
-
-‘Nay, my lass,’ he said kindly; ‘even if the gale drops, the sea will
-be too rough for any boat to reach the rocks below. I must go down.
-There’ll be no danger, with a stout rope and sturdy arms to hold me.
-Think of it, lass--I might save a life. It’s worth the risk, if only
-for the chance.’
-
-She knew it would be useless to try and dissuade him; but she
-determined to remain and watch.
-
-It was weary work waiting for the light to come. Ropes had been
-procured, and a heavy crowbar driven firmly down.
-
-‘No danger of them breaking,’ said Wal Jessop as he handled the ropes.
-‘You must keep the rope well away from the rock as you lower me down;
-if it frays on a jagged sharp edge it might break.’
-
-At last daylight began to appear, and in these climes there is not long
-to wait before it is quite light.
-
-As the men looked over the cliffs they could see no sign of any living
-creature. Spars and timbers had been dashed upon the rocks, and
-remained there, but they were the only signs of the wreck.
-
-‘If timber can lodge there,’ said Jessop, ‘maybe some poor fellow has
-managed to be cast up out of reach of the waves. Make ready quickly; we
-must lose no time.’
-
-The men set to work with a will. The stoutest rope was not long enough
-to reach to the foot of the rocks, and another long one had to be
-fastened on. The end was made fast to the iron bar, bags were put along
-the edge of the cliff to prevent the rope fraying, and, when Wal Jessop
-had inspected everything, and found all right, he tied the rope round
-his waist, and stood ready to make the descent. It was a perilous task,
-for the wind was still high and the face of the rocks dangerous, having
-so many sharp projections against which he might be knocked as he was
-lowered down.
-
-He kissed his wife, and bade her think only of the duty he had to
-perform; and if there was a spice of danger in it, why, so much the
-better, and the more credit to a man for undertaking it.
-
-‘You ought to be proud I’m going to do it,’ he said; ‘there’s not a
-man here who does not envy me the job, and would like to take it on
-himself.’
-
-‘That’s so,’ said one of the men. ‘It’s because we have such respect
-for your husband that we’re letting him have first turn. If he wants to
-go down a second time, I reckon there’ll be a dispute about it.’
-
-Wal Jessop crawled to the edge of the rocks, and then, taking a firm
-hold of the rope, slipped quickly over. Two men held the rope near
-the edge, the others were behind, and one man stood watching Jessop,
-giving the signal when to stop and when to lower.
-
-The wind was blowing strong from the sea, and it took Wal Jessop all
-his time to keep himself clear of the rocks. He dared not push off with
-his feet because the wind swung him back violently. He was bruised and
-scratched, and his clothes were torn, when he reached a rock above the
-level of the waves, and signalled to stop lowering.
-
-‘He’s down,’ said the man giving orders to the others, ‘and in a safe
-place, too.’
-
-Mary Jessop felt thankful for this, but she would not be at rest until
-her husband reached the top again.
-
-Wal Jessop unfastened the rope and left it dangling. He then sat down
-and looked around him. Those above could merely see a small figure
-contemplating the scene. On all sides there was ample evidence of a
-wreck, but it seemed to Wal Jessop the vessel had been shattered to
-atoms.
-
-‘Not much chance of anyone being saved,’ he thought sadly. ‘How could
-they be dashed against these rocks and live?’
-
-He scrambled along from rock to rock and found very little. A hat
-or a coat he came across, lodged high up on some projection. There
-was plenty of timber and odds and ends, but not a sign of any living
-soul. He searched in one direction, towards the Heads, for about an
-hour, and then began to make his way in the opposite direction. It was
-hard work, for the sea was still rough and the wind high, and it was
-difficult for him to obtain a firm foothold on the slippery slabs and
-slanting rocks.
-
-He was about to give up his search, when he caught sight of something
-white lying on a high level piece of rock some distance away.
-
-‘Wonder what that is?’ he thought. ‘A white jacket, or something of the
-sort, I expect. Anyhow, now I am here, I may as well go and see.’
-
-He scrambled along, and as he neared the object that had attracted his
-attention, his heart began to beat fast. The white garment he fancied
-covered a human form. Could it be possible? Had some poor fellow been
-cast up by the sea on to a ledge of safety? He hurried on, in the hope
-that after all he might be able to save a human life. What a feeling of
-exultation comes over a man when he snatches a fellow-creature from the
-jaws of death! Wal Jessop had saved men’s lives before this time, but
-he was anxious to save someone from this fearful wreck if possible.
-
-As he struggled on over the uneven rocks, he saw that the ledge upon
-which the white object lay was out of the reach of the waves. His
-practised eyes saw at a glance that, if a man had been cast up on to
-this ledge, he would not be washed back by the receding waves. He
-reached the foot of the rock, and found it a difficult matter to get
-up the side. He walked round and found a better foothold on the other
-side. It was not long before he reached the top, and there he saw a
-sight that brought tears to his eyes.
-
-Stretched on the rock lay a youth, calm and still--so still that Wal
-Jessop thought him dead. It was a comely face he looked upon, a face he
-knew would be fair, indeed, if life still remained to bring back light
-to the closed eyes. Clasped in the left arm of the youth was a child,
-and she also lay insensible.
-
-Wal Jessop looked down upon them with great sorrow in his heart.
-
-‘A brave lad this,’ he thought. ‘He must have fought hard to save that
-little lass--a brave lad, indeed, to risk his life for a little child.’
-
-He stooped over them. He had a flask of brandy in his coat-pocket.
-He placed his hand on the youth’s heart and felt there was a slight
-pulsation. He could not resist a loud cry of joy.
-
-‘He’s alive yet!’ he shouted. Then he felt the child’s heart. Yes, it
-still beat faintly.
-
-‘Both alive!’ he cried. ‘Thank God, they may be saved!’
-
-He forced some brandy into the youth’s mouth, and a few drops he gave
-to the child. Then he pulled off his coat, wrapped the little girl in
-it, and began to rub the youth’s limbs and body to try and restore
-animation.
-
-‘Not a case of half-drowned,’ he said. ‘They’ve been thrown up on to
-this ledge and stunned. They must have been insensible for some hours.
-He’s got a nasty cut at the back of his head, and the little one has a
-big bruise on her temple.’
-
-After rubbing the youth’s hand for some time Wal Jessop saw signs of
-returning life. The sight gladdened him, and he redoubled his efforts.
-Presently he heard a faint sigh, the youth’s eyes opened, and he gazed
-wildly about him as though thinking of and looking for something. In a
-few minutes he gasped:
-
-‘The child! Little Eva--where----’
-
-‘Safe, my lad. She’s here,’ said Wal Jessop.
-
-A satisfied smile passed over the youth’s face, and he sank again into
-insensibility.
-
-‘A brave lad,’ muttered Wal Jessop again. ‘Thinks of naught but the
-saving of that little one.’
-
-A faint cry made him turn his head, and he saw a movement under his
-coat.
-
-‘The warmth has brought her round,’ he thought. ‘I’ll attend to her
-first. He won’t come round again yet awhile.’
-
-He took up the girl and she opened her eyes wide.
-
-‘Where is I?’ she lisped. ‘Where’s my daddy and my mammy? Where’s Eddy?
-Who is you?’ Then, as she caught sight of the sea and the rocks, she
-began to cry.
-
-‘I’ll take care of you, my lamb,’ said Wal Jessop. ‘Eddy’s
-asleep--look.’
-
-The girl looked at him and said quickly:
-
-‘No wake him. Eddy very tired. He carried me long way.’
-
-‘Then, I’ll take you home and come back for him,’ said Wal. ‘Give me a
-kiss, little one.’
-
-She put up her face and he kissed her tenderly. Then he took her up
-in his arms and carried her as gently as possible over the rocks back
-towards the rope. Tired and worn out, the child was soon fast asleep.
-
-‘That’s well,’ said Wal Jessop as he hurried on; ‘she’ll not be
-frightened as we are hauled up. There’ll be something for Mary to do
-here. We’ve no young one of our own. Perhaps we are to have this one
-from the sea. We’ll see about it when the lad can tell us all.’
-
-When Wal Jessop reached the rope he gave a loud hallo, and held up the
-sleeping child. He could hear the ringing cheers from those on the top.
-
-Having made the rope fast and tied the child firmly round the waist, he
-gave the signal to haul up, and soon reached the top without any mishap.
-
-‘Here, lass, there’s a present for you,’ said Wal, as he laid the
-sleeping child in his wife’s arms.
-
-Mary Jessop kissed it fondly, and could find no words to express her
-feelings.
-
-‘There’s a lad down yonder,’ said Wal Jessop. ‘I must go back for him.
-You take the child home, Mary. I’ll not be long. There’s no danger.
-It’s a safe trip. I’ve been once, and I know the way. Now, lads, lower
-me down again, and we’ll soon have the young fellow up here. He’s a
-fine-looking chap, and I’m glad I’m the one to rescue him. Lower away,
-boys!’
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII. IN WAL JESSOP’S COTTAGE.
-
-
-When Wal Jessop reached Edgar Foster--for it was our hero who had been
-so miraculously saved from sudden death--he found him sitting with his
-back to the rock, and gazing out to sea with wistful eyes. Edgar smiled
-faintly as he approached, and held out his hand, which Wal Jessop
-seized in a hearty clasp. Edgar began to talk, but Wal Jessop told him
-not to excite himself, and to leave anything he had to say until they
-were safe and sound on the top of the rocks.
-
-‘The little one is safe,’ said Wal. ‘It was easy enough to take her up,
-but it will be more difficult with you, and I shall want you to help me
-all you can.’
-
-‘I’ll do my best,’ said Edgar, ‘but I feel very weak. What an awful
-night it was!’ And he shuddered as he spoke.
-
-‘You’ll be able to tell me about it later on,’ said Wal Jessop. ‘Try
-and walk a bit; put your arm round my neck, and lean on me heavily.’
-
-Edgar managed to stand on his feet, but he felt so weak he almost fell
-down again. However, he succeeded in dragging along, with Wal Jessop’s
-assistance, as far as the dangling rope. Edgar saw how long it was, and
-said:
-
-‘Will it bear us both? You ought not to run any risk.’
-
-It’s strong enough to hold an elephant,’ said Wal; ‘and there’s plenty
-of good sturdy fellows on top to haul us up.’
-
-Without further delay he proceeded to make preparations for the ascent.
-He tied the rope firmly under Edgar’s arms, then made a loop lower down
-in which he could fix his feet. When Wal had put his feet in the loop,
-Edgar put his feet on the top of Wal Jessop’s, and, facing each other,
-they were ready to be hauled up. Wal Jessop also had his arms round
-Edgar, in case the rope was not sufficient support for him.
-
-‘Do you feel firmly fixed?’ said Wal.
-
-‘Yes,’ replied Edgar; ‘but it will be a stiffish pull for those on the
-top.’
-
-‘Never you fear!’ said Wal. ‘They’ll manage it. It’s what they have
-been at all their lives, hauling in ropes either on board or ashore.’
-
-He gave the signal, and they commenced slowly to ascend.
-
-It was with a hearty cheer the men hauled them out of danger, and when
-Wal Jessop and Edgar stood on the top of the rock the good fellows
-capered with delight like so many schoolboys. They surrounded Edgar,
-and were so boisterous in their expressions of goodwill towards him,
-that Wal Jessop felt he ought to interpose, or else the excitement
-would be too much for the lad.
-
-‘Hold hard, boys!’ he shouted, forcing them back. ‘This is my prize,
-and I’m going to carry him off home. A rest will do him good, and we
-shall hear all about his escape later on.’
-
-‘What ship was it?’ asked one of the men.
-
-‘The _Distant Shore_,’ said Edgar sadly.
-
-‘And the skipper?’
-
-‘Lost--all lost, I am afraid, but myself and the little one,’ said
-Edgar.
-
-Good-natured Wal Jessop, wishing to prevent more painful questions,
-hurried Edgar Foster away from the scene as quickly as he could walk.
-
-‘Where are we going to?’ asked Edgar.
-
-‘My cottage,’ said Wal. ‘The wife has taken the young one, and has
-probably put her in bed ere this.’
-
-‘You are very kind to us,’ said Edgar.
-
-‘I shouldn’t be much of a man if I didn’t do all I could for you,’ said
-Wal. ‘I’ll bet you’d have done as much for me.’
-
-‘I should have done my best,’ said Edgar.
-
-‘I know it, lad, and therefore there is all the more pleasure in
-helping you. Mind the path here, it’s a bit rough and steep,’ said Wal.
-
-When they reached Wal Jessop’s cottage, Edgar felt exhausted, and sank
-helplessly into the easy-chair Mrs. Jessop placed ready for him. Tears
-stood in her eyes as she looked at Edgar’s youthful face, and thought
-of those who would mourn him as lost until they learned the truth.
-
-‘Poor lad!’ she said in a whisper to Wal. ‘He’s worn out, and no
-wonder. You must get him into bed, and I’ll make something hot for him.’
-
-‘He’ll be best there,’ said Wal. ‘Here goes!’
-
-He lifted Edgar out of the chair, and carried him into a small bedroom.
-He helped him off with his clothes, such as they were, all ragged and
-torn, and wrapped him in the blankets. Mrs. Jessop brought him a bowl
-of beef-tea and bread, and after Edgar had done justice to it, he fell
-into a sound sleep.
-
-‘Wonder who he is?’ said Mrs. Jessop. ‘He’s a fine lad.’
-
-‘And a brave one,’ said Wal. ‘He’ll sleep a good many hours, I guess.
-I’ll go up to Sydney by the boat, and give what information I can about
-the wreck. I’ll hurry back as quickly as possible. If he asks for me,
-tell him I shall not be long away. Where’s the child?’
-
-Mrs. Jessop, with her finger on her lips to ensure silence, noiselessly
-opened their bedroom door.
-
-Fast asleep in his own bed Wal Jessop saw the child he had rescued from
-a cruel death. How calm and peaceful she lay; not a thought of trouble
-haunted her as she slept! One tiny hand peeped out from the coverlet,
-and Wal Jessop could not resist covering it with his large hand. The
-little one returned the pressure, but did not awake.
-
-‘I wish she belonged to us,’ he said to his wife.
-
-‘So do I,’ was her reply. ‘Who knows but what she may do, if she has
-lost her father and mother?’
-
-‘We shall find out all about them when I return,’ he said. ‘Rest is
-what they want now, poor things. I’ll bring some clothes back for him.
-You can get the little one some when you go out. It will be a bit of
-fresh shopping for you,’ he added with a smile that brought the colour
-into his wife’s cheeks.
-
-When Wal Jessop reached Sydney, he found everyone in a state of
-excitement about the wreck, so many different accounts having been
-given by irresponsible persons. But he did not stay to gratify mere
-idle curiosity. He went direct to the offices of the Marine Board, and
-gave all the evidence he could about the wreck of the _Distant Shore_.
-His story was listened to with rapt attention, for Wal Jessop was a man
-who could be depended upon in all he did or said.
-
-At the conclusion of his story, Captain Fife, President of the Board,
-complimented him upon his bravery, and asked him to bring the youth he
-had rescued to the offices of the Board as soon as he was in a proper
-state to give his version of the disaster.
-
-‘By the way, what sort of a lad is he, Jessop?’ asked Captain Fife.
-
-‘If looks go for anything, he’s one of the right sort,’ said Wal; ‘and
-that he’s brave goes without saying, after what I have told you.’
-
-‘Then, I dare say I can find him something to do,’ said Captain Fife;
-‘that is, I mean, if he has no friends out here to help him.’
-
-‘I’m sure it is very kind of you,’ said Wal. ‘I don’t know who or what
-he is, at present; but he’s been brought up a cut above me, I guess.’
-
-‘That may be,’ said Captain Fife, smiling; ‘but if he turns out as good
-a man as Wal Jessop, his father will have reason to be proud of him.’
-
-Wal Jessop’s honest face shone with pleasure at this remark, and he
-said:
-
-‘If I can be of any use to him, he’s welcome to all I know about
-Australia.’
-
-‘And that is more than most of us,’ said Captain Fife. ‘He is in good
-hands, at any rate. Bring him here as soon as you can.’
-
-Wal Jessop made the best of his way home. He avoided the busy shipping
-quarters, but was waylaid by several of his acquaintances, who knew he
-could tell them more about the wreck than anyone. The pressmen were
-also on his track, and, in order to quiet them, Wal Jessop gave them a
-short account of what had occurred.
-
-‘It’s not all I know,’ he said at the conclusion of his remarks; ‘but
-it is quite enough for you chaps with vivid imaginations to work upon.
-I reckon, when I read the accounts, they’ll be equal to anything that
-could have been strung together on the spot. Some of you have fathered
-stirring yarns on to me before now. Give me a rest this time, and I’ll
-forgive you.’
-
-‘We can’t let you off so easily, Wal,’ said one pressman. ‘If I don’t
-get your photo for my paper I shall have to find another shop to work
-in.’
-
-‘You’ll get no photo from me,’ said Wal. ‘I’m not a particularly
-good-looking man, but I draw the line at those outrages in your paper,
-Billy.’
-
-When Wal Jessop arrived home, he found Edgar had just awoke out of a
-refreshing sleep, for which he felt much better.
-
-‘I have brought you some new clothes,’ said Wal; ‘your garments were
-rather knocked about with rough usage. How do you feel now, my lad?’
-
-‘Excepting the pain in my head, I am all right,’ said Edgar. ‘It is
-very good of you to purchase me clothes. I have lost all I had on board
-the ship. I put a draft in my coat-pocket, but I had to get rid of my
-coat to save our lives. I must let my father know I am saved, as he
-will be anxious about me when he hears of the wreck.’
-
-‘I’ll send a cablegram,’ said Wal. ‘We can manage to advance you cash
-enough,’ he added, smiling. ‘Now put on your clothes and come and have
-a chat with the lassie.’
-
-‘She’s a dear little child,’ said Edgar, ‘and the captain’s daughter.’
-
-‘Poor Manton!’ said Wal; ‘I fancied as much. She’s got the look of her
-father about her.’
-
-When Edgar appeared in the cosy room, he saw Eva quietly sitting on
-Mrs. Jessop’s knees. The child cried out, and slipping down, toddled
-towards him, holding out both hands.
-
-Edgar clasped her in his arms and kissed her fondly.
-
-‘Poor little Eva,’ he said. ‘I promised to save you if I could, and,
-now I have done so, I will look after you.’
-
-Eva commenced to prattle in her childish way, and asked for her mother.
-
-‘She’s gone a long way off,’ said Edgar. ‘You will stay with me, won’t
-you, dear?’
-
-‘Yes. Stay till mamma comes back,’ said Eva. ‘Where’s daddy?’
-
-‘Gone with mamma,’ said Edgar. ‘He said you must be a good girl.’
-
-‘Always good girl with Eddy,’ she said, snuggling up against him.
-
-This was more than Mrs. Jessop’s motherly heart could stand, and she
-beat a hasty retreat.
-
-‘Me go too,’ said Eva; and Edgar let her patter after Mrs. Jessop.
-
-‘Now,’ said Wal Jessop, ‘we may as well introduce ourselves. I’m Pilot
-Walter Jessop, and am as well known along this coast as a good many
-sailors.’
-
-‘Edgar Foster is my name,’ said Edgar, who proceeded to relate how
-it came about he was on board the _Distant Shore_. He also told Wal
-Jessop about his school-days and life at home. Wal Jessop was a man who
-inspired confidence, and Edgar felt it would be good for him to make a
-friend of the man who had rescued him from a watery grave.
-
-‘We had a splendid passage,’ said Edgar, ‘until we were somewhere off
-the coast of Tasmania, I believe. It was then the storm commenced to
-brew, and Captain Manton became anxious. We could not have had a
-better skipper, and no blame can be attached to him for the loss of the
-ship. It was a pure accident. The rudder chains snapped at a critical
-moment, and the ship was not under control. It was a terrible time, and
-I shall never forget it. Captain Manton asked me to do what I could
-to save his wife and child, as he had to try and look after the ship
-and those on board. The last I saw of him he was standing as cool and
-collected as though sailing calmly into port. What the agony of his
-mind must have been I fail to imagine. When the crash came I snatched
-Eva from Mrs. Manton’s arms, and directly afterwards I was hurled
-against the side of the vessel, and the support almost immediately gave
-way. I was pitched into the seething waves, with the child in my arms.
-For a moment I was stunned, but when the dazed feeling passed I caught
-hold of a floating spar, which I managed to grasp with one hand and to
-hold Eva with my other arm. The child was insensible from the shock,
-and luckily for us she did not know what happened.
-
-‘After a few minutes I scrambled on the spar, which was tossed up and
-down by the waves in a fearful manner. I expected every moment would
-be my last, and that we should be dashed to pieces on the rocks. How
-we escaped is really marvellous, and God must have been very near us
-at that time. One huge wave lifted the spar on to the rocks, and as I
-felt it roll backwards I slipped off and clung to a jagged edge of
-rock. Another wave came rushing over us, and must have rolled me higher
-up the rocks, for I remember nothing more until I saw you bending over
-me. I can hardly realize I am saved, and can still hear the roar of the
-waves, and seem to feel the water dashing over me.’
-
-‘When you see the place where you were cast up by the sea,’ said Wal,
-‘you will wonder still more that you were not dashed to pieces. I see
-you are tired now. In the morning we can talk over what is best to be
-done.’
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IX. UP COUNTRY.
-
-
-Edgar Foster accompanied Wal Jessop to Sydney, in order to give
-evidence before the Marine Board as to the cause of the disaster to
-the _Distant Shore_. He found he was the cynosure of all eyes on the
-ferry-boat, for the morning papers had given a glowing account of his
-bravery in saving Eva.
-
-Wal Jessop felt proud of the fine lad by his side, who had so quickly
-recovered from his exertions, and seemed to have almost forgotten the
-horrors of the wreck in looking at the beautiful scene he now saw for
-the first time.
-
-As the ferry-boat left the landing-stage at Watson’s Bay, Wal Jessop
-pointed out the narrow passage through the Heads, and Edgar saw with
-wondering eyes how near the ill-fated ship had been to the harbour of
-refuge.
-
-‘If we could only have been driven through that passage instead of on
-to the rocks,’ said Edgar, ‘we might all have been alive now.’
-
-‘It was a terrible thing to go down so near home,’ said Wal Jessop.
-‘This is one of the best and safest harbours in the world.’
-
-‘I have heard a good deal about it,’ said Edgar, smiling, ‘but I am not
-surprised at the enthusiastic way in which people praise its beauties.
-All I have heard or read gave me a very faint idea of the reality,
-which is far beyond any expectation I had formed.’
-
-‘I’m glad to hear that,’ replied Wal Jessop. ‘People at times are apt
-to consider we “blow” too much about our harbour.’
-
-‘Too much praise cannot be bestowed upon a scene like this,’ said Edgar.
-
-When they arrived at Circular Quay, Wal Jessop took his companion
-to the Marine Board offices, where he left him, and went to send a
-cablegram to Edgar’s father.
-
-Edgar gave his account of the wreck in a manner that at once won the
-respect of Captain Fife and the members of the Board. He modestly put
-his own courageous conduct in the background, and spoke of Captain
-Manton in such a manner that it left no doubt upon the minds of his
-hearers that everything had been done that was possible to save the
-ship. Edgar’s description of the wreck and the bravery of Wal Jessop
-was given in a simple, straightforward style.
-
-Captain Fife watched Edgar narrowly, and came to the conclusion he was
-a lad to be trusted, and also a lad who had received a good education.
-After the Board meeting he took Edgar into his private office, and
-asked him what he intended to do.
-
-‘I hardly know at present,’ replied Edgar, ‘but I have no doubt I shall
-be able to obtain some kind of work until I can look round.’
-
-‘Your name seems familiar to me,’ said Captain Fife.
-
-‘Probably,’ said Edgar, smiling, ‘if you are a lover of cricket.’
-
-Captain Fife jumped up from his chair, and said in astonishment:
-
-‘Surely you are not the son of Robert Foster, who captained the last
-English eleven against our team at Lord’s?’
-
-‘I am,’ said Edgar, ‘and proud of it.’
-
-‘And well you may be, my lad,’ said Captain Fife. ‘The son of such a
-sterling, manly cricketer as Robert Foster will not lack friends in
-Australia. I suppose it is needless to ask if you play?’
-
-‘I am very fond of the game,’ said Edgar, ‘and was captain of my school
-when I left.’
-
-‘We must give you a trial here,’ said Captain Fife, ‘but in the
-meantime I must try and find you something to do.’ He thought for a
-few moments, and then said: ‘How would you like to go up country for
-a time? I have an interest in a station in the West, and I think you
-would enjoy the life. It is very quiet, but the change would in itself
-be a novelty to you.’
-
-‘I should like it immensely,’ said Edgar; ‘I do not care much for a
-town life.’
-
-‘I believe you lost everything in the wreck?’ said Captain Fife.
-
-‘Yes,’ replied Edgar. ‘Wal Jessop has sent a cablegram to my father,
-stating I am safe, and also that I lost all, so I have no doubt he will
-send me out a draft by an early mail to cover expenses. I do not wish
-to draw upon my father continually, and I came out here to earn my
-living if possible.’
-
-‘Glad to hear it,’ said Captain Fife. ‘We have too many young fellows
-out here who live upon money sent them from home. It is a mistaken
-kindness, as it causes them to rely upon others instead of themselves,
-and self-reliance a man must have to get on in this world.’
-
-Edgar was much impressed with what Captain Fife said, and knew it was
-sound advice he gave.
-
-‘My father always taught me to hold my own,’ said Edgar, ‘and to do
-what is right. Of course I got into scrapes sometimes at school, but
-I never shirked the consequences. I fought a lad called Bully Rakes,
-and beat him, the first week I was at Redbank. I was in the right, and
-therefore I felt confident of success, although he was a much stronger
-lad.’
-
-‘So you can box as well as play cricket,’ said Captain Fife, smiling;
-‘you’ll get on all right here, I can see. Can you ride well?’
-
-‘Fairly well,’ said Edgar. ‘I followed the hounds during the holidays
-when I had an opportunity. I should like to have a chance in the
-cricket-field here.’
-
-‘So you shall,’ said Captain Fife. ‘I will take care your going up
-country does not injure your prospects in that line. We have a very
-good team on the station, and you will have plenty of practice to keep
-your hand in. Some of our best men have been drawn from up country.’
-
-It was decided that Edgar, after a week’s stay in Sydney with Wal
-Jessop, should go up to Yanda, and try how the life suited him.
-
-‘I will advance you enough money to keep you going,’ said Captain Fife,
-‘and you can repay me when you have “knocked up a cheque,” as we say
-here.’
-
-Edgar left Captain Fife’s office feeling he had been most fortunate.
-His heart was heavy when he thought of the _Distant Shore_ and those on
-board who had lost their lives. He could hardly realize, as he walked
-the streets of Sydney, how near he had been to death, and that only a
-day or two ago. He met Wal Jessop, and told him what Captain Fife had
-done.
-
-‘He’s a good sort,’ said Wal--‘a regular out-and-outer. You’ll have
-a real good time at Yanda. It’s different to many stations, for the
-hands up there all pull together, and, my eye! don’t they turn out some
-good sports. Why, Tom Trundle, one of the best fast bowlers we ever had
-in the New South Wales team, came from Yanda. How he learned to bowl
-up there, blest if I know! but that he had learned he quickly proved
-when he tried his hand on the Association Ground. I’ll never forget
-that match,’ went on Wal, warming to his work, as this was one of his
-favourite topics. ‘Tommy was picked to play for the country against the
-town, and the way he made some of the crack players’ stumps fly was a
-caution. Frank Rarey was a good bat--about our best--but the country
-chap sent Frank’s middle stump turning summersaults in the air like a
-clown in a circus. It was as good as a pipe of ‘bacca after a day’s
-hard graft to see the expression on Frank’s face when he saw that stump
-fly. He looked at Tom, and he looked at the shattered wicket. Then he
-walked into the dressing-room and meditated. When the innings was ended
-Frank went up to Tom and said:
-
-‘“You’re a wonder, Trundle. You’ll have to play for the colony next
-time.”
-
-‘Sure enough he did,’ added Wal; ‘and bless me if he didn’t come off
-first pop. He took seven of the Victorian wickets in the very next
-match we had against that colony.’
-
-‘Something like a triumph,’ said Edgar, who listened to Wal’s recital
-with all the ardour of a schoolboy. ‘I only hope I may come off as well
-as he did when I have the luck to play for the colony.’
-
-‘Did Captain Fife say anything about it?’ asked Wal. ‘He’s a rare one
-for cricket, and, in fact, all sorts of sport.’
-
-‘He said if I went up country it would not prejudice my chance in the
-cricket-field,’ said Edgar.
-
-‘Nor will it,’ said Wal. ‘It will be far better for you to go up
-country than remain hanging about town.’
-
-‘I shall have to leave Eva behind until some of Captain Manton’s
-friends have been communicated with. My father will probably see to
-that when he learns the news. I must write him a long letter by the
-next mail, and tell him all about the wreck and how bravely Pilot
-Jessop acted.’
-
-‘Ay,’ said Wal, with a smile, ‘and if I were you I’d just send him a
-few papers in order to let him see how well his son behaved. That would
-only be fair. As for the little lass, she’s welcome to stop with us as
-long as she’s allowed. It will be a sore trial to my wife to part with
-her. You see, we have no bairn of our own,’ added Wal, with a wistful
-sigh.
-
-‘She could not be in better hands,’ said Edgar. ‘I suppose,’ he asked,
-as a sudden idea occurred to him, ‘there is no possible chance of
-anyone being saved from the wreck? I mean, do you think it possible
-anyone could have drifted out to sea on a portion of the wreck and been
-picked up by a passing boat?’
-
-‘That’s not possible, I think,’ said Wal. ‘No boat left the harbour
-next day, and the storm was so bad, I hardly think anyone could have
-lived through it out at sea.’
-
-‘It was just a thought occurred to me,’ said Edgar. ‘I know every
-search has been made, but one clings to hope, even after all hope has
-gone.’
-
-Wal Jessop took Edgar round Sydney, and showed him several sights.
-The more Edgar saw of the city, the more he marvelled at its wondrous
-growth. He had been taught much at school about the colonies, but
-he had no idea such vast cities as Sydney lay on the other side of
-the world. Young though he was, he saw at once how greatly such
-possessions as Australia must enhance the power and importance of
-the mother-country. He saw how widespread the influence and example
-of England was, and every name and building tended to revive some
-association with the old country.
-
-As he sat in the Botanical Gardens with Wal Jessop, looking over the
-lovely expanse of harbour before them, and the hills and bays of the
-opposite shore, he said:
-
-‘It is only a lad’s opinion, but I think we are not taught sufficient
-about our country’s great possessions abroad when we are at school.’
-
-‘Perhaps not,’ said Wal; ‘but on this side of the world our youngsters
-are taught more about old England than Australia.’
-
-‘That should not be,’ said Edgar. ‘Every child ought to have a
-thorough knowledge of his own country, and, from what little I know of
-it, the history of Australia must be vastly interesting.’
-
-‘It is,’ said Wal, ‘and I have managed to scrape together a good deal
-about it. The early settlers here had no easy time, but they did
-well, and laid the foundation of a promising colony upon a lot of bad
-material. You would hardly think to look at it now that Sydney, a
-century ago, was a convict settlement of only a few huts, and inhabited
-by desperate criminals, many of whom were more like fiends than human
-beings.’
-
-‘There are not many traces of those days left?’ said Edgar
-questioningly.
-
-‘No,’ said Wal, ‘and it is far better they should be obliterated. Now,
-in Tasmania you see more of it. You would find Port Arthur a curious
-old place. It gave me the horrors the first time I saw it.’
-
-They chatted on for some time. Wal Jessop was a good talker, and
-interested a lad of Edgar’s age. Edgar Foster was a manly boy, not a
-boy developed into a man before his time by a forcing process, as too
-often is the case in this age of rapid progress.
-
-On reaching home again, Wal Jessop explained to his wife how Edgar had
-been received by Captain Fife.
-
-‘You’ll not object to keep the little lass here,’ said Wal, ‘while
-Edgar goes up country for a few months?’
-
-‘I should like to keep her for my own,’ said Mrs. Jessop. ‘She is a
-dear child, and will be a joy to our home.’
-
-‘She is a lovable little thing,’ said Edgar, ‘and I am sure will give
-you no trouble. I do not know whether Captain Manton had any relations
-in England, but I imagine he had. In any case, we shall hear something
-before very long. I know I shall leave her in safe hands.’
-
-‘That you may rest assured of,’ said Mrs. Jessop; ‘and I hope you will
-have a good time up country. Captain Fife has evidently taken a fancy
-to you, and he’s a man worth knowing.’
-
-‘That he is, Mary,’ said her husband; ‘and many’s the good turn he’s
-done me.’
-
-‘Which you thoroughly deserved,’ said Edgar, with a smile.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER X. A WILD SCENE.
-
-
-Yanda Station was situated in a wild country, and when Edgar Foster
-arrived there he thought he had never seen such a dreary spot.
-Accustomed to the green fields of old England and her charming rural
-landscapes, Edgar found the barren plains and scraggy trees monotonous.
-Instead of miles upon miles of green, undulating pasture-land, he saw
-brown, hard-baked ground, the stunted grass growing in patches, and
-looking parched and dry for want of water.
-
-Although the first glimpse of Yanda disenchanted Edgar of the ideas he
-had formed of ‘up-country’ scenes, the reception he met with from the
-station hands reconciled him to the prospect before him. Captain Fife
-had written to Benjamin Brody, the manager at Yanda, informing him who
-Edgar Foster was, and how he had behaved at the wreck of the _Distant
-Shore_. He also stated that Edgar was the son of the famous cricketer,
-Robert Foster. This was quite sufficient to ensure Edgar a hearty
-reception, and his arrival was quite an event on the station.
-
-Ben Brody was a born colonial, a man accustomed to take the rough with
-the smooth of life and weld them into an even existence. Brody’s temper
-was none of the best, but he kept it under control. He was a sober man
-in the accepted sense of the word; that is, he never took more liquor
-than he could conveniently carry. There was no better rider at Yanda
-than Ben Brody, and the toughest buck-jumper generally found he had met
-his match when Brody got on to his back.
-
-Fearless and determined, he was the very man to manage the
-somewhat mixed lot of hands on Yanda Station. They had some ‘queer
-customers’--Brody’s expression--on Yanda. It was a wild country, and
-far out of the beaten track. The wonder to most people who took the
-trouble to think about such an outlandish place as Yanda was how it was
-kept going, for they would never have been so rash as to argue that
-Yanda paid its way.
-
-But Yanda, thanks to good management, did pay its way, and Captain Fife
-and others were perfectly satisfied with their investment. Yanda was
-bought cheap at a time when station property in the far West was going
-begging, and the installation of Ben Brody as manager had resulted in
-its turning out a good bargain. Brody was a great believer in sheep,
-but he had not much faith in cattle on Yanda. The hands firmly believed
-that Ben Brody had been reared from a very early age upon lean mutton,
-and that the taste for any other kind of meat was foreign to him.
-
-Ben Brody had a horror of fat sheep. He preferred sheep “all wool,”
-because wool was worth considerably more than flesh. The slaughtering
-of a bullock at Yanda was the signal for much joy on the part of the
-hands. When Ben Brody received the news that Edgar Foster would arrive
-on a certain day at Yanda, he resolved to duly celebrate the event,
-just to give the ‘new chum’ a better idea of the country.
-
-‘What’s come over Brody?’ asked Will Henton. ‘He’s actually ordered the
-slaughtering of a bullock. I am overwhelmed with joy.’
-
-Will Henton was a young fellow who discovered town life too fast for
-him, so had found his way to Yanda, and turned out a useful man.
-
-‘There’s a new hand coming,’ said Harry Noke. ‘Brody’s told me about
-him. He’s the young fellow who rescued that little lass at the wreck of
-the _Distant Shore_, and he’s a son of Robert Foster the cricketer.’
-
-‘No!’ said Will Henton. ‘You can’t mean it. What a slice of luck! He’s
-sure to play cricket well, and we’re short of a man or two.’
-
-‘You know the reason of the slaughter now,’ said Harry. ‘I must confess
-beef will be a change from Brody’s everlasting mutton.’
-
-‘We must give young Foster a good reception,’ said Will.
-
-‘He deserves it,’ said Harry, ‘and he’ll be able to spin us some yarns
-about the wreck.’
-
-‘Plucky young beggar,’ said Will. ‘I’m open to bet you a trifle he can
-box.’
-
-‘You’re mad on boxing,’ said Harry. ‘It would be a blessing if some
-disguised fighting-man came here to knock the conceit out of you.’
-
-The hands at Yanda talked the matter of Edgar’s arrival over, and
-agreed to make things pleasant for him; occasionally they made matters
-rather rough for a new hand, until he paid a substantial footing.
-
-So it came about that there was much feasting and rejoicing when Edgar
-arrived, and he thought them a set of jolly good fellows.
-
-‘The hospitality makes up for the barrenness of the land,’ thought
-Edgar.
-
-There were a good many blackfellows about Yanda, and they were as keen
-on the scent of fresh-killed meat as a hound after a fox. Towards
-night, when the feasting was over, and Ben Brody, Edgar, and several
-of the hands were sitting on the wide veranda running round the
-homestead, dusky forms were seen advancing across the open plain.
-
-‘Have you black men about here?’ asked Edgar in some surprise.
-
-‘Thousands of ’em,’ said Brody, without moving a muscle of his face.
-
-Edgar looked at him, smiling, and said:
-
-‘They must be pretty tame if there are thousands of them. I suppose
-when you first arrived here you brought an army to conquer the country.’
-
-‘We’ll say hundreds,’ said Brody; ‘I must have been thinking of sheep.’
-
-‘Mutton again!’ whispered Will to Harry Noke. ‘He lives on mutton,
-consequently he thinks of sheep.’
-
-‘How many hundred blacks have you on Yanda?’ said Edgar, who had been
-somewhat prepared for Ben Brody’s exaggerations by Wal Jessop.
-
-‘Well, really, I couldn’t say for certain,’ replied Brody; ‘I’ve not
-had ’em mustered lately. When we’ve a bit of spare time I’ll have ’em
-counted for you.’
-
-‘Thanks,’ said Edgar; ‘it is always interesting to ascertain what
-likelihood there is of the original inhabitants of a country becoming
-extinct.’
-
-A roar of laughter greeted Edgar’s reply, and Will Henton said:
-
-‘The young un’s a bit too much for you, Brody. You had better not spin
-him any of those well-seasoned aboriginal yarns of yours, for I fancy
-they won’t wash.’
-
-‘You swallowed some of them, anyway,’ said Ben Brody.
-
-‘Merely to oblige you,’ said Will.
-
-Ben Brody glared at him, and then said:
-
-‘Meat is bad for you, Will; I must in future restrict you to a mutton
-diet.’
-
-‘What are these fellows coming for?’ asked Edgar, as about thirty
-blacks, including a few females, advanced to within a dozen yards or so
-of the veranda.
-
-‘They are on the war-path,’ said Will Henton. ‘The slaughtering of a
-bullock at Yanda is an event of such magnitude that even the natives of
-the country assemble to give thanks on the occasion.’
-
-‘Never mind his chaff,’ said Ben Brody to Edgar; ‘you will have plenty
-of it if you remain here very long. Would you care to see these fellows
-dance, hold a “corroboree” as they call it?’
-
-‘Yes,’ said Edgar, ‘I should very much like to see it.’
-
-‘Then you shall. They have not given us anything in that line lately,’
-said Brody.
-
-He called a big, powerful-looking black, and spoke to him, and made
-signs.
-
-‘I’ve promised them a good square meal if they give us a dance,’ said
-Brody.
-
-Edgar thought it a wild scene as he looked at the dusky forms in the
-moonlight. As far as he could see the endless plain stretched out
-before him. The white, gaunt trees were ghostly and weird, and the hum
-of many insects was in the air.
-
-In a few minutes Edgar heard a low, crooning sound, which gradually
-swelled into a hoarse roar, and then, with a loud shout from their
-leader, the black fellows commenced to dance. They stamped upon the
-hard ground with bare feet until the sound became like the tramp of
-soldiers. Having worked themselves up to a proper pitch of excitement,
-the wild fellows threw their limbs about in the most extraordinary
-fashion. Some of them leaped high into the air, and the women sat and
-clapped their hands and beat them on the ground.
-
-The black men whirled their arms, and waved heavy sticks over their
-heads. Their faces became most repulsive. Most of them had thick, curly
-black hair, which hung down in shaggy locks. Their noses were big,
-coarse, and wide, and their cheek-bones high, while their mouths were
-of great size, and their lips thick.
-
-As Edgar watched them dancing in this strange fashion in the moonlight
-he thought it was the wildest scene he had ever looked upon.
-
-‘Do they never get tired?’ he asked, as the dance continued, and the
-efforts of the blacks did not relax.
-
-‘They have great powers of endurance,’ said Ben Brody. ‘You see the
-big fellow there, to the right? I’ve known him go ninety miles between
-sunset and sunrise without so much as a halt. They are treacherous
-fellows, some of them, but Yacka is a cut above the others. He’s a
-strange fellow. He hails from South Australia, and the blacks around
-here seem afraid of him. Strange to say, he speaks English well, and is
-far better looking than the others. My own impression is that there’s a
-bit of white blood in his veins, although his skin is black. Eh, Yacka,
-come here!’ he shouted.
-
-The black, who was standing alone looking at the dancers, who were now
-slowing down, stepped quickly on to the veranda without an effort.
-
-‘This is Yacka,’ said Brody to Edgar, and then turning to the black, he
-said: ‘A new hand, only arrived to-day. You’ll be able to show him a
-thing or two about Yanda, I reckon.’
-
-Yacka nodded and, holding out his hand towards Edgar, said:
-
-‘He says true. I know much about this country. Much about other country
-far off. Ah, you shake my hand! Good fellow! Yacka your friend.’
-
-Edgar had taken the black’s proffered hand, giving it a hearty shake;
-this he did without a moment’s hesitation.
-
-‘You’ve made friends with Yacka,’ said Brody; ‘that is the way he tests
-a man. I’ve known fellows come here and refuse to shake hands with
-Yacka. Not a blessed black in the whole tribe would help the man who
-declined Yacka’s hand. I dare say it’s quite as clean as a good many
-white men’s hands.’
-
-‘I like the look of him,’ said Edgar, ‘and how well he talks! Have you
-ever tried to make him work as a hand on the station?’
-
-‘Bless you, he wouldn’t demean himself to work like these fellows, and
-if he did they’d buck against it,’ said Brody.
-
-‘Quite right, too,’ said Harry Noke; ‘we don’t want a lot of infernal
-blacks doing station work; they are good for nothing but thieving and
-every sort of iniquity.’
-
-‘Perhaps white men have driven them to it,’ said Edgar; ‘I dare say
-they managed very well before Australia was discovered by Captain Cook.’
-
-‘You cannot make these black fellows understand what civilization
-means,’ said Brody.
-
-‘Rum,’ grunted a quiet-looking man, who had scarcely spoken during the
-evening.
-
-‘When Jim Lee offers a remark, which you may have observed is seldom,’
-said Brody, ‘it is generally to the point. Undoubtedly rum and
-civilization go hand in hand where the blacks are concerned. Apart from
-rum, however, the beggars are too infernally stupid to learn anything.’
-
-‘Yacka seems fairly intelligent,’ said Edgar.
-
-‘I make an exception of Yacka,’ said Ben. ‘He’s sharp enough, and the
-way he carves emu eggs and boomerangs is a caution. The ideas that chap
-can put on an emu egg beat creation. But he’s a thorough wild man,
-although he does talk English well, and has ideas above his fellows.
-You could no more get Yacka to conform to our idea of civilized
-behaviour than you could train a monkey to keep out of mischief. Yacka
-is full of mischief, but it’s a humorous sort of mischief, and does not
-do much harm.’
-
-‘Yacka’s the only useful black we have around here,’ said Will Henton.
-‘He’s a splendid fag in the cricket field, and when he’s extra good we
-let him handle a bat. He shapes well, too, and I’m inclined to think
-Yacka might be developed into a decent cricketer. He rides well, and
-that’s more than the other fellows do; and when he’s handled my gun
-I’ve seen him make some fair shots. The rummy part of the business is
-that Yacka won’t be civilized, as Ben says, and you can’t get him to
-leave the camp.’
-
-Edgar Foster thought a good deal about Yacka that night, and resolved
-to try and make friends with him, and learn something of his past life,
-which he felt sure would be interesting.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XI. YACKA THE BLACK.
-
-
-Edgar Foster, after six months’ experience on Yanda Station, liked the
-life very much. He was popular with the hands, and Ben Brody had taken
-to him in a manner that caused men to marvel. It was seldom Brody made
-a chum of anyone, but he had done so of Edgar, who was young enough to
-be his son.
-
-It was an intense relief to Edgar when he received letters from his
-father and sister. They were letters such as might have been expected
-from them, and the way in which they referred to the terrible loss
-of the _Distant Shore_ brought tears into Edgar’s eyes. His father
-enclosed him a draft, and said he was proud of his son, and knew he had
-risked his life to save Captain Manton’s child. Inquiries had been made
-in every direction, but no relations had been found to claim little
-Eva. Captain Manton had not saved much money, and what he had was in
-the hands of the shipping company to which the _Distant Shore_ belonged.
-
-Robert Foster wrote that he had consulted the chairman of the company,
-and it had been arranged that if no relation claimed Eva she was to
-remain in charge of Wal Jessop and his wife, and a sum of money would
-be paid annually to them. In concluding his letter Robert Foster gave
-his son good advice, telling him to go on as he had commenced, and to
-brave dangers if by doing so he could help others.
-
-Doris Foster wrote Edgar a loving letter, in which she gave him the
-news that Will Brown had sailed for Australia, and also that she had
-heard Raymond Rakes had turned out badly, and been sent to sea:
-
-‘Will has promised to try and make a small fortune in Australia,’ she
-wrote, ‘and when he has done so he is to return to England and ask me
-a certain question which I leave you to guess. Please do not tell him,
-if you see him, that under any circumstances the answer will be “Yes.”
-It might make him lazy if he knew the capture was certain. You are a
-dear, noble, brave brother, and we are very proud of you. I am posting
-you a _Graphic_. You will see therein a portrait of a certain young
-fellow who is styled “The _Distant Shore_ Hero,” which is no more than
-he deserves. Give little Eva a lot of kisses from me. I long to see the
-child you saved so splendidly. I am sure Wal Jessop must be a grand
-man, and his wife a dear, good woman. Please do not marry a black lady,
-and come home as civilized as when you left.’
-
-Edgar read these letters again and again until Ben Brody said:
-
-‘You are a lucky beggar to have such interesting letters. Those I get
-are never worth reading twice. They’re mostly about sheep, and the
-price of wool, and you cannot knock much romance out of those articles.’
-
-Before he had been at Yanda a month, Edgar had shown them how he could
-bat, and also use his fists; and, much to Will Henton’s surprise, he
-had found his match with the gloves on.
-
-‘You’re a hard hitter,’ he said to Edgar; ‘no wonder you made Bully
-Rakes sing small.’
-
-Edgar related many tales about his schooldays, and worked the hands up
-to a pitch of enthusiasm over the celebrated match with Fairfield.
-
-‘Blest if I don’t feel as though I’d seen it!’ said Ben Brody.
-
-‘Good yarn!’ exclaimed Jim Lee, the silent one.
-
-‘What a brute that Rakes must be,’ said Will Henton. ‘Fancy a fellow
-going against his own side. You say he’s gone to sea? I hope he won’t
-come over here; we want none of his sort.’
-
-‘I’d like to meet Will Brown,’ said Ben Brody. ‘Suppose you ask him to
-come up here and try his luck? He’ll not make a fortune very quick, but
-it will keep him out of mischief.’
-
-‘I’ll write to his ship in Sydney when she arrives, and ask him,’ said
-Edgar; ‘I think it would just suit him.’
-
-‘We can always find room for an extra hand or two on Yanda,’ said
-Brody, with a wink, ‘provided they’re the right sort.’
-
-‘You’ll find Will all right,’ said Edgar.
-
-‘If he comes up to your standard he’ll do,’ replied Brody.
-
-There was not much variety in the life at Yanda, but it was new to
-Edgar, and he found much to interest him. He had the usual experience
-with a buck-jumper, and felt the peculiar sensation of being hurled
-into the air, with no certainty as to where he would come down. This is
-how Edgar described his first throw from a buck-jumper to his father:
-
-‘You suddenly feel his back arch, and it nearly cuts you in two.
-Then you discover he has all four legs off the ground at the same
-time. Finally you are shot into space, much in the same way as you
-would go if a gigantic catapult propelled you. The sensation is not
-pleasant, and the knowledge that all your mates are enjoying the
-undignified manner in which you are unseated adds to the general
-discomfiture. However, I am a fair rough-rider now, although there’s
-one horse--“Brody’s buck-jumper,” he’s called--I cannot tackle, and no
-other man on the place with the exception of Brody himself. There’s a
-history attached to this animal which you may hear some day. Brody once
-got him into a horse-box, I believe, and the passengers on the train
-sent a deputation to the guard at the first stopping-place to have
-the horse removed. Someone suggested the animal ought to be shot, but
-Brody’s wrath was so great when he heard this that no further mention
-was made of it. Anyhow, Brody’s buck-jumper had his own way, as he
-always has, for the remainder of the journey.’
-
-Yacka the black had taken to Edgar Foster from the moment he took his
-hand, and during the six months that had passed he was constantly about
-the homestead asking what he could do for him.
-
-‘Bless me if I don’t think you’ll civilize Yacka in time!’ said Brody.
-‘I never knew him come round here so much before. It’s all that
-handshake did it.’
-
-‘He’s a good fellow, although he is black,’ said Edgar. ‘I’m very fond
-of Yacka, but I cannot quite make him out. He seems to have something
-on his mind. I hope he has done nothing very dreadful.’
-
-‘You never know what these black fellows are up to,’ said Brody; ‘but I
-do not think Yacka is deceitful. Revengeful they all are, and if anyone
-harmed Yacka or others belonging to him, I believe he would make it
-particularly warm for him.’
-
-Yacka followed Edgar about with dog-like devotion, and never tired of
-doing odd jobs for him. Edgar watched the black carve wonderful scenes
-on emu eggs, and it was extraordinary the faithfulness with which he
-depicted birds and beasts on these brittle shells.
-
-After taking particular care to carve one egg, Yacka, with a look of
-fear in his eyes, handed it to Edgar.
-
-‘Why, it’s a cave surrounded by rocks and shrubs,’ said Edgar. ‘Where
-did you see it? There is nothing at all like that about here.’
-
-‘No,’ said Yacka, ‘long way off. Tramp, tramp, for miles. Lonely desert
-where no white man ever been--wonderful place. Like to see it?’
-
-The black spoke eagerly, and Edgar saw there was something he had left
-hidden, which he did not care for him to know.
-
-‘It would be no good going such a long journey, Yacka,’ he replied,
-‘because there are no people, and what is to be found when we get
-there? We might starve on the way, or die from want of water.’
-
-‘Plenty water,’ said Yacka. ‘I know the track; no one else knows it.
-There!’ he exclaimed, as he smashed the emu egg he had been at so much
-trouble to carve, ‘no one find it now, not even you.’
-
-‘I should remember the place if I saw it,’ said Edgar. ‘You carve so
-well, and I am sure what you carved on that egg is true to Nature.’
-
-‘Come with Yacka, and I will show you much,’ said the black. ‘Make you
-rich--richer than Master Fife, richer than your Queen; but you must go
-alone with Yacka.’
-
-The black spoke earnestly, and his eyes glistened.
-
-‘I don’t see much chance of making a fortune or finding riches in a
-desert,’ said Edgar. ‘Where is this wonderful cave that contains so
-much wealth?’
-
-‘Many miles,’ said Yacka; ‘over Great Desert in Northern Territory. It
-is not all sand. No white man has been there; but Yacka has, and knows
-there is grass and water, and food, plenty food.’
-
-‘Are you certain no white man has ever been there?’ asked Edgar.
-
-Yacka hesitated a few moments, and then said:
-
-‘No white _man_.’
-
-‘And no white woman?’ laughed Edgar, who noticed the stress Yacka laid
-on man.
-
-Yacka sprang to his feet, and waved his arms about wildly.
-
-‘Come and see!’ he cried. ‘Come to the White Spirit’s Cave! I am the
-son of Enooma!’
-
-The last word he said in a soft, liquid tone, far different from his
-usual rather harsh mode of speech; and he lingered over the name with
-evident fondness.
-
-Edgar became interested, and the spirit of adventure began to stir
-within him.
-
-‘Who is Enooma?’ he asked, endeavouring to speak the word as Yacka
-pronounced it.
-
-‘The White Spirit of the Great Desert,’ said Yacka, in a solemn voice.
-‘She rests in the cave in the land I came from. She is beautiful and
-white as clouds; and I am black as the thunder-makers--and her son.’
-
-‘How can that be?’ asked Edgar. ‘Yacka must be mistaken; he cannot be
-the son of Enooma the White Spirit. How can I trust him if he deceives
-me?’
-
-The black looked round, and, seeing no one about, said:
-
-‘Yacka speaks true, else how would he know the cave where no white man
-has been?’
-
-‘Suppose I promise to go with you to the cave,’ said Edgar, ‘how would
-it be possible for us to go alone?’
-
-‘We have guns,’ said Yacka, relapsing into ordinary speech, ‘and there
-is much to shoot where I go. We follow tracks through big white man’s
-country, and cross rivers. I came from there, and can return. Yacka
-knows a track once he has followed it.’
-
-‘Give me time to think it over,’ said Edgar. ‘I trust you, Yacka, but
-I have others to think about. I have a good sister, and a kind father,
-in far-away England, and there will be dangers to encounter on our
-journey.’
-
-‘Yes,’ assented Yacka, ‘dangers, but we shall not die. The White
-Spirit will watch over us when she knows we are coming towards her.
-Enooma rests and waits for us. Speak no words to them,’ he added, and
-pointed towards the homestead.
-
-‘All you have told me I promise to hold sacred,’ said Edgar.
-
-‘It is good,’ said Yacka, and calmly commenced to carve a snake on one
-of the boomerangs, which he picked up from the ground where he had
-thrown them.
-
-Edgar Foster felt he was about to embark upon strange adventures. He
-knew Yacka was no ordinary black, and Ben Brody had said he believed
-Yacka had white blood in his veins. Who could this White Spirit Enooma
-be, whom Yacka called his mother? Could it be possible a white woman
-had penetrated to the unknown parts of the Northern Territory? If so,
-how had she reached there? and how could it be that Yacka the black was
-her son? Probably it was some superstition Yacka had inherited from his
-tribe.
-
-Edgar pondered over the story of riches Yacka had related. Gold was dug
-out of the earth in most unlikely places. Barren wastes had been found
-to teem with the precious metal. The possibilities of the country Edgar
-felt were not yet known, and in a new and unexplored part of the vast
-land he was now in what might not happen? He knew he could trust Yacka,
-but he would have preferred to take a mate with him. Will Brown would
-be just the one, and if he could persuade Yacka to take Will along
-with them it would be glorious. He thought over the excuses he could
-make to Captain Fife and Ben Brody for leaving Yanda. If he stated he
-was prompted by a love of adventure they would believe him, and it
-would be the truth. There would be no difficulty in getting away, and
-no time for returning need be named.
-
-Eagerly Edgar awaited the arrival of Will Brown in order to give Yacka
-a chance of making friends with him.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XII. IN SEARCH OF ADVENTURES.
-
-
-In due course Will Brown arrived at Yanda, and he was only too glad
-to have the opportunity of meeting his chum, Edgar Foster, in the new
-country to which he had come. As for Edgar, it was with unbounded
-delight he welcomed Will Brown. They had much to talk about, and it was
-a source of much joy to Edgar that he could listen to one who had so
-recently seen those dear to him in the home he loved so well, on the
-banks of the Thames.
-
-When Edgar made known to Ben Brody his intention of leaving Yanda for a
-time in search of adventures, the manager evinced no surprise.
-
-‘I didn’t expect you would be here long,’ he said. ‘Young ‘uns like to
-roam, and I don’t blame you. I’ve had enough wandering about to last
-me a lifetime, and I’m settled for good here, so long as they will have
-me. I shall be sorry to lose you, and I wish you had chosen to remain.
-You have picked a good guide in Yacka. What that black chap knows is
-beyond credit. He’s never said where he came from, but if I’m a judge
-it is somewhere in the region of the MacDonnell Ranges. There are some
-powerful savage tribes over there, and I’d advise you to steer clear of
-them, that is, if you get so far; but you are a precious long way from
-there, you bet.’
-
-‘I do not know where we are going,’ said Edgar; ‘but Yacka has made
-great promises, and if he fulfils them there will be something to talk
-about when we return.’
-
-Yacka, with some show of reluctance, agreed to Will Brown accompanying
-them. He yielded when Edgar said he would not go without Will, for the
-black was determined Edgar should undertake the journey.
-
-The night before their departure they had a great ‘send off,’ all hands
-coming into the homestead for the occasion.
-
-The general opinion seemed to be that Edgar and Will were about to
-follow Yacka purely for the sake of adventure, and the good fellows
-thought all the better of them for their pluck and spirit.
-
-Ben Brody had given each of them a good horse, and they had the pick of
-the best guns on the station. Will Henton gave them a revolver each,
-expressing the hope that they would clear the country of a few blacks.
-
-‘I hope we shall not have to use them for any such purpose,’ said
-Edgar; ‘but if it comes to a fight we shall be all there.’
-
-‘You are going on a fool’s errand,’ said Harry Noke; ‘much better
-remain where you are. I would not trust Yacka, or any other
-blackfellow. It’s like enough he’ll lead you into danger out of pure
-devilment.’
-
-‘You are wrong,’ said Jim Lee; ‘Yacka’s square.’
-
-‘Jim’s right,’ said Brody. ‘You’re riled, Harry, because you have not
-pluck enough to go with them. As it is the last night, we must have
-Yacka in and give him a drink.’
-
-Ben Brody went into the veranda and gave a peculiar whistle, which
-sounded shrilly on the still night air. In a few minutes Yacka appeared.
-
-‘That’s fetched him,’ said Will Henton; ‘Brody’s a wonder at all sorts
-of signals. I believe he’s a different call for every man on the place.’
-
-‘Have a drink, Yacka,’ said Ben Brody. ‘What’s it to be, rum or beer?’
-
-Yacka smacked his lips, and said, ‘Beer.’
-
-‘That’s better,’ said Jim Lee; ‘rum’s a curse.’
-
-Yacka drank the beer with evident relish.
-
-‘Like a square meal?’ said Brody.
-
-The black nodded, and Brody helped him plentifully to the remains of
-the feast.
-
-‘Where are you going to take these youngsters?’ said Ben Brody.
-
-‘Long way,’ replied Yacka. ‘Bring them safe back.’
-
-‘I hope so,’ said Brody. ‘Going in search of the lost tribes?’
-
-Yacka grinned, showing his gleaming teeth.
-
-‘All tribes lost since the white men came,’ he replied.
-
-‘Guess you’re about right there,’ said Brody. ‘Black and white cannot
-live side by side; one of them’s bound to go, and it’s the black. Now,
-if they were all like you, Yacka, we could get on well together. Bless
-me if I don’t believe you are half a white man!’
-
-A peculiar look came into Yacka’s eyes.
-
-‘Think so?’ he said. ‘Black skin, white man’s heart.’
-
-‘Bravo!’ shouted Brody. ‘You shall have another glass for that. Fill
-up, lads! Here’s to our mates, and a safe journey along with Yacka!’
-
-All hands were becoming hilarious, and began to sing ‘For they are
-jolly good fellows.’
-
-When the noise subsided, Brody said:
-
-Do you want a horse, Yacka?’
-
-The black shook his head, and slapped his legs.
-
-‘Yes, I know,’ said Brody; ‘your legs will carry you quite as far as
-any of our station nags. You’ll accept a gun, eh?’
-
-The black sprang to his feet, and said:
-
-‘A gun for my own! Very good, Master Brody; I like a gun.’
-
-‘Then you shall have one,’ said Ben. ‘I know you can shoot.’
-
-Yacka went through a performance of shooting an imaginary object in
-such a realistic manner that everybody laughed.
-
-It was a merry night, and all slept soundly. In the morning Edgar and
-Will made a start from Yanda with Yacka, who was on foot, and the black
-looked the picture of a trained athlete.
-
-Yacka had discarded his ordinary loin-cloth, and wore instead a
-peculiar arrangement in which he could stow away a variety of articles.
-He declined to wear any other clothing, and his body shone in the
-sunlight, and the muscles stood out on his arms, chest, and lower
-limbs. His curly hair was sufficient protection to his head from the
-burning sun, and it was in much better condition than the shaggy
-locks of the blacks who were looking on. Yacka had evidently told the
-blacks he was leaving Yanda, and they looked as disconsolate as their
-expressionless faces would permit.
-
-As for Edgar and Will Brown, they were in high spirits, and, mounted on
-two very fair horses, thoroughly equipped for a journey, they looked a
-fine pair of young fellows.
-
-‘You’ll strike a station about sundown, I reckon,’ said Ben Brody.
-‘They’ll be glad to see you if you say where you hail from, although
-it makes very little difference about that round here. Take care of
-yourselves, my lads, and I hope Yacka will bring you back to Yanda
-soon.’
-
-After hearty handshakes all round, the trio set off amidst cheers and
-the loud, peculiar cries of the blacks. Ben Brody watched them for a
-long time, and waved his hat in response to the salutes of Edgar and
-Will.
-
-‘Lads of mettle, both of ’em,’ said Brody. ‘Such a wild-goose chase
-as they are on would just have suited me in my young days. Good luck
-go with you, my lads! You’ll always have a warm corner in Ben Brody’s
-heart.’
-
-As the homestead they had left behind became fainter and fainter in
-the distance, Edgar and Will turned round in their saddles and waved a
-parting salute to Ben Brody, whose figure was just discernible on the
-veranda.
-
-As the morning wore on, the heat became intense, and in the afternoon
-it was so hot they decided to camp under the shade of some trees.
-Towards evening they went on again, and that night slept in the open,
-with their saddles for pillows and the bare ground for a bed. Had it
-not been for the constant singing and stinging of the mosquitoes, they
-would have had a pleasant night, as the air was soft and warm, and they
-needed no covering.
-
-Yacka stretched himself out near them, and slept like a dog--half awake
-and ready to spring to his feet at the slightest sound. At daybreak
-they made a slight meal, and then proceeded on their journey. Yacka
-went ahead, and at such a pace that the horses often had to break into
-a canter to keep up with him. They arrived at Bardo Station that night,
-and met with a hospitable reception.
-
-Charles Brunt, the manager, was rather amused at the idea of a couple
-of lads going in search of adventure, with a blackfellow as guide and
-companion. He knew Yacka, and was of the same opinion as Ben Brody,
-that the black had white blood in his veins.
-
-‘This is a hospitable land, anyhow,’ said Edgar, when they had been
-away from Yanda for about a fortnight, and had managed, through Yacka’s
-guidance, to fall in with comfortable quarters almost every night.
-
-As they went on, however, Edgar saw they were gradually getting into
-a wilder country, and farther away from the beaten track. Yacka said,
-when questioned, he was taking a short cut, and that he knew the way.
-
-‘Where are you steering for?’ asked Edgar.
-
-‘South Australian border,’ said Yacka. ‘Then we work up to the
-MacDonnell Ranges, past Alice Springs. You’ll see wild country then,
-when we get through the ranges.’
-
-‘How long will it take us to reach the ranges?’ asked Will.
-
-‘Long time yet,’ said Yacka. ‘Many miles’ tramp a day. Horses will
-knock up, but not Yacka, then you have to walk it.’
-
-‘A pleasant prospect,’ said Edgar. ‘We may have to tramp hundreds of
-miles. However, we are in for it, and we may as well see all Yacka has
-to show us. I shall be sorely cut up if he has deceived us.’
-
-‘Do you think he would do so?’ asked Will.
-
-‘Not intentionally,’ replied Edgar; ‘but what may appear wonderful to
-him may be commonplace to us.’
-
-Having got out of the beaten track, they had to rely upon their guns
-for food. They had an ample supply of ammunition, preferring to load up
-their horses in this way to carrying provisions. Edgar was a good shot,
-and seldom missed his mark.
-
-‘We must be careful and not miss,’ he said, ‘for every shot is of
-importance.’
-
-One afternoon they had an exciting chase after kangaroos, and Edgar and
-Will thought it excellent sport. Yacka followed the hunt, and when he
-suddenly vanished, Edgar in a few minutes saw him ahead, waiting for
-the kangaroos to pass.
-
-‘By Jove! how Yacka can run!’ said Edgar. ‘Look where he is now. He’ll
-get a kangaroo sure enough, without firing a shot.’
-
-They reined in their horses, and watched him. When the kangaroos
-found the chase was not so hot, they slackened their speed, and leapt
-along at a steadier pace. Yacka was concealed behind a huge tree,
-and as a large kangaroo went past he slipped quickly round and dealt
-it a terrific blow with a heavy knobstick he carried in his hand.
-The kangaroo fell down stunned, and with a whoop Edgar and Will rode
-forward, in case any of the herd should make an attack on Yacka. When
-they pulled up, they found Yacka had cut the animal’s throat, and was
-contemplating it with satisfaction.
-
-Will, having dismounted, picked up the stick Yacka had struck the
-kangaroo with. It was smooth, hard wood, with a notched handle, and
-gradually swelling larger until, at the end, there was a sharp, smooth
-knob, which was so heavy it might have been weighted with iron.
-
-‘A formidable weapon,’ he said, holding it out to Edgar.
-
-‘That is a nulla-nulla,’ said Yacka. ‘Crack a man’s skull easily.’
-
-‘What is it weighted with?’ asked Edgar.
-
-‘Nothing,’ said Yacka. ‘Very hard, heavy wood, all smoothed down with
-sharp stone and rubbed with coarse sand. Never break it. Hard as iron.’
-
-‘Are they used in your tribal wars?’ asked Will.
-
-Yacka nodded and said:
-
-‘Terrible blows from them. Split a man’s head right open. See!’ He took
-the weapon from Edgar, and with one blow shattered the dead kangaroo’s
-skull. It split in two, and Yacka scooped out the brains. He then cut
-off the tail, and said, ‘Have good soup to-night. This fellow make
-better soup than ox-tail.’
-
-They shook their heads sceptically; the tail did not look very inviting
-then.
-
-Yacka selected a spot to camp in near a small spring of water. He
-then proceeded to make a fire, collecting sundry dry pieces of wood
-and a kind of moss for the purpose. He filled the large ‘billy’ can
-he carried during the day slung across his back with sundry other
-articles, and, having skinned the kangaroo’s tail, cut it up into small
-pieces, and put it in the can.
-
-How he managed to make it so tasty Edgar could not imagine, but it was
-delicious, and they voted Yacka was right when he said it was better
-than ox-tail.
-
-‘Yacka’s a capital cook,’ said Will, ‘and the beauty of him is that he
-wants so little to cook with.’
-
-‘He’d rather surprise some of the modern cooks,’ said Edgar. ‘They
-appear to contrive to do away with the genuine flavour of everything
-they cook, and Yacka makes a point of retaining that flavour.’
-
-How they did enjoy this wild life! and, so far, their powers of
-endurance had not been severely tested.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIII. BY THE LAGOON.
-
-
-They had been more than a month away from Yanda, and Edgar began to
-wonder where their march would lead them. Yacka did not vouchsafe much
-information, but kept steadily on his way at a pace that astonished
-them. Mile after mile was traversed, and their guide showed no sign of
-weariness or flagging.
-
-One beautiful moonlight night they camped by the shore of a large
-lagoon, which reminded them of a small lake in their own country. It
-was a magnificent sight, this sheet of still water glistening in the
-moonlight, the trees which overhung it reflecting weird shadows on the
-surface.
-
-‘I had no idea there were such lakes as these,’ said Edgar. ‘There must
-be a lot of good shooting about here.’
-
-‘Plenty of ducks and herons,’ said Yacka. ‘I will get you some ducks
-without firing a shot.’
-
-They were interested in watching Yacka catch wild ducks. The black
-crept cautiously into the water, and then sat down amongst a lot of
-cover, which hid his head from view. Presently they heard a call such
-as the wild duck makes.
-
-‘That’s Yacka,’ said Edgar. ‘He can imitate the cries of all kinds of
-birds and animals. Look! there’s a flock of wild ducks coming over.’
-
-The birds flew right into the lagoon, and settled down on the water
-not far from Yacka. In a few minutes there was a flutter in the water,
-and the flock rose quickly and flew rapidly away, leaving three of
-their number struggling entangled in a fine-meshed net Yacka had thrown
-dexterously over them. Yacka stood up, and, seizing the ducks one by
-one, quickly killed them, and brought them to the shore where Edgar and
-Will were sitting.
-
-‘Cleverly done,’ said Edgar. ‘If we run short of ammunition there is
-little fear of starving when Yacka can effect such captures.’
-
-The ducks were spitted and roasted, Yacka as usual acting as cook, and
-they were thoroughly enjoyed. Wild bees seemed plentiful, and Yacka
-went in search of honey, which he soon found in the hollow of a tree.
-
-So pleasant was it by the lagoon that they rested there for several
-days, enjoying bathing in the lukewarm water, and finding plenty of
-birds to supply their daily wants. Yacka captured a native bear, a
-curious little fellow with a woolly skin, and a sharp, inquiring face.
-When tucked up he looked for all the world like a big ball. Huge
-lizards were occasionally seen gliding about, and the shrill cries of
-parrots were heard overhead. At night the peculiar cry of the laughing
-jackass was heard. A flock of black swan passed by, but did not settle
-on the lagoon. They also saw pigeons, wild geese, plover, and quail,
-and a couple of pelicans.
-
-So interesting was the wild life of this lagoon that Edgar was loath
-to move on into less hospitable country, but he saw signs that Yacka
-was becoming impatient, so decided to resume their march. They left the
-camp by the lagoon with much regret, and cast many a wistful glance
-behind.
-
-‘It will be a long time before we strike such a good camping-ground
-again,’ said Edgar.
-
-‘Wait until you reach Yacka’s country,’ said the black; ‘find plenty
-sport there. My tribe help you hunt and fish in big lakes and rivers.’
-
-‘To which tribe do you belong?’ asked Edgar.
-
-‘MacDonnell Ranges,’ said Yacka; ‘but we have gone miles and miles
-further north to the land of Enooma, the White Spirit, across sandy
-desert. My tribe very old and warlike. Their country goes far into the
-Northern Territory.’
-
-‘So your tribe is known as the MacDonnell Ranges blacks,’ said Edgar;
-‘but you have a native name, I expect. What is it?’
-
-‘The Enooma,’ said Yacka. ‘We are the favoured tribe of the great White
-Spirit.’
-
-‘And you are the son of Enooma,’ said Edgar. ‘Then we are safe with
-you.’
-
-‘No one will harm the friends of the son of Enooma,’ said Yacka.
-
-‘Why did you leave your own country?’ asked Edgar.
-
-‘To wander far and learn much. It was the wish of Enooma, and she must
-be obeyed. I have been in big cities--Sydney, Melbourne, Adelaide, and
-Brisbane, and have learned many things and seen much evil,’ said Yacka.
-
-‘And how did you get on to Yanda Station?’ said Edgar.
-
-‘From Queensland. I went to Adelaide first, and then walked to the
-other big cities. From Brisbane I went on until I came to Yanda, and
-there I camped.’
-
-Yacka went on ahead, and Edgar said to Will:
-
-‘It will be worth all our travels if we can clear up this mystery
-about Yacka’s birth. He must have been taught by white people, or he
-would not speak as he does. It is getting more and more interesting.
-Who would have thought when we were at Redbank we should in so short a
-time be tramping over the wilds of Australia with only a black for our
-companion?’
-
-‘I wonder what they are up to at Redbank now?’ said Will.
-
-‘The usual routine work,’ replied Edgar. ‘We had some jolly times
-there.’
-
-‘I wish I could make a fortune!’ said Will suddenly.
-
-Edgar laughed as he replied:
-
-‘It does not look much like it at present, but there is no telling what
-may happen. Yacka says he can make me rich, and if so you will have a
-share in the plunder. Why do you wish to make a fortune? You were not
-always such a mercenary fellow.’
-
-‘Because I love your sister, and I want to be in a position some day to
-ask her to be my wife. Now do you understand?’
-
-‘Yes,’ said Edgar, ‘and I wish you luck. Doris is a lovable girl, and I
-know you will try and make her happy. It is a long time to look ahead,
-but there is nothing like having an object in life to make a man
-successful.’
-
-‘You know my object,’ said Will. ‘What is yours?’
-
-‘To earn a good name, and to make my father proud of his son,’ said
-Edgar.
-
-‘Then you will certainly succeed,’ said Will, ‘even if you have not
-done so already.’
-
-Edgar laughed as he said:
-
-‘I have not done much at present to earn a name for myself. If ever I
-become a rich man, I will try and do good with my money. I have always
-found there is a lot of pleasure in helping other people.’
-
-‘You always manage to get on with people,’ said Will. ‘You have even
-made a staunch friend of Yacka. How did you manage it?’
-
-‘By treating him more like a human being than a dog,’ said Edgar. ‘Of
-course, Yacka is not like most of the natives. They are a dull, stupid
-lot, what I have seen of them so far, and it would be almost impossible
-to teach them anything. I believe Yacka could be taught just the same
-as a white man.’
-
-One night, as they were camping under the shade of some bushes, Edgar
-was awakened by something cool touching his face. He put out his hand
-and felt a cold, smooth substance, which he at once knew must be a
-snake. He sprang to his feet, clutching the snake and flinging it from
-him. The noise roused Will, and Yacka was quickly on the alert. It was
-too dark to see anything, but Yacka shifted their camping-ground. In
-the morning Yacka came across a venomous yellow snake, which he killed
-and brought to Edgar.
-
-‘Yellow snake,’ he said; ‘dangerous! Deadly poison! Almost as bad as a
-death adder! Yacka skin him,’ which he at once proceeded to do.
-
-Edgar congratulated himself upon a lucky escape, for had the snake
-bitten him there would have been but little chance of his continuing
-the journey. For breakfast Yacka was busily engaged in roasting strips
-of flesh, but neither Edgar nor Will could think what animal he had
-killed to provide their meal.
-
-‘What have you got there?’ asked Will. ‘I hope you’re not toasting that
-snake.’
-
-Yacka shook his head and said:
-
-‘You try it first, then I will tell you what it is. Very good indeed!’
-and he smacked his lips.
-
-They enjoyed the tasty morsels, and Yacka informed them it was the
-flesh of a species of iguana, one of the lizard tribe.
-
-Will shuddered as he said:
-
-‘I confess it tasted all right, but I do not think I should have eaten
-it had I known what it was.’
-
-They were about to resume their journey, when they heard someone
-‘cooeying’ loudly, and the sound proclaimed the person was some
-distance away.
-
-Yacka had carefully avoided meeting wanderers in the country they had
-come through, and when he heard the ‘cooey’ he held up his hand, and
-they stopped.
-
-‘Let us see who it is,’ said Edgar. ‘It will be a change to meet a
-stranger.’
-
-‘All right,’ said Yacka; ‘I know where that comes from. We are near the
-telegraph route. Send news from Adelaide right across the country to
-Port Darwin. It is men, perhaps, looking after the line.’
-
-‘Bravo!’ said Will. ‘We shall at least be able to hear some fresh news.’
-
-They proceeded in the direction of the sound, and in the course of a
-quarter of an hour came upon a camp, where four white men were sitting
-down smoking and chatting.
-
-‘Hallo! what have we got here?’ said one of the men, as he saw Yacka
-advancing in front of Edgar and Will.
-
-‘Glad to see you,’ said Edgar, stepping forward. ‘We have not had any
-company but our own for such a long time that we are thankful to have
-fallen in with you.’
-
-‘You’re welcome,’ said the man. ‘Where do you hail from?’
-
-‘We have come from Yanda station, in the west of New South Wales.’
-
-The man stared at them in amazement.
-
-‘What, just as you are? You two youngsters, with this blackfellow!’
-
-‘Yes,’ said Will. ‘My friend was going alone with Yacka, but as I
-wanted to be in it if there were any adventures, they decided to take
-me along with them.’
-
-‘Well, upon my word,’ said the man, ‘you’re a couple of good plucked
-’uns! Do you know where you are?’
-
-‘I have not the faintest idea,’ said Edgar, ‘but Yacka has.’
-
-‘You seem to have a good deal of confidence in this blackfellow,’ said
-the man, eyeing Yacka closely.
-
-‘We have,’ said Edgar. ‘He’s a fine fellow.’
-
-‘That’s more than I can say for some of his kind,’ said the man. ‘It
-was only the other week one of our fellows was murdered beyond the
-Ranges by some of these blacks.’
-
-‘Revenge!’ said Yacka quietly. ‘How many of the black men had he
-killed?’
-
-‘Blest if the fellow can’t speak English as well as I can!’ said the
-man in astonishment. ‘Maybe it was revenge, but we don’t allow black
-men to kill white men without making an example of them.’ Turning to
-Edgar he said: ‘I like the look of you, young fellow, and your mate. My
-name’s Walter Hepburn, and I’m in the Government service, and stationed
-at Alice Springs, where the telegraph office is. We’ve been repairing
-on the line, and are on our way back to the Springs. If you care to
-come on with us, I have no doubt we can show you some fun.’
-
-‘How far are we from Alice Springs?’ asked Edgar.
-
-‘A couple of days will take us there.’
-
-‘Then we shall be very pleased to go with you, and thank you heartily
-for your invitation. My name is Edgar Foster.’
-
-‘What! the young fellow who saved the skipper’s baby from the wreck of
-the _Distant Shore_?’ exclaimed Walter Hepburn.
-
-‘Yes,’ said Edgar sadly; ‘we were the only two saved.’
-
-‘Give me your hand, lad,’ said Walter Hepburn; ‘I’m proud to shake it.
-Here, lads, give three cheers for Edgar Foster!’
-
-The men gave three ringing cheers, that echoed far and wide.
-
-It made Edgar’s heart beat fast to hear them in this wild country.
-
-Good deeds make themselves known and felt the wide world over, and
-their influence can make men better even in a wilderness.
-
-Yacka was pleased at the reception given to Edgar, and his black face
-was all smiling.
-
-‘That blackfellow’s uncommon fond of you, I reckon?’ said Walter
-Hepburn.
-
-‘He is,’ said Edgar. ‘Yacka planned this expedition for us, and we are
-in search of adventures, and want to see the country.’
-
-That night Edgar and Will enjoyed a hearty supper with their newly-made
-acquaintances; and Edgar had to relate how he was rescued, and how he
-saved Eva from the wreck of the _Distant Shore_.
-
-When Edgar mentioned to Walter Hepburn that they were going far beyond
-the Ranges with Yacka, he looked serious.
-
-‘If you’ll take my advice, you will make for Adelaide from Alice
-Springs. It is over a thousand miles from there to Adelaide. If you
-go on north, to Port Darwin, that is over nine hundred miles. Where
-does Yacka, as you call him, want to take you on the other side of the
-Ranges?’
-
-‘That is his secret,’ said Edgar, ‘and I cannot tell you what he has
-told me. Before we started from Yanda I meant to go through with this
-business, and I’ll do it if I live.’
-
-‘I admire your pluck,’ said Walter Hepburn; ‘but what is the use of
-risking your life when there is no object to be gained?’
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIV. ON THE OVERLAND LINE.
-
-
-A couple of days after their meeting with the telegraph repairers
-the party arrived at Alice Springs--the most interesting of all the
-stations on the overland telegraph line. Alice Springs stands high
-above the sea-level, and there is magnificent and interesting scenery
-in the district, the valley in which it lies being of exceptional
-beauty.
-
-As Edgar looked at the scene mapped out before him, he could not help
-expressing astonishment at what he saw. Alice Springs he had imagined
-as a bare, desolate spot, and here he saw the great MacDonnell Ranges
-lying to the north, the source of rivers, creeks, and springs, the
-valley stretching far away to east and west. The River Todd, running
-close by, lends a picturesque charm to the scene.
-
-There were numerous people about when the party arrived, as Alice
-Springs is the repeating station on the line, and consequently a
-considerable number of officers were employed. The buildings were not
-particularly enchanting, but they were useful and commodious. Several
-trees were scattered about, affording a comfortable shade, and the hot
-winds had not scorched up all vegetation.
-
-The officers employed at Alice Springs Station were a genial, jovial
-lot of fellows; and when Edgar and Will had been duly introduced by
-Walter Hepburn, they were at once made at home. After travelling
-so many miles, and living on the produce of their guns and Yacka’s
-ingenuity, it was a treat for them once more to come across
-civilization. They were feasted and made much of, and the inevitable
-race-meeting was got up in their honour.
-
-Edgar noticed there were a good many men about besides the officers
-employed on the station, and he did not like the look of some of them.
-They had a hang-dog expression on their faces, and a lazy, loafing way
-of idling about that spoke ill for the manner in which they managed to
-knock out a living.
-
-‘You have some queer customers about here,’ said Edgar to Walter
-Hepburn.
-
-‘You mean those fellows over yonder,’ he replied.
-
-‘I guess you’re about right--they are queer customers. They are
-out-and-out “spielers,” and you generally find them loafing about in
-the interior wherever there is a new settlement. They are always in
-fairly strong force around here, and when we have races they are only
-too ready to make wagers which they have no intention of paying. Some
-of our fellows are foolish enough to bet with them, and out of sheer
-despair at getting up a game of cards, I have known them play with
-these men. Needless to say, our fellows never win. These “spielers”
-know too much for them. In my opinion, they are worse than the blacks,
-and a greater danger to settlers. Horse-stealing and swindling they are
-always ready for; but they are cowards when fairly tackled, and soon
-seek fresh fields when a place becomes too hot to hold them.’
-
-‘Strange how such men can find occupation here,’ said Edgar.
-
-‘Well, you see, it’s this way,’ said Walter Hepburn. ‘Settlers in a
-new country, where white men are scarce, and blacks are dangerous and
-hostile, are only too glad to give a white man a welcome. No questions
-are asked as to who or what the white man may be, but they take it for
-granted his company must be an improvement on their black, quarrelsome
-neighbours. I’ve known blackguards like those you see over yonder stay
-at a place for a week, and then clear out with the best horses and
-anything else they could conveniently take away.’
-
-‘I saw a couple of them eyeing our horses over a short time back,’ said
-Will Brown, who came up and heard the conversation. ‘Yacka says we had
-better leave our horses behind when we go beyond the Ranges, and call
-for them as we return; that is, if they will care to have them here.’
-
-‘You can leave them with pleasure if you wish,’ said Walter Hepburn,
-‘and I’ll promise to look after them for you as well as I can. You will
-certainly not have much use for horses if you are going west after you
-cross the ranges. It is, so far as we know, very little else but desert
-between here and West Australia. As I told you before, I am afraid
-you are undertaking a great risk, and all to very little purpose. You
-may as well remain here a week or two, and then return south towards
-Adelaide. You’ll have had enough of it when you reach there, without
-going farther north.’
-
-‘I’ll consult Yacka, and hear what he has to say,’ said Edgar, and
-walked towards the black, leaving Will with Walter Hepburn.
-
-Edgar explained what Hepburn had said, and Yacka replied:
-
-‘I will go with you to Adelaide, if you wish; but you will be sorry
-for it. We have come so far, let us go on. These men know nothing of
-Enooma’s country. They have been lost in the desert and never found the
-green land. Come with me, and I will show you much. Yacka has said he
-will make you rich. Come and see if the son of Enooma speaks true.’
-
-‘You say we had better leave our horses here until we return,’ said
-Edgar. ‘How far have we to go beyond the ranges?’
-
-‘Long way,’ said Yacka, ‘but fine country. We soon leave the sand
-behind, and then you will see much better place than Yanda.’
-
-‘I will go with you,’ said Edgar, and Yacka was pleased. ‘We will leave
-here in a few days.’
-
-During the time they remained at Alice Springs there was plenty of
-amusement. Local races, and a cricket match filled in the time, and
-Edgar managed to impress it upon them that he could handle a bat.
-
-Yacka amused himself in various ways. He kept aloof from everyone,
-and sat looking on at the various games in a contemplative style that
-amused Edgar.
-
-The numerous ‘spielers’ about the place found time hang heavily on
-their hands, and two or three of them thought to pass a few hours away
-by teasing Yacka, and trying to work him into a frenzy. These vile
-wretches were adepts in the art of ill-using and insulting not only
-blacks, but white men, when they got the chance, and when there was but
-little danger connected with it.
-
-Yacka was quietly carving a stick, when three of these vagabonds came
-up to him. One jerked the stick out of his hand and flung it away,
-another upset the log upon which he was sitting, and the third kicked
-him in the ribs as he lay on the floor.
-
-Then these three white men with black hearts got a surprise from the
-black man with a white heart. Yacka sprang to his feet with a yell. He
-seized the nearest man round the waist, lifted him off his feet, and
-flung him over his shoulder, as easily as only a practised wrestler
-could. The man fell with a heavy thud upon the ground and lay there.
-Yacka bounded upon the next man before he had recovered from his
-surprise, and would have treated him in a similar way. The noise,
-however, attracted the attention of the ‘spielers’ mates, who came
-running up, and Yacka was surrounded by enemies.
-
-The black’s eyes fairly blazed as he looked round at the cowardly crew
-hemming him in on every side. He could not see a loophole of escape, so
-he determined to fight for liberty. Yacka knew well enough if these men
-got him down he would probably be kicked to death.
-
-A blow on the back of his head warned him his persecutors meant
-business. Yacka could see no weapon handy, so he used his fists, and
-struck out right and left with tremendous effect. Three of the crew
-measured their full length on the ground in almost as many seconds.
-Yacka’s blows fell fast, but he could not guard himself at the rear as
-well as in the front. Blows fell upon his head and made him dizzy, and
-he knew he could not hold out much longer.
-
-‘There’s a row going on outside,’ said Walter Hepburn, as he got up
-from the table where they had just been refreshing themselves, and went
-to the door.
-
-‘Hang me if it is not that black chap of yours! The “spielers” are on
-to him. Come along, quick, or they’ll do for him!’
-
-Edgar and Will jumped up, and the three ran towards the scene of the
-encounter.
-
-They were only just in time. One of the gang of cowards attacking Yacka
-struck him a severe blow on the head with a heavy stick, and the black
-fell on to his knees. No sooner was he down than a brutal assault was
-made upon him. Edgar outstripped his companions and was first on the
-scene. He said nothing, but he began to knock the ‘spielers’ about in a
-manner that left no doubt as to his hitting powers.
-
-Will Brown and Walter Hepburn were not slow to follow his example, and
-although they were opposed to more than double their own number, the
-trio quickly drove the ‘spielers’ away, some of them much the worse for
-the encounter.
-
-Edgar knelt down beside Yacka, who was lying on the ground half stunned.
-
-‘The brutes!’ said Edgar. ‘They have mauled him badly. How do you feel,
-Yacka? Any bones broken?’
-
-The black smiled feebly and said:
-
-‘No bones broken, Master Edgar, but I have got a bad head. I could
-have beaten the first three, but more came up and they got at me from
-behind.’ Seeing Hepburn, he added significantly: ‘That is what causes
-revenge, and the killing of white men.’
-
-‘I’m not surprised,’ said Will. ‘You cannot expect a blackfellow to
-stand such brutal conduct as this.’
-
-‘No,’ said Hepburn, ‘but the worst of it is the innocent suffer for the
-guilty. These brutes get off scot-free, and some poor settler meets
-with his death.’
-
-‘Yacka has never killed a man what you call a settler,’ said the black.
-
-‘No one supposes you have,’ said Edgar. ‘Can you walk?’
-
-Yacka managed to stand on his feet, but his head swam, and he felt
-dizzy.
-
-‘Bring him into my shanty,’ said Hepburn. ‘I can’t stand even a
-blackfellow being knocked about in this style.’
-
-The ‘spielers’ were hanging about as they led Yacka into Hepburn’s
-house. As he entered the door the black turned and shook his fist at
-them, and a cruel look came into his eyes.
-
-Hepburn saw it and whispered to Edgar:
-
-‘I would not give much for one of those fellows’ chances of salvation
-if Yacka got him alone.’
-
-Had it been a white man the ‘spielers’ had set upon, they would have
-been hustled out of the place quickly enough, but a blackfellow more
-or less did not seem to matter with the bulk of the men. The majority
-of them would have knocked a ‘spieler’ down with the greatest of
-satisfaction, but even in such a case as the assault upon Yacka they
-were inclined to regard the black as the aggressor. This feeling
-naturally aroused Edgar’s indignation. He had not lived amongst
-savage blacks as most of these men had, and gone with his life in his
-hands every time he went a few miles up country. The blacks in many
-cases undoubtedly attacked peaceful settlers and murdered them in a
-treacherous manner. This naturally aroused a feeling of intense hatred
-against the original inhabitants of the country, and all blackfellows
-were treated alike. When the settlers treated the blacks kindly it was
-regarded by them as a sign of weakness, and an encouragement to attack
-them. Arguments such as these Hepburn used to convince Edgar the white
-men had good reason for hating the black.
-
-‘The Finke blacks,’ said Hepburn, ‘are a peaceable lot; but when you
-get into the Musgrave and MacDonnell Ranges, and farther north, it
-is necessary to be well armed if you wish to come back again. I have
-been there and know, and that is the main reason I have endeavoured to
-persuade you not to go with Yacka.’
-
-‘It would be cowardly on our part to desert Yacka now,’ said Edgar,
-‘nor have we any inclination to do so. I would sooner trust a whole
-tribe of blacks than the brutal fellows who attacked him.’
-
-Hepburn saw it was useless to argue more, so he said good-naturedly:
-
-‘If you are bent upon proceeding, you must let me supply you with more
-ammunition. You will want it, I am afraid, unless Yacka is well-known
-to the northern tribes.’
-
-‘You’re a brick!’ said Will enthusiastically, ‘and I for one will
-accept your gift.’
-
-‘It’s a good while since I heard that expression,’ said Hepburn. ‘It
-reminds me of my school-days.’
-
-‘Where were you put in training?’ asked Edgar with a smile.
-
-‘At a grand old school, which I dare say you have heard of,’ said
-Hepburn. ‘I was educated at Redbank.’
-
-Edgar and Will gave a whoop that startled Hepburn, and before he could
-realize what had happened, he felt both his arms being worked up and
-down in a rapid style that took his breath away.
-
-‘Hold on, lads!’ he gasped; ‘you’ll have my arms off. What the deuce is
-the matter with you?’
-
-‘This is the most extraordinary thing I ever heard of,’ said Edgar.
-
-‘I see nothing very extraordinary in my having been educated at
-Redbank,’ said Hepburn, ‘except the fact that I might have done the
-school more credit, considering the training I received.’
-
-‘We are Redbank boys,’ said Edgar.
-
-It was Hepburn’s turn now, and the pumping process recommenced. They
-almost danced for joy, and Yacka, who was lying on the camp-bed,
-thought they had gone suddenly mad.
-
-‘Bless my soul! it is remarkable after all,’ said Hepburn. ‘To think we
-Redbank fellows should all meet in this outlandish spot! The world is
-very small.’
-
-What a night they made of it, and they were still talking over the
-glories of Redbank when the morning light made the lamp grow dim.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XV. THROUGH THE RANGES.
-
-
-Edgar Foster learned that Walter Hepburn had gone to Redbank a term
-or two after his father left the school. Hepburn was therefore well
-acquainted with the prowess of Edgar’s father in the cricket-field. It
-seemed very strange that they should all meet at Alice Springs, and it
-was a date to be noted as a red-letter day when the discovery was made.
-Had Walter Hepburn been free to leave his post, he would, after finding
-out they were Redbank boys, have joined them in their travels farther
-north. School ties bind men fast together, especially when such a good
-feeling existed as always did amongst Redbank lads.
-
-The time came for parting, and when Yacka was sufficiently recovered
-they left the station amidst general regret, and a universally
-expressed wish to see them safe back again.
-
-Yacka was quite himself as soon as all traces of civilization were
-left behind. Once in the ranges he revelled in the mountain air, and
-appeared familiar with every pathway. In one place they had a difficult
-task to perform. Yacka led them up to a gigantic cleft in the rocks,
-which towered high above them on either side. Between these high, rocky
-walls flowed a river, and up it Yacka said they must swim.
-
-‘It will save a big climb over the rocks,’ he said, ‘and I can take
-your clothes on my head.’
-
-There was nothing for it but to strip, and Edgar and Will were not
-averse to a good swim.
-
-Yacka tied their clothes in a bundle, and placing the guns on the top,
-put them all on his head, far out of the reach of the water. He had
-tied the bundle under his chin with a strap, and it was marvellous to
-watch how he swam up the river with such a load on his head.
-
-Edgar and Will plunged in after him, and found the water very cold; but
-the exertion of swimming kept the circulation of their blood up.
-
-‘By Jove! it was a cold bath,’ said Will, as he stood drying himself in
-the sun. ‘It must be the rocks make it like iced-water.’
-
-‘Very refreshing on a hot day,’ said Edgar. ‘They would give a trifle
-to have such a cool bathing-place at Yanda.’
-
-As they proceeded they came across a number of watercourses and hills
-and valleys. They climbed to the top of high rocks, and descended again
-into level lands. At sundown they were tired out, and could hardly
-eat the supper Yacka prepared for them. No sooner had they finished
-their meal than they were sound asleep. But Yacka did not sleep; he
-stood looking down at them with his big eyes, and seemed to be in deep
-thought. The moonlight showed his black form standing over the two
-sleepers, and his attitude was one of dejection.
-
-‘How white they are,’ he muttered, ‘and Yacka so black! but they are
-not as white as Enooma, and Yacka is her son.’
-
-He sat down, and commenced to reason in his own way as to why he should
-be black, and the two sleepers white. He could find no satisfactory
-solution to the problem. Yacka knew naught of the white man’s God, but
-he had a wonderful amount of superstition in his nature, and a firm
-belief that the White Spirit watched over him. Yacka had no fear of
-death; he would have laughed at such a thought, and yet he did not
-understand what death really meant. Had the blackfellow been able to
-express what he really thought about death, it would have been to the
-effect that it was merely the White Spirit’s way of rewarding him for
-his work here by carrying him off to a country where he would be happy
-for ever. Yacka slept but little that night, but he was awake early,
-and ready to start again.
-
-The ranges were passed, and they were now in more open country. On the
-lowlands were numerous bushes, mulga on the hills, and gum and tea tree
-in the creeks. Plains of salt-bush could be seen, but on to the west
-they descried grass-land.
-
-For several days they tramped on, living on the simplest fare, and yet
-feeling strong and well, and fit for almost any exertion.
-
-‘Where are all the blacks we heard so much about?’ said Edgar. ‘We have
-met none yet.’
-
-‘We shall be in the Enooma country by sunset to-morrow,’ said Yacka;
-‘then you will see men of my tribe.’
-
-Yacka spoke truly. The next night they came across a blacks’ camp. To
-Edgar’s surprise there were between two and three hundred of them. As
-they approached Yacka made a peculiar sound like the shrill cry of a
-parrot, only with quite a different note, which roused the blacks, and
-several rushed forward to meet them.
-
-When they saw Yacka the effect was astonishing. At first they looked at
-him in amazement, then an old man cried aloud, ‘Yacka! Yacka! Enooma!
-Enooma!’ and the whole of the blacks, surrounding him, knelt before him.
-
-There was a proud look on Yacka’s face as he motioned them to rise.
-Then he spoke rapidly in the native tongue, and pointed to Edgar and
-Will.
-
-The blacks gave vent to warlike cries, and, shaking their wooden
-spears high in the air, drove them into the ground with terrific force.
-
-‘That means they will kill any man who does you harm,’ said Yacka. ‘You
-are safe here, and the whole tribe will protect you.’
-
-They moved towards the camp, and at their approach the blacks stood up
-and awaited their coming with eager and excited looks.
-
-Yacka was known to them, and was evidently an important man with the
-tribe. Edgar fancied they regarded him with something akin to fear, and
-said to Will:
-
-‘We were right to trust Yacka, for these blacks stand in awe of him,
-and we shall be safe with them.’
-
-‘They are a savage-looking lot,’ said Will, ‘and I should not care
-to have come amongst them alone. If these are the men who molest the
-settlers, I am not surprised at the white men hating them.’
-
-The blacks were tall, powerful men, of a far different stamp to those
-in the west of New South Wales. Yacka was small beside some of them,
-and many were six feet high and over. They were all armed with native
-weapons, and were well prepared for any encounter. As they were in
-such strong force, Edgar came to the conclusion they must be on the
-war-path, and questioned Yacka.
-
-‘They are always armed,’ said Yacka. ‘The Curracoo tribe are their
-deadly enemies, and when they meet they fight.’
-
-‘I never heard of that tribe,’ said Edgar.
-
-‘The Enooma and the Curracoo are not known except in this part of
-Australia,’ said Yacka. ‘They are tribes of the MacDonnell and Musgrave
-blacks. They fight savagely. The Curracoo wish to seize the white
-spirit of the Enooma, and think to capture her; but they know nothing
-of our country, nor of the caves we are going to.’
-
-The blacks regarded Edgar and Will with much curiosity, and from the
-manner in which many of them pointed at their own bodies and then at
-Edgar’s, he thought they could not have seen many white men. It was a
-strange sensation for the two friends to lie awake in the midst of a
-camp of over two hundred savage blacks, and wonder what was about to
-happen.
-
-Early in the morning they were aroused by loud warlike cries, and Yacka
-hurried up to them and said:
-
-‘Follow me; the Curracoo are at hand, and there will be a fight.’
-
-‘And if the Enooma are beaten, what will become of us?’ said Will.
-
-‘The Enooma will win,’ said Yacka. ‘If beaten, Yacka can save you.’
-
-He led them to a small hill not far distant from the camp, and bade
-them remain until his return.
-
-‘You can see the fight,’ he said, ‘and there is no danger.’
-
-‘This is a lively situation,’ said Edgar. ‘With all due respect to
-Yacka, if his tribe is defeated, the Curracoo will make short work of
-us.’
-
-‘There they are!’ said Will, pointing excitedly to a dark mass moving
-across the open country.
-
-‘It seems to me there are some hundreds of them,’ said Edgar; ‘far more
-than the Enooma. This is a poor look-out, Will. We must be prepared to
-fight for our lives.’
-
-As they stood on the rising ground they had a splendid view of the
-plain below, and were soon absorbed in the scene before them. The two
-bodies of blacks were approaching nearer and nearer, and neither tribe
-shirked an encounter. They could see Yacka standing some distance
-apart, and evidently directing the movements of the Enooma.
-
-‘Yacka has learned something in the big cities,’ said Edgar; ‘look
-where he has sent about fifty men round that clump of trees, where they
-are hidden from the enemy. They intend to make an attack on the rear
-that will prove successful.’
-
-Suddenly, and without a moment’s warning, the whole scene changed. On
-the plain, that a moment before had contained two bodies of blacks
-advancing towards each other, there was now a confused mass of figures,
-uttering terrible cries and fighting like furies. The sound of blows
-could be heard above the din, and the grass was dotted with the forms
-of fallen blacks. They were at too close quarters for spears, and
-were using heavy nulla-nullas, and warding off the blows with wooden
-shields.
-
-They saw Yacka quietly surveying the scene, and wondered why he did not
-join in.
-
-‘He is waiting for a favourable opportunity,’ said Edgar. ‘Those men
-behind the trees have not moved yet.’
-
-The cries of the fighting blacks became more and more wild and furious.
-They looked like fiends dancing about in a frenzy, and dealing blows
-on every hand. One huge fellow, a chief of the Enooma, did terrible
-execution with an enormous weapon which he whirled about like a
-battle-axe, and Edgar and Will watched him with a fascination that
-deadened all sense of their own danger if the tribe suffered defeat.
-
-‘Look at him!’ said Edgar. ‘He’s mowing them down like grass. No one
-can stand in his way. His wrist play is splendid--it reminds me of club
-exercise at school.’
-
-‘It’s a trifle more exciting than that,’ said Will. ‘What strength
-the fellow has! He could fell an ox with one of those terrible blows.
-Nothing can stop him.’
-
-As though to give the lie to his words, a black, nearly as big as the
-Enooma chief, barred his way, and a desperate combat took place. Both
-men had wooden shields with which they dexterously warded off the
-blows. They were evenly matched, although the Enooma black was a shade
-taller than his opponent. Both were mad with rage and thirst for blood,
-and it was a duel to the death.
-
-‘He’s down!’ shouted Edgar, as the Enooma chief slipped; but it was
-only a feint, as the black, dodging a blow aimed at his head by his
-opponent, suddenly raised himself. The Curracoo overbalanced himself
-with the force of the blow, and fell forward. As he stumbled along, the
-Enooma, raising his huge club on high, brought it down with tremendous
-force on the back of the Curracoo’s head. Where they stood they could
-hear the blow, and Edgar shuddered as he saw the black’s head split
-open, and he fell dead on the ground.
-
-Seeing their champion killed, the Curracoo wavered; and, seizing this
-favourable opportunity, Yacka, uttering a loud war-yell, sprang forward
-and called upon the men in ambush to follow him. In a few minutes the
-Enooma blacks were furiously attacking the Curracoos in the rear.
-Unaccustomed to these tactics, the Curracoos were terrified, and at
-once tried to run away from the danger. This, however, was impossible;
-they were hemmed in on all sides, and by merciless foes who knew not
-the meaning of the word ‘quarter.’ It was a fearful sight to see these
-blacks felled to the ground by the heavy blows rained upon them on all
-sides. The Enooma were bent upon slaughter, and killed their enemies
-without mercy. The plain had every appearance of a battle-field, and in
-some places half a dozen blacks were piled in a heap, dead.
-
-At a signal from Yacka the Enooma ceased fighting, and, surrounding the
-blacks still left alive, held them prisoners. These men were disarmed
-and marched off towards the camp. A few of the Curracoos could be seen
-flying from the scene of the battle which had proved so fatal to them,
-but comparatively few of them escaped.
-
-Yacka came to Edgar and Will, and they saw he was almost covered with
-blood, and his club was dripping dark-red drops. The black’s eyes shone
-with the light of battle and thirst for blood. All the savage nature of
-this strange being was roused, and the cruelty in him was uppermost. He
-shook the blood-stained club over his head, and said:
-
-‘Victory to the Enooma. There has been a terrible slaughter. Come and
-see. Yacka will show you how the Enooma strike their enemies.’
-
-Edgar and Will descended from the hill where they had witnessed the
-fight, and followed Yacka on to the field of battle.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVI. AFTER THE FIGHT.
-
-
-It was indeed a terrible sight the two friends gazed upon. On the
-ground where the fight had furiously raged lay scores of dead blacks in
-all attitudes, just as they had fallen. It made them shudder to look
-at the scene. The terrific nature of the blows dealt was apparent, for
-most of the dead had their skulls fractured, and their features were
-ghastly and distorted. Their weapons lay near them, and Edgar picked
-up the club which the powerful black who fought the Enooma chief had
-used. It was a great weight, and fully three feet long, and capable of
-dealing a fearful blow, even in a weak man’s hands. The end was covered
-with blood and hair, showing that the Curracoo had killed many enemies
-before he was slain.
-
-‘You will bury these men?’ asked Edgar.
-
-‘The Enooma must have burial,’ said Yacka; ‘the Curracoo are not fit to
-be hidden away;’ and he struck a fallen black, who still showed signs
-of life, over the head with his club.
-
-‘That was a cowardly thing to do,’ said Edgar.
-
-‘They are not fit to live,’ said Yacka, and went on.
-
-‘What a brute he is, after all!’ said Will, in a low voice. ‘He is no
-better than the others.’
-
-‘He is a savage at heart,’ said Edgar, ‘and we must make allowances for
-him.’
-
-‘If he kills defenceless men like that,’ said Will, ‘I would not give
-much for our lives if he felt disposed to turn upon us.’
-
-‘He will not do that,’ said Edgar. ‘We are his friends, these men his
-enemies. Had the Curracoo won, they would have treated the Enooma in
-the same way. This savage warfare is the same the world over, I expect.
-It is a horrible sight.’
-
-‘Over a hundred killed,’ said Yacka, with a savage smile; ‘and we have
-many prisoners.’
-
-‘Shall you kill the prisoners?’ asked Edgar.
-
-‘Yes; and leave them as a warning to the tribe.’
-
-‘How will they be put to death?’ asked Edgar, who had read of the
-tortures inflicted by savages in Africa and elsewhere.
-
-‘That will be decided,’ said Yacka. ‘The Enooma know how to kill their
-enemies.’
-
-After a gruesome tramp over the battle-field, they returned to the
-camp. The victorious Enooma were already commencing to celebrate their
-triumph.
-
-Edgar saw a group of prisoners, about forty or fifty in number, bound
-with thongs made of some kind of reed or long grass. They all looked
-terror-stricken, and evidently knew what was in store for them.
-
-‘Poor wretches!’ said Will. ‘It would be a kindness to shoot them.’
-
-‘We must not interfere,’ said Edgar. ‘It would be risking our lives to
-do so. Even Yacka would not stand that.’
-
-‘You saw a dance at Yanda,’ said Yacka. ‘You will see a genuine war
-dance soon.’
-
-Towards night the big men of the tribe assembled round Yacka, and all
-squatted on the ground.
-
-‘They are deciding the fate of the prisoners,’ said Will. ‘I hope it
-will not be very awful.’
-
-The consultation did not last long, and Yacka came towards them. He
-seemed pleased at the prospect before him, and laughed harshly.
-
-‘It is good,’ he said. ‘All die a dog’s death.’
-
-‘Will they be hanged?’ asked Will.
-
-‘Some,’ said Yacka. ‘Wait and see.’
-
-There were many trees near the camp, and they had big white branches a
-good height from the ground. Ten of the Curracoos were brought forward
-and thrown down under the trees. They were then raised feet first, and
-bound with their heads downwards round the trunks of the trees. Others
-were drawn up, feet foremost, over the branches, and left hanging with
-their heads touching the feet of the others.
-
-Edgar protested to Yacka, but he took no notice. The black was looking
-at the fearful scene with savage delight. There was no mercy to be got
-out of Yacka, so Edgar did not speak to him again.
-
-Other blacks were brought to these trees, cast down on their faces, and
-spears were driven through their backs, pinning them to the ground in
-such a manner that they could not get free. Their cries were fearful,
-and made the place seem like a hell upon earth. Some of the cruelties
-were too fearful to relate, and yet Yacka watched it all with fiendish
-glee. When the last prisoner had been tortured and left to die a
-lingering death, Yacka was satisfied.
-
-‘We cannot trust you after what we have seen,’ said Edgar. ‘We shall go
-back. Guide us to Alice Springs; if not, we must risk it, and go alone.’
-
-Yacka was dumfounded. He could not understand the reason of their
-distrust in him. He had acted according to the customs of his tribe,
-and knew, had the Curracoo won, the Enooma would have been treated in
-a similar way. It was the fortune of war. The Enooma had gained the
-victory; why should the white men mistrust him because the tribe had
-taken their just revenge?
-
-‘Yacka is your friend,’ said the black. ‘You have come to no harm. We
-make war in our own way. You kill many men with big guns. I have seen
-them fired. They kill many at one shot. It is more terrible than our
-wars.’
-
-‘We do not torture prisoners,’ said Edgar. ‘You are no better than
-these savages.’
-
-‘I am the son of Enooma,’ said Yacka; ‘therefore I am the head of them.
-The head guides the body. I am the chief, the king, and I am above them
-all.’
-
-‘You are as cruel as they are,’ said Edgar. ‘If you are the King of the
-Enooma, why did you not kill these men at once, not torture them?’
-
-‘It is the will of Enooma,’ said Yacka, ‘and she must be obeyed.’
-
-‘The White Spirit would never allow men to be tortured,’ said Edgar.
-‘There is no White Spirit over the Enooma; it is a black spirit, and
-full of evil.’
-
-‘You saved Yacka’s life,’ said the black, ‘and he is grateful. If my
-tribe know you call Enooma a black spirit, Yacka could not save you.
-Follow me. It is not far. Yacka will lead you back when you have looked
-upon the White Spirit, and seen the gold and beautiful stones.’
-
-The agonized groans of the tortured blacks sounded terrible, and Edgar
-said:
-
-‘Kill these men, and we will go with you.’
-
-Yacka hesitated, and Edgar, noticing it, said:
-
-‘I took your hand in friendship; now it is stained in blood. Kill these
-men, and I will forgive you, and the White Spirit will be glad.’
-
-‘It shall be,’ said Yacka, and moved away towards the camp.
-
-How he prevailed upon the tribe he did not say, but the tortured men
-were killed, and their groans ceased, much to Edgar’s relief.
-
-After this experience, there was no telling what might happen if
-another encounter took place with a hostile tribe, and the Enooma were
-defeated. Yacka, however, had no intention of proceeding alone, and
-Edgar and Will found the tribe was to accompany them. Marching many
-miles a day in the company of a tribe of warlike blacks was a novel
-experience. Edgar had many opportunities of noting how they lived and
-their habits. He soon learned that the Enooma were excellent marksmen,
-and could throw a spear with as great accuracy as he could shoot. They
-used their boomerangs dexterously.
-
-Yacka was an adept at throwing this peculiar weapon, which is almost
-in the shape of a half crescent, and is made of very hard wood, smooth
-and shaved down to a sharp edge on the inside curve. Yacka could throw
-his boomerang high into the air, until it appeared a mere speck, and it
-came down in a series of curves until it fell at his feet. No matter
-how far he threw the boomerang, it invariably returned to him.
-
-The first time Edgar attempted throwing a boomerang he was rather
-astonished. Instead of going high into the air, it gave a few curves,
-then flew rapidly backwards, and Edgar had to duck his head quickly to
-avoid a blow.
-
-‘It is not so easy as it looks,’ he said to Will. ‘Have a try?’
-
-Will took the weapon and tried, with no better result; in fact, he came
-off worse than Edgar, for he got a severe blow on the shin. The blacks
-were amused at the white men’s clumsy attempts to throw the boomerang,
-and their grins of satisfaction exasperated Edgar.
-
-‘They imagine we can do nothing in this line,’ he said to Will. ‘We
-must undeceive them, or they will have a very poor opinion of us. We
-have not many shots to spare; but it may be as well to show them how
-deadly a gun is.’
-
-Edgar explained to Yacka that it was not fair the blacks should have it
-all their own way.
-
-‘Throw your boomerang, and I’ll engage to hit it in the air,’ said
-Edgar.
-
-Yacka did not care to risk his own boomerang, which was carved in a
-fantastic manner, so he took another, and, after telling the blacks
-what Edgar was about to do, he flung it into the air.
-
-As it came circling down Edgar fired and hit it, but it did not split
-with the shot; the marks, however, were plainly visible, and the blacks
-were not only terrified at the noise, but amazed at the result. It was
-Will’s turn next, and he elected to try his luck with the revolver.
-
-Yacka fastened one of the blacks’ loin-cloths to a tree, doubling it
-into a small space. These cloths were made of thick skin, probably
-kangaroo, and when doubled it offered strong resistance to a bullet.
-
-Will fired at twenty paces. The bullet passed through the skin and
-flattened against the tree. On seeing this, the blacks regarded the
-revolver with much interest, but would not handle it.
-
-The Enooma blacks were athletic fellows, and could run, jump, and
-wrestle in a manner that surprised Edgar, who knew a good deal about
-such sports.
-
-In his Redbank days Edgar had run his hundred yards in even time, and
-he was in splendid condition now.
-
-One of the Enooma, called Ouwana, they noticed was a fine runner, and
-Will suggested Edgar should try his speed against him.
-
-Yacka, as usual, arranged matters.
-
-Ouwana was a tall, lithe-limbed black, about twenty years old, and with
-a less repulsive cast of countenance than many of his tribe. He was
-quite willing to run Edgar, and Will measured out the distance as near
-as he could stride it.
-
-Yacka acted as starter, the signal being a loud clap of the hands, and
-Will was judge. The blacks grew quite excited over the race.
-
-Yacka’s hands met with a crack like a pistol, and, trained as he had
-been to start smartly, Edgar gained a slight advantage. He ran his
-best, but before he had gone fifty yards it was a hopeless case, as
-Ouwana passed him like a flash, and simply won hands down.
-
-Edgar was amazed, not so much at being beaten, as by the easy way in
-which it was done.
-
-‘He’s a champion,’ said Edgar.
-
-‘He would be good enough to win one of those big handicaps we saw
-advertised in the Sydney paper before we left Yanda. How much was the
-prize money?’
-
-‘About six hundred pounds, I think,’ said Will; ‘I wish we had Ouwana
-there.’
-
-‘So do I,’ said Edgar; ‘it would be rare fun to see the black fellow
-“down” the cracks.’
-
-The days passed quickly, and Edgar and Will had no thought of time.
-They did not even know what month it was, and were dead out of their
-reckoning as regards the days of the week.
-
-What surprised them most was the fertile nature of the country. They
-had passed across a vast sandy plain, and taken some days to do it,
-but ever since they left it behind they had been tramping over what
-Edgar knew would not only be excellent sheep country, but would also
-carry cattle. Grass was plentiful--not brown, dry grass, but green and
-juicy--proving there had either been recent rain, or there was plenty
-of moisture in the earth.
-
-It was not a flat, dull, and uninteresting country, for there were
-hills and valleys, and trees and shrubs, and beautiful wild flowers and
-blossoming trees were found in many places. Wild berries and fruits
-they found, and running streams of water, which seemed to find their
-source in the many caves with which the mountains were honeycombed. In
-some of these streams, which at times were sufficiently large to be
-called rivers, crocodiles were found, both large and small. The larger
-crocodile was voracious, and it was not safe to bathe when any of them
-showed their ugly heads, but the smaller species was harmless, and
-never ventured to attack them.
-
-The Enooma blacks were fond of the water, and often risked their lives
-bathing and swimming where crocodiles were to be seen.
-
-Ouwana was especially venturesome, and often speared a crocodile in the
-water.
-
-Yacka said he had seen Ouwana fight a crocodile, with a shortened spear
-like a dagger, for the mere excitement of the sport.
-
-Edgar managed to further earn the goodwill of the blacks by saving
-Ouwana’s life.
-
-The black dived into the stream, and was swimming in the centre, when a
-huge crocodile appeared close beside him. The hideous creature opened
-its monster jaws, showing great ugly teeth, and in another moment
-would have ended Ouwana’s career. Edgar luckily had his gun with him,
-and, taking a steady aim with the barrel used for ball, fired. The
-crocodile sank like a stone.
-
-Ouwana was unaware of his danger, and at first thought Edgar had fired
-at him. This roused all the ferociousness in the black’s nature, and it
-would have gone hard with Edgar had Yacka not come up and explained.
-
-When Ouwana found out what Edgar had done he showed his repentance for
-doubting him, and his thankfulness for his delivery from a fearful
-death, by kneeling down and putting both arms round Edgar’s legs. He
-then looked up into his face with such sorrowful eyes that Edgar patted
-his woolly head, much as he would have done that of a big dog.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVII. WONDROUS CAVERNS.
-
-
-‘Look!’ said Yacka, pointing to a range of hills in the distance.
-‘There you will find the cave of the White Spirit, and your journey
-will be ended.’
-
-Gazing in the direction the black indicated, they saw hill upon hill
-towering one above the other like a number of huge pyramids. It was a
-strange sight in this wild country, where it was doubtful if ever a
-white man had set foot before.
-
-They were all eagerness to continue the journey, but Yacka said this
-could not be. Certain forms and ceremonies were to be gone through
-before he could venture with them into the hills and caves where
-Enooma, the White Spirit, lay at rest. Only the head of the tribe was
-permitted to enter the cave, and so superstitious were the blacks upon
-this point, that they believed it meant certain death to anyone of
-their number who disobeyed. Consequently Yacka would have no difficulty
-in showing Edgar and Will what the cave contained, as he alone could
-enter.
-
-Yacka had stated to the tribe that the white men were come to see
-Enooma, who was of the same race, and therefore they must be permitted
-to enter the cave.
-
-At the foot of the nearest hill--it could almost be called a
-mountain--they halted, and the blacks commenced a wild, weird chant
-which sounded like the wail of lost spirits. They prostrated themselves
-upon the ground, and made signs with their spears.
-
-Yacka stepped on ahead, and beckoned to Edgar and Will to follow, which
-they did without hesitation. The other blacks came on at a respectful
-distance, and seemed afraid that something was about to happen. In the
-side of the hill they were approaching, Edgar saw a large cleft in the
-rock wide enough to admit half a dozen people to pass in abreast. These
-hills were all solid rock, not merely mounds of earth, and were bare
-in many places, while in fissures grew trees, and wild creepers hung
-down in great profusion. Orchids were growing of exceptional beauty,
-and Edgar, as he looked at them, thought of the price they would bring
-in the old country. As they entered the cleft in the rock the blacks
-remained behind, and squatted down on the ground.
-
-‘They guard the entrance,’ said Yacka. ‘When no one is here this
-opening in the rock closes up, and no one can find the cave of Enooma.’
-
-Edgar wondered how Yacka knew the cleft closed up if no one was there
-to see such a strange thing happen.
-
-‘How can you tell that,’ he said, ‘if you have never seen it?’
-
-‘Rest and listen,’ said Yacka: ‘You never believe I speak truth because
-I am black. Once the Enooma were defeated by the Curracoo, and fled
-before them to these hills. They were so hard-pressed that they had
-to rush through the cleft in the rock, and when the last of the tribe
-passed in the cleft closed and shut the Curracoo out. This is true, for
-men of the tribe have told me, and they do not lie to the chief.’
-
-Edgar believed this to be another superstition of the blacks, but he
-could not resist looking behind him towards the cleft they had entered
-by. With a loud cry he sprang to his feet, for behind them there was a
-solid rock, and he could see nothing of the blacks they had left. Will
-looked, and turned pale as he saw they were shut in.
-
-‘How is this?’ said Edgar. ‘What has happened?’
-
-‘Enooma has closed her gate,’ said Yacka. ‘She knows of the approach of
-her son and the white men, and she wishes to be undisturbed.’
-
-Edgar walked back to where he imagined the cleft in the rock by which
-they entered had been, but he could see nothing but a solid mass in
-front of him. He felt the rock and it was hard and firm, and must have
-been there for ages. How had this strange thing happened? Yacka must
-have suddenly turned as they walked along, and the opening become
-hidden, but as they entered the black appeared to have gone straight on.
-
-‘I give it up,’ said Edgar. ‘We seem to be blocked in here, and shall
-have to trust to Yacka to get us out. It makes a fellow feel queer when
-such strange things happen, but I have no doubt there is an explanation
-of it if we can find it out.’
-
-The place they were now standing in was a narrow defile between rocks
-towering up perpendicularly to a considerable height. These rocks were
-bare and smooth, and not a plant or fern could be seen growing on the
-sides. Before them was the mouth of a cave, and inside seemed dark as
-pitch. Yacka walked to the mouth of the cave, and they followed him.
-When they became accustomed to the gloom, they saw a faint glimmer
-of light, about the size of a bull’s-eye lantern glass, in the far
-distance. So far as Edgar could make out, the sides of the cave were
-rocks, but smoothed in a similar way to those on either side of the
-defile they had left. The floor of the cave was hard and even, in some
-places so smooth that it became slippery and dangerous. Yacka did not
-speak, but kept moving slowly forward, and they could see the dim
-outline of his figure.
-
-‘It must have been the action of water for ages that has made the floor
-so smooth,’ said Edgar. ‘How cold it is after the heat we have had!
-Reminds me of a petrifying cave. I believe if we remained here long
-enough we should be turned into stone.’
-
-‘I have no desire to be turned into a petrified mummy at present,’ said
-Will laughing; ‘but you’re right about the cold--I am chilled to the
-bone.’
-
-‘How much more of this is there, Yacka?’ said Edgar, speaking loud
-enough for the black, who was some way in front, to hear him.
-
-The sound of his voice echoed through the passage, and gradually died
-away in the distance.
-
-‘Wait,’ said Yacka. ‘Be careful here.’
-
-They had need of the warning, for they were now treading upon something
-soft and slimy, and the sensation was not pleasant. They slipped about
-and made but little progress, and were glad when the ground felt hard
-and dry again.
-
-The round ball of light at the end was gradually widening, and they
-could now see more plainly the nature of the passage they were
-traversing. Looking up to the roof Edgar saw thousands of glittering
-stars, which flashed and twinkled even with the faint light from the
-opening.
-
-‘Look, Will,’ he said; ‘how lovely this roof would be if there was more
-light! They might be diamonds, they sparkle so.’
-
-‘Wish they were,’ replied Will. ‘A few diamonds would help a fellow
-along--you know in what direction I mean.’
-
-‘Yacka has promised to make us rich. I wonder if he will let us take
-what we like if there is anything to take?’
-
-It was a mass of various-coloured stalactites on the roof that had
-attracted Edgar’s attention, and as they got more light in the passage
-they were seen in all their beauty. The sides were also covered with
-curiously-twisted and gnarled designs. As they neared the opening they
-saw the sun was shining brightly, and that they were about to enter an
-open space. They were not, however, prepared for the sight that burst
-upon their astonished gaze as they stepped out of the darkness into the
-full light of the sun. Yacka watched them with a delighted expression
-in his eyes, and had evidently anticipated the surprise he was about to
-give them.
-
-They were so charmed with the scene that they sat down and looked upon
-it without saying a word. The spot they were in was like a large basin
-hollowed out of the solid rocks. The sides sloped down gradually, and
-were hollowed out at the base. Had there been tiers of seats round, it
-would have resembled in shape a vast amphitheatre. There was, however,
-something far more picturesque than bare seats round this wonderful
-circle. The whole of the basin was covered with a kind of green moss,
-which looked like velvet as the sun shone upon it.
-
-This velvet bed was studded with a profusion of flowers of all colours,
-shapes, and sizes. Brilliant orchids selected the most shady nooks to
-fix their abode in. Huge white convolvulus spread over projections and
-clumps; lilies of great height filled in spaces where water lodged, and
-gently trickled down into a pool in the hollow of the basin. Great nest
-ferns surrounded the water, their fronds, over six feet long, spreading
-out like large fans. The miniata had its large carmine blossoms showing
-to perfection, the colour being dazzling. Pandanus and screw palms also
-grew amongst the giant ferns and lilies. Floating on the water in the
-basin were gigantic water-lilies.
-
-So scooped out was this basin, that there was an ample shade for the
-numerous ferns and lilies that do not flourish with the full light of
-the sun upon them. Surrounded by such lovely flowers and ferns, and
-with a cool pool of water to make everything refreshing, it is small
-wonder, after their recent experiences, that Edgar and Will fancied
-themselves in an enchanted spot. How it all came here no one could
-fathom. Nature fixes upon strange spots in which to work at her best.
-All they knew and cared about was that in an unexplored part of
-Australia they had come upon such a wonderful scene.
-
-Yacka assured them this was a mere nothing when compared with the cave
-of Enooma.
-
-The place they were now in he described as the bathing-place of Enooma,
-and said the waters from the caves did not run into this place.
-
-‘You can drink this water,’ said Yacka, ‘but not that in the caves. It
-is bitter, and will turn the tongue hard, and you will have no taste.’
-
-It always struck Edgar as curious that, no matter where they happened
-to be, Yacka could invariably procure them a good meal. Even in this
-spot, where it did not seem likely they would be able to find much to
-relieve their hunger, Yacka got berries and roots, some water from the
-pool, and made quite a pleasant, and what proved to be a strengthening,
-drink. He also gave them a root which he said would appease hunger for
-a time whenever tasted.
-
-Yacka would not allow them to linger here, but walked round the basin.
-
-Edgar saw no outlet except the one by which they had entered. At the
-far side Yacka pulled aside the dense masses of ferns, and they saw an
-opening large enough to admit of a man crawling through. Yacka went
-first, and they followed on their hands and knees.
-
-This passage was about fifty yards in length, and at the other end
-was an open cave, which was lighted by a hole in the roof, naturally
-formed. Gliding down the walls were glistening drops of water, and
-the floor was very uneven, and covered with masses of rock that must
-at some remote period have become detached from the roof. Some of the
-tracery on the walls Edgar looked at with wonder. It was of a rich
-cream colour, and almost like the texture of a cashmere shawl.
-
-All sorts of shapes and figures could be seen caused by the action of
-the water, which must have taken thousands of years to perform its
-work, and would take thousands more years to complete it. Hanging from
-the roof were large pendants like icicles, and the water ran slowly
-down them and dripped off at the end. The hollow underneath caused by
-these drips showed the extreme age of the cave.
-
-Leaning against the side of the cave Edgar saw close to him what at
-first looked like a bunch of grapes; but when he observed it closely he
-found it was a peculiar formation in the rock.
-
-‘That is one of the secrets,’ said Yacka. ‘It is a guide to the inner
-cave we must enter. Watch.’
-
-Yacka pushed the bunch of grapes, and a large slab of rock moved slowly
-round, and through the opening they saw another large cave beyond.
-
-‘Enter and wait,’ said Yacka.
-
-‘Are you coming?’ said Edgar.
-
-‘I will fetch you,’ said Yacka; ‘but I must enter the White Spirit’s
-cave before you, or harm may befall.’
-
-‘I don’t half like it,’ said Edgar. ‘We are not afraid, but you had
-better go on with us.’
-
-Yacka said: ‘You must remain alone.’
-
-‘All right,’ said Edgar, sitting down on a projection from the rock;
-‘but make haste back.’
-
-Yacka went away, and when they looked round they found the rock had
-swung back into its place, and they were imprisoned in the cave.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVIII. THE WHITE SPIRIT.
-
-
-It was not a pleasant sensation to find themselves alone, shut up in a
-cave, only a faint glimmer of light being visible, and from which there
-appeared to be no means of escape. There was a peculiar clammy dampness
-about the atmosphere, and a strange vault-like smell. It might have
-been an old tomb, so weird was everything surrounding them.
-
-‘The stone must have swung back into its place,’ said Edgar. ‘Yacka
-will open it when he returns.’
-
-‘All the same, I don’t like it,’ said Will. ‘Suppose he could not move
-the stone again. If anything happened to him, we have very little
-chance of getting out.’
-
-‘There is no occasion for alarm at present,’ said Edgar. ‘I trust
-Yacka, and he will soon return. To pass away the time we may as well
-examine the cave. It is evidently only one of many. The whole of these
-rocks and hills are honeycombed.’
-
-They stepped cautiously, and felt the sides of the cave, finding them
-smooth and even.
-
-‘Here is another of these peculiar formations like a bunch of grapes,’
-said Edgar. ‘Perhaps there is another stone that swings round. We can
-try at any rate.’
-
-He pushed the hard knob, as he had seen Yacka do, and cried out
-excitedly:
-
-‘It moves, Will; come and help me! Push hard! I can feel it giving way.’
-
-Slowly the huge stone moved, and there was an opening wide enough for
-them to pass through.
-
-Edgar went through first, but came back quickly when Will called out
-the opening was closing up again and the stone swinging back into its
-place. Edgar had just time to step back into the cave when the stone
-swung to.
-
-‘That is the way the other must have closed up,’ said Edgar. ‘It made
-no noise. Let us have another try, the cave on the other side is much
-larger than this.’
-
-‘If we get through,’ said Will, ‘the stone will swing back, and we
-shall be worse off than before. Yacka will not be able to find us when
-he returns.’
-
-‘He will follow us,’ said Edgar. ‘He must know of this cave and the way
-to enter it.’
-
-‘If you mean going on, I will follow you,’ said Will.
-
-They moved the stone again, and this time they both stepped quickly
-through before it swung back.
-
-The cave they entered was, as Edgar said, much larger than the one they
-had just left. It was lighted by the same dim light, but they could not
-see from whence it came.
-
-‘Here is another knob,’ said Will. ‘They must have been made by the
-blacks. Perhaps we are on the way to the cave of Enooma. I wonder what
-Yacka will think if we reach it before him.’
-
-‘He will think we have been guided there by the White Spirit,’ said
-Edgar, ‘and will regard us with superstitious awe. It would be a good
-thing if we could come across the cave he spoke of without his help.’
-
-The stone turned in a similar way to the others, but this time they
-found themselves in a long passage, like an old mining tunnel in a rock.
-
-They walked cautiously along, but there was more light here than in
-the cave they had left. Edgar kicked a loose stone and it rolled some
-distance in front and then vanished, and they heard a splash. The stone
-had fallen into a deep hole, and as they peered down they saw the water
-rolling slowly along at a considerable depth.
-
-‘It must be an underground river,’ said Edgar. ‘We have had a narrow
-escape.’
-
-They shuddered to think what would have befallen them had they not
-been warned by the stone. Round one side of the opening was a narrow
-pathway, and along this they passed safely to the opposite side,
-looking well ahead in case there should be more of these death traps.
-
-The passage wound through the rock in a tortuous manner, and after they
-had gone a considerable distance, they sat down to rest and wonder
-where it would lead them. Will wished they had remained in the cave and
-waited for Yacka’s return, and Edgar began to think he had ventured
-upon a foolhardy journey.
-
-‘We are in for it now,’ he said, ‘and shall have to go on, for we
-cannot find our way back, and even if we did, we could not push the
-stones round from this side. It looks very much like the workings of
-an old mine, but there can have been no mining done here, because the
-blacks know nothing of such work. What’s that?’
-
-They listened intently and heard a faint sound in the distance like
-someone in pain and wailing aloud.
-
-‘Come along,’ said Edgar, ‘there is someone ahead of us.’
-
-They walked on as fast as they were able, and presently came to the end
-of the passage. Here they found another stone blocking the exit, but it
-had been partly pushed aside as though someone had just entered, and it
-had not swung back into its place. Edgar passed through, and as he did
-so held up his hand to caution Will not to make a noise.
-
-It was a strange, weird sight they saw. They had entered another
-large cave, but it was of a totally different formation to those they
-had seen. At the far end of the cave was a beautiful crystal wall
-nearly thirty feet high. The stalagmites were short and thick, and the
-stalactitic formations extremely long, many being over a hundred feet
-in length. Massive deposits could be seen on all sides heaped up in the
-most curious manner. Many of them were of a wondrous salmon colour,
-others were deep red, and brown, and several glittered with a dull
-blood-red glow.
-
-They were awed by this grand, majestic freak of Nature. To the left
-was another passage, full of magnificent columns of stalactites and
-stalagmites, all pure white and diamond-like in brilliance; they seemed
-to be coated with sparkling and lustrous gems. These columns rose from
-floor to roof like huge pillars in some vast cathedral. They were of
-different formations, but all about the same height. All the colours
-of the rainbow sparkled in the various pillars, and the effect was
-dazzling.
-
-Passing down this magnificent column passage, untouched by the art of
-man, and marvelling at its strange beauty, they came to a beautiful
-shawl-like formation of the purest white, which hung suspended from the
-roof between two massive pillars until it reached within a yard of the
-floor. This curtain was of the most delicate pattern, the tracery being
-very fine, in some places almost as fine as a spider’s web. There were
-designs on it of flowers and leaves unlike any they had ever seen in
-reality. It was evident this curtain shut off some chamber beyond from
-the passage of columns they had just passed through.
-
-Edgar was about to speak, when they again heard the wail that had
-before startled them.
-
-This time it sounded nearer, on the other side of the curtain, and
-Edgar stooped down in order to pass underneath. Will followed him, and
-both clutched their revolvers.
-
-They were now in a richly-stocked chamber of large size, the colours
-on the rock and the roof being of a dazzling white, like alabaster. In
-a recess at the end was a white recumbent figure, resting on a huge
-salmon-coloured slab, from which hung down like drapery a yellow-tinted
-curtain of stone, with red-veined tracery running through it in all
-manner of intricate shapes and ways.
-
-Before this stone figure, resting upon its hard bed, knelt the black
-figure of Yacka, standing out with extraordinary distinctness from his
-white surroundings. Yacka prostrated himself before the white figure,
-and from time to time gave a low, yet piercing, wailing cry.
-
-They stood looking upon the strange scene in silence, and neither felt
-inclined to break it.
-
-Yacka suddenly seemed to be aware that someone was present, for he rose
-to his feet and, turning round, faced them.
-
-He did not seem at all surprised to see them, and beckoned to them to
-advance.
-
-When they reached the stone upon which Yacka stood, the black said:
-
-‘Kneel, kneel. This is the White Spirit of the Enooma. This is Enooma,
-and this is her cave. She dwells here. She has lived here from the
-beginning, and Yacka is her son. Kneel before the White Spirit.’
-
-To humour him they knelt. There was something solemn about the
-proceedings--something it was difficult to understand. As they knelt,
-Yacka wailed again, and the peculiar cry echoed through the white,
-vaulted chamber.
-
-‘I knew you would come,’ said Yacka. ‘Enooma told me you would find
-your way. She whispered to me that you were of her race, and her
-people.’ The black’s voice had a sad tone in it. ‘She has found her
-white sons, and the poor black must know her no more; Yacka is no
-longer the only son of Enooma. He has brought you to her, and she
-claims you as her own. You are of her race and her people. Rise and
-look upon the face of Enooma, the White Spirit, and say did Yacka speak
-false when he brought you here.’
-
-Edgar and Will rose to their feet, and, standing on a large slab which
-Yacka pointed out to them, they looked down upon the figure before them.
-
-To Edgar it looked like the figure of a very beautiful woman carved in
-alabaster. She lay on her back, with her hands hidden beneath the folds
-of a fine piece of stone lacework. The lower part of the figure had a
-similar covering, so that the actual part of a woman visible to them
-was the face only. But the lace covering of the body was of such fine
-work that the figure could almost be seen underneath.
-
-The face of Enooma wore a calm and peaceful expression, such as is
-invariably found upon the carved monuments of the dead, and bearing but
-little sign of the mind that worked within before death.
-
-‘Can this be the image of a being that once lived here?’ said Edgar to
-Will.
-
-Yacka stood some distance away, and could not hear them.
-
-‘Impossible,’ said Will. ‘No white woman has ever been here.’
-
-‘It may not have been a white woman,’ said Edgar. ‘Carved as this is,
-one could not tell whether the original was black or white. It is an
-alabaster figure, or looks like it.’ He touched the figure on the face
-with his hand, and drew it back suddenly. ‘It feels quite hot,’ he said.
-
-‘Probably so intensely cold that you imagined for the moment it burned
-you,’ said Will.
-
-Edgar touched the face again, but, strange to say, could not keep his
-hand upon it.
-
-‘You try,’ he said; and Will put his hand out.
-
-Yacka saw the motion, and called out:
-
-‘Touch her not! Only one must touch her.’
-
-Will smiled as he said:
-
-‘I will do her no harm, Yacka.’
-
-‘At your own risk,’ said the black, ‘touch her, but do not blame me; I
-warned you.’
-
-Will put out his hand again, and then a strange thing happened. Before
-he touched the face his feet slipped, and he fell off the slab with
-such force that, his head coming into violent contact with the stone,
-he was stunned.
-
-Edgar jumped down and held up his head, and in a few moments Will
-recovered his senses.
-
-‘I warned you,’ said Yacka.
-
-‘It was a pure accident,’ said Will.
-
-Edgar made no remark, but he thought it a strange coincidence.
-
-A peculiar rumbling sound was heard, and Yacka listened intently. In
-a moment there was a terrific crash. The rock upon which they stood
-shook, and the sides of the cave seemed to rock.
-
-The slab upon which rested the White Spirit of Enooma rocked to and
-fro, and the figure seemed to move.
-
-Crash followed crash, and roar upon roar. The forces of Nature seemed
-to have suddenly burst loose, and a general upheaval was taking place.
-So violent became the oscillation, that they were compelled to lie down
-on the floor of the cave.
-
-‘It is Enooma’s welcome to her own people,’ said Yacka, who was not in
-the least afraid.
-
-‘It is an earthquake,’ said Edgar in an awestruck voice.
-
-‘What is an earthquake?’ said Yacka.
-
-Edgar made no reply. He could not. For the first time he felt a strange
-fear creep over him. With a trembling hand he pointed to the white
-figure of Enooma.
-
-They looked with wondering eyes, and on Yacka’s face was an expression
-of absolute terror. The slab on which Enooma rested cracked and split,
-and the white figure disappeared from view.
-
-With a terrible cry of rage Yacka sprang to his feet, and looked down
-the opening into which the White Spirit of Enooma had disappeared.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIX. THE FORCES OF NATURE.
-
-
-As Yacka stood on the height above them, his black figure seemed to
-grow and expand until he looked a giant in stature. His rage was
-terrible, and his whole frame shook with wrath. Shock followed quickly
-upon shock, but Yacka maintained his foothold, despite the violent
-concussions that rocked the cave.
-
-A huge piece of rock crashed down at Edgar’s feet, the broken portions
-flying in all directions. They at once looked round for some place to
-hide in, and some protection from the falling stones. Crawling along
-on their hands and knees, they crept under a portion of the slab upon
-which the white figure had rested, and which had fallen upon two large
-rocks that upheld it. Under this they had a safe shelter, providing the
-ground held firm. Above the roar and din of falling rocks they could
-now hear the peals of thunder, which sounded like salvos of artillery.
-A crack in the roof of the cavern admitted the lightning, which darted
-in and out incessantly.
-
-From where they were hidden they could see Yacka, who still stood a
-solitary black figure amidst this chaos. The black was lost to all
-sense of danger, even to the nature of the surroundings. One thought
-alone absorbed him--the sudden vanishing of the white figure of Enooma.
-He peered into the depths below him, but could see nothing; he waved
-his hands wildly, and uttered loud cries.
-
-Watching him intently, Edgar and Will were afraid every moment he would
-jump into the fissure, or be hurled into it by a sudden shock. After
-a few moments’ pause in this battle of the forces of Nature, another
-shock was felt. They heard the same dull, rumbling sound, and felt the
-vibration of the earth beneath them. The movement increased in force,
-until they were rocked to and fro, and had to cling to the edge of the
-slab for support. Another rush of fallen rocks and stones took place,
-and after a terrific and prolonged peal of thunder a dead silence
-reigned. After the deafening noise the sudden silence could almost be
-felt; the change was marvellous.
-
-‘It is all over,’ said Edgar. ‘Thank God, we are alive!’
-
-They crept out of their hiding-place and looked for Yacka, but he was
-nowhere to be seen. Hastily they scrambled on to the fallen slabs, and
-looked down into the dark hole where the figure of Enooma had fallen.
-
-‘Yacka, Yacka!’ shouted Edgar.
-
-There was no answer, except a loud echo of his voice. Again Edgar
-shouted, and this time there was a faint response.
-
-‘He has fallen down,’ said Will. ‘How are we to reach him? He may be
-fatally injured.’
-
-They looked round for some means of descending in safety, and after
-peering down the hole for some time Edgar said:
-
-‘There is a light at the bottom, and now I can see better; the rocks
-seem to be piled up in heaps. We may be able to descend by slipping
-from one to the other. It is our only chance, and we must try it.’
-
-They prepared for their perilous descent; they had no rope, and nothing
-out of which a support of any kind could be made.
-
-Edgar knelt down, and Will caught hold of one hand as he glided over
-the edge.
-
-‘All right,’ said Edgar, ‘I have a foothold here.’
-
-Will followed, and the same operation was repeated, and Edgar again
-found a firm footing lower down. He stood still, and helped Will to
-follow him. It was slow work, but by degrees they neared the bottom.
-
-Edgar looked down from the ledge upon which he was standing, and saw
-Yacka lying near the foot of the rock.
-
-‘Are you badly hurt?’ he called out.
-
-‘Not much hurt,’ replied Yacka. ‘My leg pains, but is not broken.’
-
-‘It is a big drop from here,’ said Edgar, ‘but it does not look a
-dangerous place to fall on. I’ll chance it.’
-
-He let himself down to his full length, and then dropped.
-
-‘It is quite safe,’ he shouted to Will.
-
-Will followed, and they found they were on a bed of moss and ferns that
-had flourished in the darkness, and had been kept green by the dampness.
-
-Yacka was not much hurt. He had slipped, and fallen a considerable
-distance, and his descent had been checked by a projection in the rock.
-From this he had gradually descended, much in the same way as Will and
-Edgar.
-
-‘Where are we?’ said Edgar. ‘This cavern must have been in its present
-state a long time.’
-
-‘It has,’ said Yacka. ‘This is the place I was to show you. The White
-Spirit of Enooma guarded the entrance. The place where she rested
-formed the opening. She fell down here, and is gone; Enooma will be
-seen no more. When her treasure is gone there will be no need for her
-to guard it. Her task is ended, and she will watch no more.’
-
-‘If the figure fell on the moss and ferns it would not be much
-injured,’ said Edgar; ‘we will search for Enooma while you rest here.’
-
-‘It is not good for Yacka to remain; he will search with you,’ said the
-black.
-
-‘She must be near here,’ said Will. ‘See, there is the opening down
-which she fell.’
-
-They searched in every direction, but could find no trace of the
-figure. Edgar felt they were treading on some soft substance like sand,
-and, stooping down, felt it with his hands. It was like powder, quite
-white and fine.
-
-‘The figure must have crumbled away,’ said Edgar. ‘Look at this
-powder’; and he handed some to Will.
-
-Yacka looked at it curiously, and said:
-
-‘Enooma has gone; the White Spirit has left her cave, and has shown no
-sign.’
-
-‘This is a sign,’ said Edgar. ‘Your white lady has crumbled to dust.
-The figure must have been one of Nature’s freaks, and having become
-decayed and rotten with age, has been ground to powder by the fall.’
-
-‘I should like to know how the figure came where we found it,’ said
-Will.
-
-‘It was placed there by the Enooma years and years ago,’ said Yacka.
-‘It was a pure block of white stone then, and no figure on it. The
-White Spirit formed the figure, and Yacka is the son of Enooma.’
-
-‘Was Enooma, your mother, a white woman?’ said Edgar.
-
-‘I knew no mother,’ said Yacka. ‘She left me before I could speak. The
-tribe knew she was white, and her spirit lived in these caves. Now the
-spirit is gone, and the Enooma will seek a new country. It is good; we
-have lived here too long. We shall go north, and be near the sea; that
-will give strength to the Enooma, and make them strong big men.’
-
-‘How are we to get out of this place,’ said Will.
-
-‘Easy way out,’ said Yacka; ‘but hard way in.’
-
-Edgar thought this strange, but waited to see what Yacka meant.
-
-‘Come,’ said Yacka, limping along. ‘I will show you the riches of
-Enooma.’
-
-He led them along a dark passage into another cave, and here the light
-streamed in from a cleft in the rock. Gold glittered in heaps on the
-floor. There were nuggets of gold almost solid, and some as large as a
-goose egg. They were scattered about in reckless profusion. There were
-diamonds of small size, uncut, and great rubies of pigeon-blood colour.
-It was a cave of riches, and Edgar and Will feasted their eyes on it in
-amazement. They held the rubies in their hands, and gloated over their
-wondrous colour. They handled the gold and felt its weight, and were
-bewildered with the nature of the discovery.
-
-‘How did all this come here?’ said Edgar. ‘To whom does it belong?’
-
-‘It is mine,’ said Yacka. ‘I am the son of Enooma, and the tribe
-collected it. None of them know its value. They do not wish for gold
-or stones. All they wish for is to live a savage life, and to have a
-country of their own. They cannot be taught what such things as these
-mean. Yacka has been in great cities and knows. He has seen the white
-man kill for love of gold; he has seen the women of the white men sell
-themselves for these,’ and he held up some rubies and diamonds. ‘It is
-better for the Enooma to remain as they are. Gold would make them fight
-amongst themselves, now they fight their enemies.’
-
-‘You may be right,’ said Edgar. ‘All the same, I should like a few
-samples of your wealth, Yacka.’
-
-‘Take what you will,’ said Yacka. ‘It is far to carry it. Do not take
-too much, or you will not reach Yanda again. Water is more precious
-than gold sometimes.’
-
-‘May we return and take away more?’ asked Will.
-
-‘If you can find the place,’ said the black; ‘but Yacka will show you
-no more.’
-
-‘Then I am afraid we shall not have much chance,’ said Will. ‘It is a
-pity all this wealth should be wasted.’
-
-‘Others may find it, and take their share,’ said Yacka. ‘It is not good
-for one man to have too much.’
-
-‘We can carry enough away with us,’ said Edgar, ‘to give us a start in
-life, anyhow. Perhaps Yacka is right. It is not good for a man to have
-too much. Will you help us, Yacka?’
-
-‘To carry gold for you?’ said the black.
-
-‘Yes,’ said Edgar.
-
-‘I will carry some, and stones for you, but I will not use any,’ Yacka
-said.
-
-‘You’re a strange being,’ said Edgar; ‘but the black man lives not as
-the white man.’
-
-‘No,’ said Yacka; ‘he does not slay his friend for gold.’
-
-Edgar dropped the subject. Whatever the cruel, cowardly conduct of the
-blacks might be, he knew enough about the pursuit of wealth to refrain
-from arguing with Yacka.
-
-‘The tribe will be waiting for us,’ said Yacka. ‘We must return.’
-
-‘Perhaps the earthquake has frightened them away,’ said Will.
-
-‘They would not feel it so much as we did, being underground,’ said
-Edgar.
-
-‘It was no earthquake,’ said Yacka. ‘It was the White Spirit welcoming
-you.’
-
-‘A strange welcome,’ said Edgar.
-
-‘Had it been an earthquake you would have been killed,’ said Yacka.
-‘I have seen what an earthquake does. It swallows up mountains and
-trees, and heaves up other mountains in their place. All the plains of
-Australia were formed by earthquakes, and the mountains were thrown up
-to make that part smooth.’
-
-‘How long will it take us to return to the tribe?’ said Edgar.
-
-‘Not long,’ replied Yacka. ‘We will go now. We can return for the gold.’
-
-‘We had better take some now,’ said practical Will.
-
-Edgar was nothing loath, and they filled what pockets they had left in
-their torn clothes with gold, rubies, and diamonds.
-
-Yacka watched them and said:
-
-‘I will return for more. You need not come again.’
-
-‘You mean you do not wish us to return,’ said Edgar.
-
-‘That is it,’ said Yacka. ‘I will return alone.’
-
-To this they agreed, acknowledging that Yacka had the right to do as he
-pleased, as it was undoubtedly his find. They were not long in getting
-out of this strange labyrinth of caves and passages, and Edgar wondered
-why they had not come in this way. Before they reached the exit Yacka
-said they must be blindfolded. To this at first they protested, but as
-Yacka was firm, and they were in his power, they consented.
-
-Yacka led Will by the hand, Edgar holding Will’s other hand. They
-tramped in this way for a considerable time, and then Yacka removed the
-covering from their eyes.
-
-They were on the grassy plain once more, but the whole scene had been
-changed by the wondrous forces of Nature. Huge masses of rock were
-strewn about, and trees were felled and torn up by the roots. Where
-they had entered the mountains there was no other means of passing
-through. The blacks had retreated before the terrible storm, and were
-encamped a long way off. They could just see the camp fires in the
-distance. Several dead blacks lay around, evidently killed by falling
-rocks, but Yacka took very little notice of them. Death ended all for
-these men, and, being dead, Yacka thought no more of them.
-
-When Edgar looked round to see where they had come out of the caves,
-there was no opening anywhere. Yacka smiled as he said:
-
-‘You will never find the entrance. It is known only to me, and once I
-lost it and never found it again.’
-
-‘Then that is the reason we went in the other way,’ said Edgar.
-
-‘Yes,’ said Yacka. ‘Now I have the way out, I can find the way in
-again.’
-
-They marched towards the camp, and the Enooma rushed to meet them,
-uttering loud cries of delight. They had never expected to see them
-return alive after such a terrific earthquake. These blacks were
-strange people. Terrified as they had recently been, they had in a
-very few hours forgotten their experiences. The sudden changes in
-this climate had made them familiar with the working of the forces of
-Nature, which are truly marvellous.
-
-In the stillness of the night, as Edgar and Will sat side by side, they
-returned thanks for their merciful escape. It was an experience they
-would never forget, and now that it was over both felt untold gold
-would not tempt them to brave it again.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XX. THE RETURN TO YANDA.
-
-
-Before they were awake next morning Yacka, true to his promise, went to
-the cave and returned with some of the finest rubies and purest lumps
-of gold. He roused Edgar and Will, and showed them what he had done.
-
-‘It is as much as we can carry,’ he said, and they agreed with him.
-
-The gold was heavy, and they had a long tramp before them.
-
-Without further delay they collected their treasure, and made it secure
-in a strong skin loin-cloth, which was fastened by dried strips of
-leather, so that none of the stones could fall out.
-
-‘This is like putting all our eggs in one basket,’ said Edgar. ‘I think
-we had better carry the best of the rubies about us.’
-
-This was done, and the bag again fastened securely.
-
-The Enooma accompanied them, and left them about a couple of days’
-journey from the ranges.
-
-At this point Edgar and Will bade them farewell, and Yacka promised to
-return and travel with them further north. The black had explained to
-them all that had taken place in the caves, and they did not care to
-remain longer in that district.
-
-Yacka led them safely through the MacDonnell Ranges, and they reached
-Alice Springs, where they had a hearty welcome.
-
-‘We never expected to see you alive again,’ said Walter Hepburn. ‘You
-have been away close upon six months, and we thought you were gone for
-good. I hope you are satisfied with your experiences.’
-
-‘We are,’ said Edgar. ‘We have seen many strange and wonderful sights.’
-
-‘You must tell me about your adventures to-night,’ said Hepburn. ‘I
-have kept your horses safe, and they will be ready for the journey.’
-
-It was a relief to Edgar and Will to obtain fresh clothes, for those
-they wore were almost in rags.
-
-The night of their arrival they related to Walter Hepburn all that had
-befallen them, and he was amazed. He could hardly credit the account
-Edgar gave of the wealth found in the cave of Enooma; but when he saw
-the precious stones and gold spread out before him, he was completely
-overwhelmed.
-
-‘This is pure gold,’ he said, as he handled a large lump of the
-precious metal. ‘And these rubies are exceedingly rich in colour, and
-worth a heap of money. We have found rubies in the creeks here, but
-nothing to be compared to these. Of course, you will return with a
-properly equipped expedition, and carry the bulk of it away?’
-
-‘I am afraid that will be out of the question,’ said Edgar. ‘Yacka will
-not guide us there again, and I am sure we could not find the place.’
-
-‘Yacka must be forced to act as guide,’ said Hepburn. ‘Such a treasure
-as you have discovered cannot be allowed to remain buried.’
-
-‘I shall not be the one to use force against Yacka,’ said Edgar. ‘The
-black has acted honestly by us, and we must do the same by him.’
-
-‘If you fellows do not have another try to find the place I shall,’
-said Hepburn.
-
-Edgar laughed as he said:
-
-‘You are welcome to do so. For my part I have had enough of it, and am
-glad to have got back again with a whole skin.’
-
-‘You must be careful not to let anyone know about here what you have
-with you. There are some desperate characters, and a mere hint as to
-the wealth you have, and your lives would not be safe,’ said Hepburn.
-
-‘We have told no one but yourself,’ said Edgar; ‘and we know we can
-trust you. You are an old Redbank boy.’
-
-After some persuasion Walter Hepburn agreed to accept a couple of fine
-rubies and a heavy nugget in return for the keep of the horses, and as
-a remembrance of their visit. As well as he was able Edgar described
-the country they had traversed and the appearance of the place where
-the caves were.
-
-‘Even if you reach there safely,’ said Edgar, ‘you will not be able to
-find the entrance. We could see nothing of it, and even Yacka lost the
-run of it once.’
-
-‘It is worth the risk,’ said Hepburn. ‘I wish I had gone with you. I am
-used to these wilds, and once I had been over the ground I am sure I
-could find my way back.’
-
-They did not remain long at Alice Springs, as they were eager to return
-to Yanda and learn how their friends had got on during their absence.
-
-The return journey passed in much the same way as their ride to Alice
-Springs from Yanda.
-
-They had a plentiful supply of ammunition, which Walter Hepburn had
-given them, and consequently were not afraid to shoot when in need of
-provisions.
-
-Edgar noticed Yacka was restless, and did not seem at his ease during
-their journey, and he questioned him as to the reason.
-
-‘I have a fear we are being followed,’ said Yacka. ‘I have seen no one,
-but still I fear it. Did anyone know you had gold and stones at Alice
-Springs?’
-
-‘Only Walter Hepburn,’ said Edgar. ‘We were careful not to tell anyone
-else.’
-
-‘You showed him the stones?’ asked Yacka.
-
-‘Yes,’ said Edgar; ‘we spread them out on the table in his house, but
-no one else was there.’
-
-‘But there are windows,’ said Yacka, ‘and someone may have looked in.
-It was foolish.’
-
-‘I think you are wrong about anyone following us,’ said Will. ‘They
-would have attacked us before now.’
-
-Yacka explained that he had not slept at night since they left the
-Springs. He had watched and waited and heard strange sounds. He felt
-sure they were being followed, but at some distance.
-
-‘You must have a sleep to-night, anyhow,’ said Edgar, ‘or you will
-knock up. We can keep watch in turns.’
-
-Yacka assented, for he felt much in need of sleep.
-
-They camped on a level patch of ground, where there was not much
-surrounding shelter, and where they felt secure against any surprise.
-
-Worn out from want of sleep, Yacka stretched himself on the ground, and
-quickly fell into a deep slumber.
-
-‘He’s dead tired,’ said Edgar. ‘I have never seen him drop off into
-such a sound sleep. He generally has an eye open, and his ears catch
-every sound.’
-
-‘Are you going to take first watch?’ said Will.
-
-‘If you like,’ said Edgar. ‘I will rouse you when I become drowsy.’
-
-Will soon followed Yacka into the land of dreams, and Edgar, leaning
-his back against the trunk of a tree, watched them. The treasure was
-close to him, and the sight of it brought back to him the scenes
-they had witnessed. From these experiences his thoughts wandered to
-Wal Jessop and Eva, and he wondered how they had gone on during his
-absence. He was anxious to see them again, and when he reached Yanda
-meant to take a trip to Sydney as early as possible.
-
-Then he thought of home, and his father and sister, and hoped to have
-letters from them at Yanda. They would be anxious to hear how his
-exploit had turned out, and what a glowing account he would give them!
-Lost in these pleasant reflections, he did not hear the stealthy tread
-of two men behind the tree.
-
-These men kept well in the shadow of the trunk of the tree against
-which Edgar sat, all unconscious of their approach. They were
-desperate-looking fellows, dressed in bush fashion, and had evidently
-ridden after Edgar and his companions from Alice Springs. Cautiously
-they approached, avoiding the loose twigs on the ground, and halting
-to listen intently at every few yards. Each man had a revolver in his
-hand, and a knife in his belt.
-
-The taller of the two motioned to the knife at his side, and pointed
-to Edgar. The other nodded, and drew out his formidable blade. He then
-crept, knife in hand, towards Edgar, and his companion made towards
-Will.
-
-Edgar, who began to feel drowsy, rose to his feet and leaned on his
-shoulder against the tree, his back still to the man stealing up, knife
-in hand. Edgar little knew the peril he was in, and dreaded nothing.
-
-Nearer and nearer drew the man with his murderous weapon. He was now
-close to the tree, and had his knife uplifted ready to strike.
-
-Suddenly a laughing jackass, perched in the branches above Edgar’s
-head, gave his mocking laugh. The sound startled him, and he turned
-round; as he did so he saw the man, and the knife he had in his
-uplifted hand flashed in the faint moonlight.
-
-He shouted, ‘Yacka! Yacka! Will! Will!’ and sprang backwards.
-
-The man rushed upon him just as Will opened his eyes in a half-drowsy
-way, and dimly realized that a man was pointing his revolver at him.
-
-‘Move, and I fire!’ said the man to Yacka, as he saw the black spring
-to his feet.
-
-Yacka dared not move; he knew it would be instant death to Will.
-
-Meanwhile Edgar grappled with his assailant, and a desperate struggle
-was going on.
-
-The man covering Will called out to his mate and Edgar:
-
-‘Drop struggling, or I fire!’
-
-Edgar glanced at him, and saw the danger Will was in.
-
-‘Hands off!’ he said, and the man ceased to struggle with him.
-
-Unfortunately, neither Edgar or Will had their revolvers handy, and
-their guns were against the trunk of the tree--the revolvers being
-luckily hidden from sight in the long rank grass.
-
-‘We want that bag,’ said the tall man, still covering Will. ‘Let my
-mate get the bag and your guns, and then you can go.’
-
-In a moment it flashed across Edgar that if the men took the bag and
-the guns there would still be the revolvers, and that gave them a
-chance before the thieves reached their horses. He was not, however,
-too eager, and said:
-
-‘You are a cowardly pair to rob us like this.’
-
-‘You are three to one,’ said the man with a grin. ‘Nothing very
-cowardly about that. Will you “ante up” the “boodle”?’
-
-‘How do we know you will not fire on us? We shall be unarmed,’ said
-Edgar.
-
-‘We want the plunder, not your lives,’ said the man. ‘Come, be quick.
-We have no time to waste.’
-
-The man was evidently impatient, and Edgar thought: ‘Perhaps they are
-afraid of someone following them from the Springs.’ Aloud he said:
-
-‘We agree. Take the bag and our guns and go.’
-
-The man who had attacked Edgar picked up the bag and the two guns. It
-was an anxious moment for Edgar. The revolvers were lying near the
-tree, and the man might kick them as he went along. With a sigh of
-relief, Edgar saw the man had not discovered them. Yacka was on the
-alert, but saw no chance of making a move without injuring Will, and
-Edgar was in the same fix. The tall man ‘bailed’ them up until his
-companion returned with their horses.
-
-Having fixed the bag firmly in front of the saddle the man mounted,
-placing the guns also in front of him. He then led the other horse up
-to the man covering Will, and levelled his revolver at him while his
-mate mounted.
-
-Yacka stood at the other side of the horses, and for a brief moment the
-man covering Will could not see him, and the taller man was mounting
-with his back to Yacka. In an instant Yacka bounded between the man
-with the revolver and Will, and jerked the horse’s bridle, which caused
-the animal to suddenly back. The man fired, but the movement of the
-horse spoilt his aim and the shot did no harm.
-
-Seeing how matters stood, Edgar ran for the revolvers, and reached them
-before the thieves could realize what had happened.
-
-A desperate fight now took place. The mounted men, whose horses plunged
-at the sound of firing, aimed at Will and Edgar, and the former felt a
-sharp pain in his left arm.
-
-Yacka still hung on to the horse’s bridle, and the man on it fired
-point-blank at him, the bullet grazing his head.
-
-Edgar approached this man, and when close to him fired. The shot told,
-and the man’s right arm fell to his side, his revolver dropping on to
-the ground.
-
-‘Winged!’ shouted Edgar. ‘Hold on, Yacka!’
-
-But Yacka had let go of the horse and pulled the man out of the saddle.
-The horse, finding itself free, galloped off, with the bag still fast
-to the front of the saddle.
-
-The other man, seeing how matters were going, and knowing the loose
-horse had the bag still fast to the saddle, turned tail and galloped
-after it.
-
-‘The horses--the horses! Quick, Will!’ said Edgar. ‘We must be after
-them.’
-
-Will brought up the horses, and they were quickly in the saddle.
-
-‘You keep guard over this fellow, Yacka,’ said Edgar. ‘Don’t let him
-go.’
-
-For answer Yacka smiled savagely, and gripped the man by the throat so
-hard that his eyes started from his head.
-
-‘He’s in safe hands,’ said Edgar. ‘Come along, Will, or we shall lose
-our treasure after all.’
-
-They rode away after the other man and the runaway horse as fast as
-their nags could carry them.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXI. AN EXCITING CHASE.
-
-
-It proved an exciting chase they had commenced. The thief knew he
-need expect no mercy if caught, and rode desperately. He knew the
-country better than Edgar and Will, which gave him a decided advantage;
-moreover, he had a good horse, probably stolen, and knew how to ride.
-
-‘He is gaining on us,’ said Edgar. ‘I am afraid we shall lose him.
-There is no chance of hitting either man or horse from this distance.’
-
-Mile after mile was traversed, and still the chase went on. The
-riderless horse stuck close to his companion, but when he began to flag
-the man took hold of the bridle and urged him on. Edgar took no heed
-where they were going, nor did Will. They were too excited to take much
-notice of the country they passed through. At last the fugitive turned
-his horse to the left, and plunged into a much more difficult country
-to travel. The undergrowth became denser and tangled, and it was with
-difficulty the horses could be forced to go through it. It was not long
-before they lost sight of the man they were in pursuit of.
-
-‘Where can he have got to?’ said Will. ‘He would never hide here with
-two of us after him.’
-
-‘We must ride on,’ replied Edgar. ‘It is easy to miss a man and come
-across his track again in a very short time.’
-
-They rode on at a slow pace, and presently came to a narrow opening
-in the scrub. Here they halted and found recent tracks of horses, so
-they determined to follow in this direction. The tracks led them in a
-roundabout way, and presently they came to the conclusion the man had
-doubled back.
-
-‘He must be heading for our camp again,’ said Edgar. ‘Strange he should
-do this unless he fancies we are put off the scent, and he is riding
-back to rescue his mate.’
-
-‘If that is his game,’ said Will, ‘we must follow him hard. He might
-shoot Yacka before we arrive.’
-
-It was, however, difficult for them to find their way. They were not
-experienced bushmen, and had failed to notice certain signs by which
-they would know they were on the right track. They saw no signs of
-the man, nor could they now observe in which direction the horses had
-gone. To ride on and trust to chance was their only hope. It was quite
-light now, and this aided them. As time passed they became anxious,
-and wondered what would become of Yacka if they did not arrive on the
-scene in time, for they had not the least doubt now that their man was
-heading for the camp to rescue his mate.
-
-‘This chase he has led us has been a blind,’ said Edgar. ‘If we had
-taken ordinary precautions we ought to have found out he was doubling
-back.’
-
-‘Only a bushman would have found that out,’ said Will. ‘I do not see
-how we can blame ourselves.’
-
-‘We have had enough experience the last few months to have found that
-out,’ said Edgar. ‘By Jove! there he is, I believe.’
-
-There was a horseman in front of them, but they could not see the
-second horse. They rode on faster now, but did not gain much ground. A
-rise in the land hid the man from view, and soon after he disappeared
-they heard a shot. This made them ride all the faster, and they
-quickly reached the top of the rise, and had a good view of the plain
-beyond.
-
-‘He fired that shot to warn his mate,’ said Will. ‘We cannot be far
-from the camp now.’
-
-‘I’ll fire,’ said Edgar; ‘and if Yacka hears the two shots he will
-probably divine we are in pursuit.’
-
-He fired a shot from his revolver as they rode on.
-
-‘There’s the place we camped at,’ said Edgar, pointing to two or three
-tall trees: ‘but I see nothing of Yacka or the other men.’
-
-They rode up to the place, and found the camp deserted. There was blood
-upon the ground and signs of a struggle, but they imagined this must
-have been caused by Yacka dragging the wounded man along. Edgar called
-out ‘Yacka!’ and gave a loud ‘cooee,’ and after waiting a few moments
-they heard a faint response. They rode in the direction of the sound,
-and, rounding a clump of trees on a mound, came upon a strange sight.
-
-Stretched on the ground was one of the robbers, the man they supposed
-they had left with Yacka. This man had been strangled, and was dead.
-Near him sat Yacka with a strange expression on his face. When the
-black saw them he gave a faint moan, and pressed his hand to his side.
-
-‘Good God! he’s shot!’ said Edgar, dismounting and running to the
-black. He found blood streaming from a deep wound in his side evidently
-inflicted with a knife. ‘How did this happen?’ asked Edgar, as he
-endeavoured to stanch the flow of blood with a neckerchief he had
-rapidly pulled off.
-
-Yacka pointed to the dead man, and Will, who had come up, exclaimed:
-
-‘This is not the fellow we left with Yacka. It is the man we have been
-chasing all this time.’
-
-‘Where is the other man?’ asked Edgar, who could hardly believe his
-eyes.
-
-‘I killed him,’ said Yacka faintly.
-
-‘Where is he?’ asked Will.
-
-Yacka pointed to some bushes, and Will went across and found the body
-of the man they had left with Yacka. This man had also been strangled.
-
-They managed to stop the flow of blood from the deep wound in Yacka’s
-side, but it was some hours before he had sufficiently recovered
-strength to relate what had happened.
-
-When Yacka heard the shot fired, he at once thought the man’s mate had
-doubled back to rescue him, and had given Edgar and Will the slip. He
-knew how easily it could be done by an old hand, and his surmise was
-confirmed by the expression on the man’s face when he heard the shot.
-In a moment Yacka had made up his mind how to act. He had no gun, for
-he found that all three had been taken, instead of only those belonging
-to Edgar and Will. He seized his prisoner by the throat, and strangled
-him. Then he propped the dead man up with his back to a tree, and tied
-him to it with one of the tethering ropes. He hid himself behind the
-tree and waited, and in a short time the other robber came on to the
-scene. When this man saw his mate bound to the tree, he dismounted and
-came towards him, evidently thinking Yacka had made him fast, that he
-had fallen asleep, and Yacka had gone away.
-
-Yacka awaited his coming, crouching down behind the tree. No sooner did
-the man see his mate was dead than he realized that a trap had been set
-for him, and ran back to the horses. Yacka was quickly after him, and
-before the man could reach the horses had caught him up. Finding Yacka
-at such close quarters, the man drew his knife instead of his revolver,
-no doubt thinking it would be more effective. A desperate struggle
-ensued, which Yacka described graphically.
-
-‘We rolled over and over,’ said Yacka. ‘I had no knife, and he was a
-powerful man. I caught him by the throat, and he lost the grip of his
-knife. I clung to him with both hands, and he managed to get his knife
-and stuck it in my side. I did not let go my hold. I became fainter and
-fainter, but clung to his throat. Then I fell across him, and when I
-came to my senses again, which could not have been long, he was dead.
-It was their lives or mine, and they were not fit to live.’
-
-As they listened to Yacka’s story of this terrible struggle and awful
-end of the thieves, they wondered if many men would have had the
-courage to act as he had done.
-
-‘The horses will not have gone far,’ said Yacka. ‘They were dead
-tired, I could see, when the man dismounted.’
-
-While Will attended to Yacka, Edgar went in search of the two stray
-horses, and found them about a couple of miles away, quietly cropping
-the scanty herbage. He secured them without trouble, and was glad to
-see their precious treasure was safe, and also their guns.
-
-They had to remain in this spot for a week before Yacka was fit to be
-removed, and during that time they buried the bodies of the robbers as
-well as they were able with the primitive means at hand.
-
-Their progress was slow, because Yacka could not ride far, and had to
-be helped off one of the horses at different times to rest. It was
-lucky for them they had the two captured horses in addition to their
-own. Yacka guided them, and seemed to take a delight in hiding from
-them how far they were from Yanda.
-
-‘Surely we must be somewhere near Yanda by this time,’ said Edgar. ‘I
-almost fancy I can recognise the country.’
-
-‘You ought to,’ said Yacka, ‘for we are on Yanda Station now, and we
-shall reach the homestead to-night.’
-
-They could not suppress their feelings, and gave a loud hurrah.
-
-Yacka had spoken correctly, for towards sundown the familiar homestead
-came in sight.
-
-Yacka wished them to gallop on and leave him, but this they declined to
-do, saying he had done so much for them, it was only making a small
-return to remain with him.
-
-As they neared the homestead they noticed several figures moving about,
-evidently in an excited way, on the veranda.
-
-‘There’s Ben Brody!’ said Edgar eagerly. ‘He has recognised us. What a
-time we shall have to-night!’
-
-Ben Brody was standing leaning against the door-post when he saw
-something moving across the plain in front of him. He went inside for
-his glasses, and, after looking through them for several minutes, he
-gave a loud shout.
-
-It was such an unusual thing for Ben Brody to shout, except when
-issuing orders, or expressing his feelings to some unfortunate
-new-chum, that the hands about the place fancied the homestead must
-have caught fire. Several of them rushed round to the front, and found
-Ben Brody executing a kind of war-dance on the veranda.
-
-‘What’s up now?’ asked Will Henton. ‘Something stinging you?’
-
-‘No, you fool,’ roared Brody. ‘Do you think I’m as tender as you? It’s
-them lads coming back!’
-
-‘Not Foster and Brown?’ asked Will.
-
-‘That’s just it, you bet,’ said Brody.
-
-Off ran Will Henton, and in a few moments Harry Noke, Jim Lee, and two
-or three more came round.
-
-‘Give me the glasses,’ said Noke.
-
-‘No need for that,’ said Jim Lee. ‘I can spot ’em from here.’
-
-‘We must go and meet them,’ said Will Henton.
-
-‘Right you are,’ said Brody. ‘Boys, we’ll have a terrible night of it.’
-
-They mounted their horses, and in less time than it takes to write it
-down were galloping towards the home-comers.
-
-The scene was one to be remembered. They sprang from their horses,
-and pulled Edgar and Will out of their saddles, and shook them by the
-hands, cheered and hallooed until the plain rang with their hearty
-shouts. Yacka stood quietly looking on, and when they had almost wrung
-Edgar’s and Will’s hands off they tackled him.
-
-‘Don’t handle Yacka as roughly as you have handled us,’ laughed Edgar;
-‘he’s got a bad wound.’
-
-Then came a string of questions as to how Yacka received his wound, and
-who had given it him. Such a rain of questions was showered at them
-that at last Ben Brody said:
-
-‘Give them breathing-time, lads. We shall hear all about their
-adventures later on. We’re right glad to see you back again safe and
-sound.’
-
-A general chorus of assent followed this remark.
-
-‘Expect you have not come back loaded with wealth?’ said Will Henton.
-
-‘Wait and see,’ said Edgar. ‘I rather fancy we have a surprise in store
-for you.’
-
-‘Have you had a good time?’ said Ben Brody.
-
-‘It has been a wonderful time, and we have seen many strange things,
-and gone through a good deal of hard work. I’m heartily glad to see
-Yanda again, but I would not have missed our experiences for the world.’
-
-‘Same here,’ said Will Brown, ‘but I never wish to go through such a
-time again.’
-
-Yacka rode quietly behind, a lonely black figure, the pain in his face
-showing how he still suffered. He was glad to see this hearty welcome,
-but it made him feel lonely. He had no friends such as these men at
-Yanda were. He was a wanderer, an outcast, a black, a despised native
-of the country these white men had taken from his people. But Yacka
-was, through all this, white enough at heart to know it was all for
-the best. His people could never become like these people, and the
-country in the hands of blacks, he knew, would still have been wild and
-desolate.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXII. TIME FLIES.
-
-
-The hands at Yanda marvelled greatly at the tale Edgar told of their
-adventures, and they marvelled still more when the treasure they
-brought with them was shown.
-
-‘And to think that black fellow knew all about it, and kept the secret
-so long,’ said Ben Brody. ‘I can hardly believe it is true. You must
-have travelled thousands of miles. All I can say is you deserve what
-you have got.’
-
-After staying a few weeks at Yanda, where he received letters from
-home, and from Wal Jessop, Edgar decided to go to Sydney and see Eva
-again. Will Brown remained at Yanda, in order to gain more experience
-of station life.
-
-When Edgar arrived in Sydney, he at once went to Watson’s Bay. Wal
-Jessop did not know Edgar had left Yanda. Eva had constantly inquired
-for Edgar during his absence, and been comforted by the assurance he
-would return to her.
-
-Edgar walked up the steep path to the cottage, intending to give
-the inmates a surprise, but Eva, who was looking out of the window,
-recognised him, and gave a joyful cry that brought Mrs. Jessop to her.
-Together they rushed out to greet Edgar, and he soon had little Eva
-crowing delightedly in his arms, Mrs. Jessop looking on, her motherly
-face beaming with satisfaction.
-
-‘How you have grown, Eva!’ said Edgar, holding her up in his arms to
-have a better look at her. ‘You have had a good home, and Mrs. Jessop
-has taken great care of you.’
-
-Eva began to prattle in her pretty childish way, and asked Edgar
-numerous questions, some of which he found a difficulty in answering.
-
-When Wal Jessop returned home and found Edgar installed in the cottage
-he was delighted. He had been longing to see him again, and to hear
-all about his adventures. These Edgar had to relate over and over
-again, and little Eva, too, was interested in hearing about Yacka and
-the blacks, and the White Spirit in the wonderful cave. When she saw
-the precious stones and gold Edgar brought with him, she clapped her
-hands with joy, and wanted to play with all the pretty things.
-
-‘You’ll not be short of money for a time with such rubies as these to
-sell,’ said Wal Jessop, as he took some of the stones in his hand.
-‘They are the finest I ever saw. You’ll get more for them in London
-than you will here.’
-
-‘I shall keep the bulk of them,’ said Edgar; ‘but we must dispose of
-some of them, Wal, in order to keep things going.’
-
-‘Captain Fife will be able to do that for you,’ said Wal. ‘He knows the
-best market for such things. What a wonderful chap that black must be!
-There are not many like him here.’
-
-‘You will see him before long,’ said Edgar. ‘He has promised to come to
-Sydney when his wound has quite healed.’
-
-‘A knife-thrust like that will take some time to get well,’ said Wal.
-‘I wonder if he will ever take you back again to find more of the
-treasure?’
-
-‘I shall not go,’ said Edgar; ‘but I have no doubt there will be search
-made for it, even if Yacka declines to lead the way.’
-
-The evening of Edgar’s arrival at the cottage he had a walk on the
-cliffs with Wal Jessop, and again looked down upon the terrible rocks
-where the _Distant Shore_ was dashed to pieces, and himself and Eva
-were so miraculously saved. As he looked into the depths below, the
-scene came vividly to mind again, and he could not resist grasping Wal
-Jessop by the hand, while the tears stood in his eyes.
-
-Wal Jessop knew what he meant better than if he had spoken, and
-returned the pressure of his hand. They walked back to the cottage, and
-once more talked over the scenes of that awful night.
-
-When Edgar saw Captain Fife that gentleman received him cordially, and
-promised to dispose of some of the rubies to the best advantage.
-
-‘They are wonderfully good stones,’ said Captain Fife, ‘and there will
-be no difficulty in obtaining a stiff price for them. By the way,
-what are you going to do with yourself now? Are you returning to the
-station, or would you prefer to remain in Sydney?’
-
-‘If I can obtain a suitable billet,’ said Edgar, ‘I should like to
-remain here.’
-
-Captain Fife had been on the look-out for a private secretary for some
-time, and he offered Edgar the post, which he willingly accepted,
-thinking himself fortunate, as indeed he was, to gain such a position.
-
-Time flies quickly, and when Edgar Foster had been private secretary to
-Captain Fife for over two years, he had become quite at home in Sydney,
-and was recognised as one of the best of good fellows. Edgar was fond
-of sports of all kinds, and he liked fun as well as any young fellow
-of his age, but he shunned the fast sets in the city, and one of his
-constant companions was Wal Jessop. Two or three times a week he went
-to Wal’s cottage to see Eva, who was rapidly growing into a very pretty
-girl. He heard regularly from home, and also had news from Yanda--for
-Will Brown was still there. Yacka had tried Sydney life, but quickly
-tired of it, and returned to the West.
-
-Two or three expeditions had been fitted out to try and find the Cave
-of Enooma, as it was called, for the adventures of Edgar Foster and
-Will Brown had been related in the _Sydney Mail_, and naturally there
-was a desire to obtain the wealth stated to be there. These expeditions
-had, however, been failures, and nothing came of them. Yacka refused
-to lead anyone into the Enooma country, and Edgar and Will, when
-approached upon the subject, expressed their inability to do so. When
-the second expedition failed in its object, people said the discovery
-was a myth, but others knew better, and Edgar only smiled when he heard
-disparaging remarks made.
-
-Although Edgar stuck well to his work during the time he had been with
-Captain Fife, he found ample opportunity to indulge in his favourite
-pastime, cricket, and, much to his delight, had been selected captain
-of the South Sydney team. In this capacity he not only proved himself
-a good all-round cricketer, but a splendid leader, and no one, it was
-generally acknowledged, placed his men to more advantage in the field.
-He was selected to play for New South Wales against Victoria, but, like
-many a good cricketer before him, he failed at his first attempt. There
-was, however, no doubt about his ability, and he now stood an excellent
-chance of being selected as one of the next Australian eleven. This is
-the height of every cricketer’s ambition in the colonies, and Edgar
-felt anxious as to whether his performances during the season would
-warrant the selection committee including him in the team. So far he
-had done fairly well. There remained one inter-Colonial match to play
-against South Australia, and Edgar knew upon this match would depend
-the final decision as to his being a member of the Australian eleven.
-
-He had practised steadily, and felt confident, and was encouraged
-by Wal Jessop and Captain Fife. Will Brown wrote from Yanda, saying
-they were coming down in force to see him play, and Ben Brody added
-a postscript to the effect that the honour of the Yanda boys was in
-Edgar’s hands.
-
-When the eventful day arrived Edgar’s feelings can be imagined. The
-match took place on the Association ground at Sydney, and the South
-Australians placed a formidable team on the field. Several men on
-either side were on their best mettle and playing for a place in the
-Australian eleven.
-
-Ben Brody appeared on the ground resplendent in a new cabbage-tree
-hat, which he had bought in honour of the occasion. He was as anxious
-as anyone to see Edgar successful. Will Brown vowed if Edgar Foster
-went home with the team, he should go by the same boat. Will Henton,
-Harry Noke, and Jim Lee all came up from Yanda for the match, and
-consequently there was a family party on the ground. In Wal Jessop Ben
-Brody found a man after his own heart, and they got on well together.
-
-Edgar felt encouraged by their presence to do his best, and something
-seemed to tell him he would succeed.
-
-The New South Wales captain won the toss and elected to bat. This gave
-Edgar a chance to sit and chat with his friends. He hardly knew how
-popular he had become in Sydney, owing to his numerous adventures and
-his sterling character, until he saw the number of people who were only
-too proud to recognise him.
-
-‘You must be a favourite with the ladies,’ said Ben Brody. ‘All the
-pretty girls are smiling at you. Lucky dog!’
-
-It was true Edgar knew several nice girls, but he had not yet found one
-he preferred to any of the others. He thought there was time enough for
-that in another five or six years.
-
-The home team commenced badly, and lost two wickets for thirty runs. At
-the fall of the fourth wicket Edgar Foster went in, and his appearance
-on the ground, from the pavilion, was the signal for a loud outburst
-of applause. As he walked to the crease Edgar vowed he would do his
-utmost to merit this reception. He was cool and collected, and had
-seldom felt so confident. He commenced well by making a couple of
-boundary hits in his first over. His partner, Frank Highdale, was well
-set, and the pair looked like making a big stand.
-
-Edgar roused the spectators by hitting a ball into the pavilion, and
-Highdale had completely mastered the bowling. Runs came rapidly, and
-the South Australian captain seemed puzzled to know how to effect a
-separation.
-
-Although Highdale had been batting some time before Edgar came in, the
-latter was first to reach the coveted fifty. When this number of runs
-appeared to Edgar’s name on the scoring-board, Ben Brody, to use his
-own expression, ‘broke loose.’ He cheered in the most frantic manner,
-and waved his huge hat in delight.
-
-The New South Wales eleven were at the wickets all day, and when stumps
-were drawn Edgar Foster was ‘not out, one hundred and nine’! He was
-congratulated on all sides, and Captain Fife said, as he shook hands
-with him:
-
-‘Your place in the team is assured. I shall cable to your father as
-soon as the selection is made. He will be mighty proud of his son.’
-
-On the renewal of the match next day, Edgar added another fifty to his
-score, and was clean bowled, after making one hundred and fifty-nine, a
-magnificent innings.
-
-The match ended in a win for the home colony by two hundred runs. In
-the second innings Edgar Foster placed fifty-six to his credit; he also
-bowled well during the match, and came out with a very good average.
-
-Consequently, it was no surprise when he found his name amongst the
-favoured thirteen cricketers picked to make up the Australian team. He
-received a cablegram from his father congratulating him, and this gave
-him more pleasure than anything else.
-
-As usual, there was some grumbling about the composition of the team,
-but no one had anything to say about Edgar Foster’s inclusion.
-
-‘We are to go home in the _Cuzco_,’ said Edgar to Will Brown; ‘so you
-had better book your passage.’
-
-‘You bet!’ said Will; ‘and who do you think is going home for a trip
-with us?’
-
-‘Don’t know,’ said Edgar. ‘I wish we could take Yacka. He would create
-a sensation there.’
-
-‘Yacka is far happier camping out at Yanda,’ said Will. ‘Ben Brody is
-going home with us. He says he has never had a holiday since he was a
-lad, over forty years ago, and he thinks it is about time he took one
-now.’
-
-‘I am glad,’ said Edgar. ‘Ben Brody is a real good sort; he’s a rough
-diamond, but I like him better than if he were polished.’
-
-The hands on Yanda were in high glee about Ben leaving them for a
-time. They fancied the mutton diet would be knocked off, but Ben said
-he should leave strict injunctions behind about that.
-
-The time passed quickly, and the morning the _Cuzco_ was to leave
-Circular Quay a large crowd of people assembled to see the New
-South Wales members of the team leave for London. There was so much
-hand-shaking, and so many parting good-byes, that Edgar felt sure some
-of them would be left behind.
-
-Wal Jessop and his wife brought Eva down to see Edgar off, and the
-child did not like to see him leave her in the big steamer.
-
-‘I will come back for you, Eva,’ said Edgar; ‘I promise you I will come
-back. Be a good girl while I am away, and I will bring you back the
-best doll I can find in London.’
-
-‘With brown hair, and blue eyes?’ said Eva.
-
-‘Yes,’ said Edgar. ‘It shall have bonny blue eyes, and bright brown
-hair like yours, Eva.’
-
-He took her in his arms, and kissed her over and over again, and then
-handed her to Mrs. Jessop. Just as the gangway was about to be raised
-they saw a tall figure flying up it with long strides. It was Ben Brody.
-
-‘You nearly missed us,’ said Edgar, laughing. ‘Where have you been? I
-thought I saw you on board some time back.’
-
-‘So I was,’ said Ben, gasping for breath; ‘but I left my ‘bacca behind
-in a box at the hotel, and I’d sooner have gone back to Yanda than
-been on board without my usual brand.’
-
-The _Cuzco_ had now cast off, and as she left the wharf Edgar singled
-out Eva, hoisted high on Wal Jessop’s shoulder, and waved her a hearty
-farewell.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIII. AN EVENTFUL NIGHT.
-
-
-An Australian team bound for England always has a good time on board
-the steamer, and the eleven of which Edgar was a member was no
-exception to the rule. At Melbourne and Adelaide they were joined by
-the members of the team hailing from Victoria and South Australia.
-
-On arriving at Colombo they went ashore to play a match against a team
-selected from the leading local cricketers. Being out of practice
-they did not play up to their usual form, and the Colombo team nearly
-defeated them, and were much elated in consequence.
-
-At this time the mail steamers did not pass through the Suez Canal at
-night-time, and the _Cuzco_ anchored off Ismailia. A run ashore to pass
-away the time was only natural, and Edgar, accompanied by Will Brown
-and other members of the team, made up a party. This night ashore at
-Ismailia was destined to effect a change in Edgar’s future life.
-
-The population of Ismailia is a mixture of different nationalities,
-some of them being of a rather desperate and fierce nature. An Egyptian
-wedding-party passed through one of the streets; it was a curious sight
-to unaccustomed eyes. The men, swathed in long white garments, with
-turbans on their heads, and sandals on their feet, carried long poles,
-at the ends of which lanterns were fixed. Their brown arms and faces
-shone in the reflected light, and offered a strong contrast to the
-colour of their garments. Fierce eyes gleamed from under dark, bushy
-eyebrows, and as the men marched, uttering a wild chant in peculiar
-tones, the effect was somewhat weird. The bridegroom, who was being
-escorted to his bride, was a tall, powerful young fellow, of a better
-caste than his friends.
-
-All went well until the procession approached the bride’s house, when
-a party of young fellows from the _Cuzco_, who had been revelling not
-wisely but too well, barred the road. It was a foolhardy thing to do.
-To stop such a procession was exceedingly dangerous, and could only be
-construed as an insult by the natives, who are not slow to avenge any
-slight put upon them.
-
-Edgar and those with him saw the danger, and shouted to the
-obstructionists to move out of the way. It was, however, too late,
-and the warning would probably not have been heeded in any case.
-Seeing how matters stood, the Egyptians grew furious. Knives flashed
-in the light, and a rush was made at the foolish young fellows, who so
-recklessly hindered the procession.
-
-‘Come on,’ shouted Edgar, ‘or there will be murder done!’
-
-He rushed forward, followed by his companions, but they found it
-impossible to render much assistance, owing to the confusion. Edgar
-became separated from the others, and was drawing back from the crowd,
-when he heard a cry for help, followed by a woman’s shriek.
-
-Rushing in the direction of the sound, he saw a girl of about eighteen
-struggling in the grasp of a powerful Egyptian. He recognised her
-as Miss Muriel Wylde, a passenger on the _Cuzco_, with whom he had
-had pleasant chats on deck. In a moment Edgar had the ruffian by the
-throat, and forced him to loose his hold. No sooner, however, was the
-girl free, than another man seized her and attempted to carry her off.
-She struggled violently, and shouted again for help. Edgar had his work
-cut out with the man he first tackled. He was unarmed, and had to rely
-upon his fists. The furious Egyptian rushed upon him with an uplifted
-knife in his hand. Edgar did not flinch, but caught the fellow by the
-wrist, and the knife flew from his grasp. Then, with his left fist, he
-dealt the man a savage blow between the eyes that well-nigh stunned him.
-
-Turning to see what had become of Miss Wylde, Edgar saw that she
-had fainted, and her captor was hurrying away with her. Edgar gave
-chase, and quickly came up with him. The Egyptian dropped his burden,
-and turned on Edgar, aiming a terrific blow at him with his knife.
-Edgar sprang backwards, and the man over-reached himself. Before he
-recovered, Edgar had him on the ground, and stunned him by knocking his
-head on the hard road.
-
-He then sprang to his feet, and went to the assistance of Miss Wylde,
-who had luckily been thrown on the soft sand by the side of the road,
-and found she had recovered from her faint.
-
-‘Can you walk?’ said Edgar; ‘are you much hurt?’
-
-She was trembling and alarmed, and could hardly answer him.
-
-‘We must make our way to the quay,’ he said, ‘and get a boat back to
-the ship as quickly as possible. These fellows are frantic at being
-interfered with, and are in a dangerous state. Lean on me, and try and
-walk.’
-
-She put her hand on his shoulder, and Edgar supported her by placing
-his arm round her waist.
-
-They had not gone many yards before Edgar heard loud shouting behind
-them. It was evident some of the Egyptians were coming that way, and
-they must be avoided if possible. A few paces straight ahead Edgar saw
-a high wall, and what looked like a doorway. He lifted his companion
-off her feet, and ran as fast as he could towards the archway.
-
-On reaching it he knocked loudly. The door was opened by an old native
-woman, who peered curiously into his face.
-
-Without saying a word Edgar stepped inside, and closed the door behind
-him.
-
-‘What do you here?’ asked the old woman, in broken English. ‘Are you
-from the ship?’
-
-‘Yes,’ said Edgar, not knowing what else to say, or what excuse to give
-for his conduct.
-
-The old woman’s eyes gleamed, and her wrinkled, parchment-like skin
-seemed to crumple up and almost crack. Her mouth expanded in what she
-no doubt meant for a smile, but Edgar thought it a diabolical grin, and
-Muriel Wylde shrank back.
-
-‘Money--gold!’ said the woman hoarsely, her skinny hands extended like
-a couple of claws. ‘Gold, and you shall hear your fortune. The oldest
-Egyptian in Ismailia can speak truth.’
-
-Edgar felt relieved; had the old woman guessed they were fugitives she
-might not have been so friendly. He looked at his companion, and said:
-
-‘We shall be glad to hear our fortunes from you, mother. That is what
-we came for,’ and he took a sovereign out of his pocket.
-
-The old Egyptian’s eyes fastened upon it, and her hand was stretched
-out.
-
-‘Give me your hand,’ she said to Miss Wylde.
-
-The girl put out her open hand reluctantly, and the Egyptian gazed at
-it so attentively that she appeared to have forgotten the coin.
-
-‘You have been in trouble, and he has saved you,’ croaked the woman.
-
-The girl started, and the Egyptian smiled at this corroborative
-evidence. She had hazarded a guess at the situation, and hit the mark.
-
-She then proceeded to give an account of what would follow this
-adventure, and caused Muriel Wylde to blush, and wish she was safely on
-board again.
-
-Edgar’s future was soon told, in the usual strain. He was the hero of
-the story, and would be rewarded in due time by the hand of the lady he
-had rescued.
-
-Edgar gave the fortune-teller the sovereign, and asked her to direct
-them to the quay. She cautiously opened the door, and peered out into
-the darkness, listening attentively. She beckoned them to step out, and
-then pointed in the direction in which they should go.
-
-They walked for some distance, and then reached the part of the town
-where the cafés were still open, and men and women were drinking
-coffee, seated round tables under the verandas and trees.
-
-They sat down at one of the tables and rested, refreshing themselves
-with some excellent coffee.
-
-‘We must hurry back to the ship,’ said Edgar. ‘Your party may have
-returned, and if so your mother will be very anxious.’
-
-She was eager to go, and they rose from the table. As they walked away
-a tall Egyptian followed them. It was one of the men Edgar had knocked
-down. They were not out of danger yet.
-
-A long avenue led down to the quay, where the boats were generally
-waiting to sail or row passengers back to the ship.
-
-The Egyptian followed them, keeping within the shadow of the trees, his
-bare feet making no sound.
-
-Muriel Wylde was still weak from the effect of the shock she had
-received, and Edgar had to support her. He seemed nothing loath to do
-so, and his companion felt a sense of pleasurable security with his
-strong arm round her waist.
-
-On reaching the quay Edgar called out to a boatman, who came slowly
-towards them in his tiny craft.
-
-He explained that he wanted to be taken to the _Cuzco_, and the boatman
-agreed.
-
-Edgar handed his companion down into the boat, and as she stepped on to
-the seat she looked up and gave a cry of alarm. Behind Edgar stood the
-tall Egyptian, who had crept stealthily up, and was about to stab Edgar
-in the back. At her cry Edgar looked round, and, seeing no other way of
-escape, he sprang into the water. The Egyptian sprang after him, and
-grasped Edgar by the arm. A terrible struggle then took place, and in
-the water the Egyptian proved the more powerful.
-
-The man in the boat made no movement until Muriel Wylde seized a round
-pole, and tried to hit Edgar’s assailant on the head. The boatman then
-took the part of his countryman, and attempted to seize the pole and
-wrench it out of Muriel’s hands. The girl, however, was now thoroughly
-roused. Edgar had rescued her, and she must do the same for him, for he
-was in deadly peril. The Egyptian dragged Edgar down and got his head
-under the water, with the evident intention of drowning him.
-
-A struggle commenced in the boat, but by a lucky stroke Muriel managed
-to hit the boatman in the chest, and he fell overboard. The Egyptian
-was not far from the boat, and Muriel, raising the pole, brought it
-down heavily on his head, causing him to loose his hold of Edgar.
-
-Half suffocated, Edgar came to the surface, and struck out feebly for
-the boat.
-
-Muriel leaned over the side and grasped him by the arm. Pulling with
-all her strength, she managed to give him sufficient assistance to help
-him to scramble into the boat.
-
-The two Egyptians in the water were on either side of the boat, and
-were trying to upset it, and Muriel kept them from clambering in by
-hitting at them with the pole.
-
-Edgar was well-nigh exhausted, but he managed to set the sail, and, as
-the breeze was blowing from the shore, the boat soon made headway and
-left the Egyptians behind. Finding pursuit hopeless, they swam ashore,
-and stood there gesticulating furiously.
-
-Muriel, turning round to look at Edgar, saw he was unconscious. She
-was accustomed to sailing-boats, and, having placed her jacket under
-Edgar’s head, she steered with one hand and guided the sail with the
-other. The boat sped along in the direction of the _Cuzco_, whose
-lights were seen shining in the distance.
-
-Muriel Wylde sat watching Edgar, and when she thought over their
-night’s adventures, she was thankful they had escaped with life. Edgar
-was a handsome young fellow, and Muriel Wylde felt her heart beat fast
-as she looked at him. They had been good friends on board during the
-voyage, and Edgar’s mates had chaffed him about ‘pretty Miss Wylde.’
-Her mother had noticed her daughter’s partiality for Edgar’s society,
-and did not discourage it, as she had taken a fancy to the young fellow.
-
-Before they reached the steamer, Muriel Wylde left the stern of the
-boat for a moment to attend to Edgar. As she bent over him, he opened
-his eyes and looked into her face, which was very near to his own.
-Their eyes met, and they suddenly felt that something had been revealed
-to each of them.
-
-Edgar took Muriel Wylde’s hands, and drew her towards him. She did not
-resist, and when he kissed her she was not surprised or startled. It
-seemed a fitting climax to the dangers they had passed through.
-
-So lost were they in each other, although neither spoke, they did not
-notice they were close to the _Cuzco_. A loud ‘Ahoy!’ from the deck
-roused them, and in a few minutes they were alongside the steamer, and
-friendly hands were assisting them up the gangway.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIV. HOME AGAIN.
-
-
-Their adventures at Ismailia formed the subject of conversation for
-several days between Edgar and Muriel Wylde. With her mother’s consent,
-Muriel accepted Edgar’s offer of marriage, and when the engagement
-became known on board they were regarded with romantic interest by the
-passengers. The remainder of the voyage proved uneventful. Muriel Wylde
-and her mother left the steamer at Naples, and proceeded overland to
-London, but Edgar remained on board with the team.
-
-On arriving at Tilbury, the eleven received a hearty welcome from a
-large number of influential cricketers and lovers of the game. To
-Edgar, all this was as nothing to the joy he felt at meeting his father
-and Doris again.
-
-Elm Lodge looked much the same as when he went away, and the old home
-was so peaceful that Edgar began to wonder how he had ever made up his
-mind to leave it. He had much to relate to his father and sister, and,
-needless to say, Will Brown entertained Doris in a manner agreeable to
-that young lady.
-
-The wreck of the _Distant Shore_ was described again, and Robert Foster
-noticed with pride how modestly Edgar spoke of the part he took in
-saving Eva.
-
-‘Poor Manton!’ said Robert Foster. ‘I am sorry he was drowned, for a
-better seaman could not be found. I should like to meet Wal Jessop,
-and we must try and have little Eva over here, for we cannot spare you
-again, Edgar, now we have got you at home.’
-
-‘It would be splendid if Wal could be induced to bring Eva and his wife
-home,’ said Edgar. ‘I must write and ask him. You have to meet Ben
-Brody, who came over with us, and I am sure you will be amused at him.
-He is a character, and a rough-and-ready customer, but a genuine good
-fellow.’
-
-When Edgar spoke of his engagement to Muriel Wylde, his father was
-pleased he had found a girl after his own heart, for his son’s
-happiness always held a foremost place with him.
-
-‘And what about the Australian eleven?’ said Robert Foster. ‘Are they
-a strong team? It is rather too bad of you to play against the old
-country. It places me in an awkward position. Of course, I am patriotic
-enough to wish to see England victorious, and yet I shall be highly
-delighted to see you pile up a big score.’
-
-‘I shall do my best,’ said Edgar; ‘and every member of the team will
-try hard to win the matches. I think we stand an excellent chance, and
-you will have to put your best eleven in the field to beat us in the
-test matches.’
-
-‘Your men generally play well, and with constant practice they know
-each other’s play thoroughly, but we have some splendid cricketers now,
-and they will take a lot of beating,’ said his father.
-
-‘All the more credit to us, then, if we win,’ said Edgar.
-
-The members of an Australian eleven have plenty of hard work to go
-through when in England, and Edgar could not remain idle at home.
-He went to Mitcham to practise on the famous common, and his father
-accompanied him to see how the men shaped. To two or three of the older
-members of the team, who had been in England before, Robert Foster was
-well known, and his appearance with Edgar was hailed with delight.
-
-William Murch, the captain of the Australians, shook hands heartily
-with Robert Foster, and said with a smile:
-
-‘We have had you against us on many occasions, but I think we can cry
-quits now we have your son on our side.’
-
-‘How does Edgar shape?’ asked Robert Foster.
-
-‘I consider him one of our best bats, and expect great things of him.
-He has a happy knack of making a big score when it is most wanted. He
-is a smart fielder and a good change bowler. In fact, I cannot pay him
-a higher compliment than to say he is as good a man as his father,’
-said Murch.
-
-Edgar was now at the nets, and making the balls fly about merrily.
-
-‘He does not seem very stiff after the voyage,’ said Robert Foster.
-‘His wrist play is good, but his style could be improved a bit. I must
-give him a wrinkle or two.’
-
-‘That will be going over to the enemy’s camp,’ said Murch, with a
-laugh; ‘but we shall be glad of such a valuable coach.’
-
-‘By Jove! so it will,’ said Robert Foster. ‘But I cannot resist the
-temptation, all the same. We cricketers, I am glad to say, are always
-ready to help each other, and I have had many a good wrinkle given me
-by Australians.’
-
-‘Ah! it is a game that stands ahead of all other games,’ said Murch
-enthusiastically. ‘It is a genuine sport, and a manly sport. It not
-only gives pleasure to the players, but to thousands of people in all
-parts of the world. Lovers of cricket, no matter where you go, are
-always willing to help each other.’
-
-‘You are right,’ said Robert Foster. ‘Cricket will never take a back
-seat to any other game.’
-
-‘Look out!’ said Murch, as he dodged a ball hit by Edgar. ‘Your son is
-evidently bent upon letting us know he is at the nets.’
-
-When he had finished his turn with the bat Edgar joined his father and
-Murch.
-
-‘How do you think I shape?’ said Edgar.
-
-‘Very well,’ replied his father, ‘but your style is rather faulty. I
-think I can give you a hint as to what I mean when we reach home.’
-
-‘Now then, Will, it’s your turn,’ said Edgar, and Will Murch went to
-the nets with his bat under his arm.
-
-‘You have seen him play before?’ said Edgar.
-
-‘Many times,’ said his father. ‘He is a splendid bat, and I should
-think he will make a good captain. Is he popular with the team?’
-
-‘Very,’ said Edgar. ‘I believe every one of us thinks he is the best
-man that could have been selected.’
-
-‘That is the proper feeling to start with,’ said Robert Foster. ‘If you
-have no confidence in your captain, defeat is almost certain.’
-
-When Robert Foster had seen the Australians at practice on several
-occasions, he came to the conclusion it was the strongest team that had
-yet come to England.
-
-‘The test matches will be a treat,’ he said. ‘If honours are divided in
-the first two matches, what tremendous excitement there will be over
-the final!’
-
-‘Which I hope we shall win,’ said Edgar.
-
-Doris Foster was quite as interested as her father in the probable
-result of the tour. Although Will Brown had not returned from Australia
-with enough wealth to warrant him in setting up an establishment of his
-own, Doris thought she would not be risking much in accepting him as
-her lover. With Robert Foster’s sanction they became engaged, and the
-family circle at Elm Lodge increased.
-
-Ben Brody came to Elm Lodge, and soon made himself at home. Robert
-Foster discovered that men of Brody’s stamp are to be trusted, and
-although he might have been out of place amidst the sham and humbug of
-a society drawing-room, Ben Brody was in his element at Elm Lodge.
-
-His quaint remarks caused roars of laughter, and he drew some amusing
-pictures of station life in which Edgar and Will Brown were conspicuous
-figures.
-
-‘I’ll tell you what it is,’ he said to Edgar one day as they sat on the
-lawn enjoying the fragrant weed, ‘this beats Yanda hollow. What a trump
-your dad is! Talk about colonial hospitality, it is a mere trifle to
-the way in which I have been treated here. I have lived on the fat of
-the land, while those poor beggars at Yanda have been stifling their
-ill-feelings with the usual mutton. Then there’s your sister--but she
-ought to have a whole vocabulary to herself and not be mixed up with
-such matters. Will Brown’s a lucky fellow, and so for the matter of
-that are you. Girls like Miss Muriel Wylde are not found every day. I
-wonder if you will ever return to Australia.’
-
-‘That remains to be seen,’ said Edgar. ‘After the tour will be time
-enough to think about that.’
-
-The opening match of the tour was played at Sheffield Park against Lord
-Sheffield’s eleven. Ever ready to assist in promoting honest manly
-games, H.R.H. the Prince of Wales honoured them with his presence.
-Will Murch was introduced to his Royal Highness, and was naturally much
-elated. The match resulted in a win for the Australians, but Edgar did
-not ‘come off’ on this occasion.
-
-As the weeks rolled by and the tour progressed, it was easy to see the
-Australian eleven was a fine team. So far they had only been twice
-beaten--once by an M.C.C. eleven, and in the first match against
-England.
-
-Their second struggle with the cracks of the home team had resulted
-in a win for the Australians. Edgar played well in these matches, but
-had done nothing particularly wonderful. Against several of the county
-elevens he had made good scores. He astonished W. G. at Gloucester by
-the way he knocked the champion’s bowling about, and the hero of a
-hundred fights warmly congratulated him on his performance.
-
-‘I always thought W. G. was a jealous man,’ said Edgar.
-
-‘Not a bit of it,’ said Robert Foster. ‘He’s one of the first to
-recognise merit in a cricketer. I’ll tell you what he is jealous about.’
-
-‘And that is?’ asked Edgar.
-
-‘The honour of the game, and the honour of his side when he captains a
-team,’ said Robert Foster.
-
-The final test match was to be played at Lord’s, and the greatest
-interest was manifested in the result. Throughout England enthusiastic
-cricketers waxed eloquent over the forthcoming struggle. In Australia
-every item of news was eagerly read and discussed. It might safely be
-said that millions of people anxiously awaited the result of this great
-match. The picking of the England eleven was a difficult task, but at
-last it was done, and Robert Foster could not find a fault with the
-team.
-
-‘They ought to beat you, Edgar,’ he said. ‘It is the best team that
-could have been selected. Grace has had a large finger in that pie, and
-no fault can be found with it. I cannot pick out a weak spot.’
-
-‘They have not won yet,’ said Edgar; ‘and all our men are in splendid
-trim. Murch is sanguine, and he’s not given to over-estimate our
-chances. Lord’s has been our unlucky ground, but that is no reason why
-we should not prove successful.’
-
-‘What a sight it will be!’ said Robert Foster. ‘I hope you will pile up
-a big score.’
-
-‘So do I,’ replied Edgar. ‘This is my chance, and I shall do my best.’
-
-The great match was to commence on Monday, and on the Sunday quite a
-party of cricketers assembled at Elm Lodge. Will Murch, Bannman, Black,
-Royle of the Australians, and two of the English team enjoyed Robert
-Foster’s hospitality and listened to the yarns spun by Ben Brody.
-
-Muriel Wylde and her mother were in London for the match, and came to
-spend the day at Elm Lodge. Muriel and Doris were great friends, and
-found much to talk about. It was an eventful Sunday, this day before
-the great match, which formed almost the sole topic of conversation.
-Many were the surmises as to who would make the big scores, and which
-bowler would secure the best average.
-
-‘We count upon you this time,’ said Murch to Edgar. ‘It is your turn to
-knock up a big score against England.’
-
-‘I mean to try,’ said Edgar, ‘and I feel very fit.’
-
-‘Muriel will be terribly disappointed if you make less than a hundred,’
-said Doris.
-
-‘That is rather a large order,’ laughed Edgar, ‘but I must do my best
-to execute it.’
-
-Late hours were not kept that night. Robert Foster packed them off in
-good time.
-
-‘You shall have a night of it when the match is over,’ he said to
-Will Murch. ‘Win or lose, you must come here to celebrate the event.
-Remember I am equally interested in both sides.’
-
-As Edgar bade Muriel good-night, she said:
-
-‘I am quite anxious about you, Edgar. I feel sure you will succeed.
-I shall be terribly excited during the first over, but when you are
-firmly set and making a score, it will be glorious.’
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXV. THE SCENE AT LORD’S.
-
-
-An enormous crowd assembled on the famous cricket-ground at Lord’s to
-witness the final battle between England and Australia. The record
-attendance was registered for the opening day of a match, and it was
-with difficulty that the crowd could be kept within bounds. It reminded
-old race-goers of a Derby Day to see so many vehicles driving in the
-direction of the ground. Although the sky was dull and threatening,
-this did not damp the ardour of the spectators. The members’ pavilion
-was thronged, and also the reserved stands and enclosure. A dense mass
-of people filled every available standing and sitting place in the
-cheaper portion of the ground. No sooner were the doors opened than a
-rush commenced for the best seats, which were secured by those who had
-been patiently waiting from an early hour in the morning.
-
-Outside the high walls it was more like a fair than anything else.
-Itinerant vendors of a variety of eatables did a good trade, and
-evaded the attentions of the police with remarkable skill. No sooner
-did the man in blue move a coster on than he ‘bobbed up serenely’ in a
-different place. Portraits of the cricketers were hawked about, though
-the celebrities depicted would have had some difficulty in recognising
-their own faces. The excitement over the match was tremendous. The
-bus-drivers discussed the chances of success with the passengers
-nearest to them, and many of the cabmen wore the English colours on
-their whips. Morning editions of the evening papers met with a ready
-sale, and every scrap of news anent the great match was pounced upon
-with avidity.
-
-Before noon a few drops of rain fell, and with the gathering clouds
-the faces of the people became sombre, and their looks gloomy. A heavy
-shower would make a good deal of difference, and none knew it better
-than the members of the teams.
-
-Robert Foster stood inside the pavilion, with his son and Will Murch,
-anxiously scanning the clouds for a sign of a break. They had not long
-to wait. The blue sky became visible, and the sun chased the dulness
-away and shed its brilliant rays on the scene.
-
-And what a sight it was as they looked from the pavilion over the
-ground! A dense mass of people lined the enclosure, and even pressed
-over the boundary line in some parts of the ground. To the left of the
-pavilion the enclosure was gay with the costumes of the ladies, and
-they seemed as eager for the game to commence as any of the male sex.
-
-Doris Foster accompanied Muriel Wylde and her mother, and they were
-escorted by Will Brown and Ben Brody, who felt slightly uncomfortable
-in a hard hat and a pair of gloves--not to mention a new suit, made by
-a fashionable tailor. They occupied seats in the first enclosure, and
-had an excellent view of the ground.
-
-The mere mention of Lord’s conjures up wonderful feats in the cricket
-field, and recalls memories of men who played on its green sward. A
-glance round the pavilion shows the members have not been unmindful of
-their doughty champions of the game. It gives the history of cricket,
-its rise and progress, in a pictorial form, to look at the various
-prints, paintings, and engravings hanging on the walls. The ‘tall hat’
-period is well represented, and young cricketers may well be forgiven
-for smiling at the costumes of the men who made the game what it is.
-The smile, however, was not at the men--there was nothing but praise
-for them. Old stagers waxed eloquent over the doings of the cricketers
-of their younger days. They vowed there were as good men then as now,
-although they had to confess the game had improved--and consequently
-the players also.
-
-A gray-headed veteran came up to Robert Foster and said:
-
-‘We had big crowds in our day, but nothing like this,’ and he waved his
-hand in a comprehensive sweep round the circle of faces.
-
-Edgar was introduced to the veteran, who said:
-
-‘I remember the first time I saw your father play. He was about your
-age then, and he _was_ a bat. I’ll never forget it. It was on this very
-ground--Surrey against Middlesex. He won the match, my boy. I’d sooner
-you were for us than against us to-day, if you can play as well as your
-father did then.’
-
-‘I recollect that match,’ said Robert; ‘but you give me too much credit
-when you say I won it for the team.’
-
-‘Not a bit of it,’ replied the veteran. ‘Ask any man who saw it, and
-I’ll guarantee he tells the same story. Is it not recorded in the
-annals of cricket?’
-
-‘We’ve lost the toss,’ said Edgar. ‘The usual luck at Lord’s.’
-
-‘I expect they will bat,’ said Robert Foster.
-
-‘I doubt it,’ said Edgar. ‘The ground is a bit tricky and in favour of
-the bowlers. Grace has gone to have a good look at the wicket. He knows
-there are no chances to be thrown away.’
-
-The tall figure of the English captain, with his black, bushy beard,
-stood out boldly against the background of people. It was in the days
-when Grace was at his best, and Dr. E. M. was another of the valiant
-brothers who took the field; Shaw and Morley, the famous Notts bowlers,
-were in their prime, and Daft had not yet retired from the field--when
-such grand men as A. P. Lucas, A. G. Steel, A. Lyttelton and Lord
-Harris were seen at nearly every big match. It was an anxious moment
-for everyone as Grace consulted with two of his team as to whether they
-should bat.
-
-At last the decision came. The Englishmen were to bat, and a mighty
-cheer went up from the crowd.
-
-‘The pitch is all right, or Grace would not have gone in,’ said Robert
-Foster.
-
-‘Perhaps he thinks it will wear all right for their innings, and leave
-us with the ground cut up,’ said Murch.
-
-People settled down in their places, and made themselves as comfortable
-as possible. As the Australians filed on the ground, headed by Murch,
-cheer after cheer was given them--for the ‘Kangaroo boys’ had become
-very popular.
-
-The commencement of a great match is always fraught with intense
-excitement. How will the game go? Will there be a stand for the first
-wicket?
-
-The brothers Grace, W. G. and E. M., came out to face the bowling, and
-again the cheers broke out from all parts of the ground. Two good men
-and good bats were going to open the game for the honour of Old England
-against the attack of her young country’s sons.
-
-The English captain went through the preliminaries usual with him.
-He calmly surveyed the field, noting with keen eyes how each man was
-placed. He took his block, and then patted the ground in a fatherly way
-with his bat, as though requesting the pitch to behave well to him.
-Then he put his bat under his arm and leisurely fastened his glove.
-Having put himself to rights, he was ready for the attack.
-
-The battle had commenced, and it soon became lively. Both men were in
-form, and the Australians had plenty of leather-hunting. Boundary hits
-did not come quite so quickly as might have been expected, as the ball
-seemed to fall rather dead, and did not roll far. When an adjournment
-for luncheon was made, both Graces were still in, and the crowd was
-jubilant.
-
-Murch was not at all depressed. He never gave in, or had the faintest
-intention of doing so.
-
-‘After luncheon will do it,’ he said. ‘There will be a separation then.’
-
-He was right, for in the first over E. M. Grace had his stumps upset.
-
-It was, however, uphill work fighting against such a powerful batting
-team. Man after man came in and piled up a score, and the captain was
-not got rid of until he had placed one hundred and fifty-two to his
-credit. He had played a grand innings, and fully maintained his great
-reputation.
-
-The Englishmen were not disposed of until they had piled up the large
-score of four hundred and two.
-
-‘What do you think of it now?’ asked Robert Foster of Edgar.
-
-‘It is a big score, but we may equal it,’ he replied.
-
-‘I admire your pluck, but I hardly think you will do that,’ was the
-remark of a friend of Mr. Foster’s.
-
-They did not do it. The Australians made an unfortunate start, for
-Murch, their great bat and popular captain, was caught before he had
-scored.
-
-Edgar made a fair show, and put on thirty runs before he was bowled;
-but none of the team made a good stand, and the innings closed, for
-a hundred and fifty runs--two hundred and fifty-two behind their
-opponents. This was a terribly black outlook for the Australians, and
-everyone was disappointed at their display.
-
-Muriel Wylde felt vexed, and she knew Edgar would be much cut up about
-it. He came to see her, and tried to put the best face he could on the
-matter.
-
-‘We must avoid a one innings defeat, anyhow,’ he said; ‘I cannot make
-it out at all. It is sheer bad luck, for the wicket was good. I think
-when Murch got out for a duck it made our fellows feel a bit nervous.’
-
-‘You played well enough,’ said Brody.
-
-‘That you did,’ said Will Brown; ‘but I’m afraid you are in for an
-awful dressing.’
-
-‘No telling what may happen in cricket,’ said Edgar. ‘I have seen an
-even worse match than this pulled out of the fire.’
-
-‘Then you have not lost hope?’ said Muriel.
-
-‘By no means,’ said Edgar. ‘I have a presentiment we shall make a big
-score, and prove what we really can do.’
-
-Robert Foster was proud of the display of the home eleven, but he could
-not help feeling a pang of regret that the Australians had not made a
-better show.
-
-Will Murch was determined to have his revenge for the catch that
-disposed of him, and said he felt like making a big score. He got his
-men together, and talked the matter over.
-
-‘I’ll go in first again,’ he said, ‘with Bannman, and we must make a
-stand somehow. If we can make a big score the other side may be got out
-without getting the requisite runs, or they may not have time to get
-them, and we shall make a draw of it.’
-
-Edgar Foster was to go in at the fall of the first wicket, and Murch
-was very anxious every man should do his level best.
-
-‘They will be very down in the mouth about it at home,’ he said. ‘We
-can all imagine how they felt when they saw the poor stand we made;
-we’ll try and change the tune for them. Remember, lads, that every run
-tells. Run carefully, but run well, and then it is surprising how a
-few singles tot up and swell the total. Bat carefully until you are
-set, and when you feel safe don’t spare them. They have given us some
-leather-hunting, let us return the compliment.’
-
-The cheery words of their captain put heart into the team, and it was
-with considerable confidence they saw Murch and Bannman walk to the
-wickets to commence the second innings.
-
-Edgar went over to his father to watch the start, and his heart beat
-fast as he saw Murch prepare to take the first over.
-
-‘This is better, much better,’ said Robert Foster, as Murch hit a
-couple of fours in his first over. ‘We can afford to be generous, and
-wish you all to do well this innings.’
-
-Bannman played a cautious game, and left the bulk of the run-getting to
-his captain. After half an hour’s play there was a change of bowling.
-Will Murch treated the new-comer with scant ceremony.
-
-To Edgar’s great delight the Australian captain hit the bowling all
-over the field. His powerful drives and clean cuts elicited well
-deserved applause, which was freely bestowed.
-
-‘If you go on at this rate,’ said Robert Foster, ‘it will put a very
-different complexion on the game. Your men always did play a good
-uphill fight.’
-
-‘And will do so to-day,’ said Edgar. ‘By Jove! that was a narrow shave.’
-
-Bannman made a miss-hit, and the ball went near to the fielder at
-point, but he just failed to hold it, although he touched it.
-
-When the second day’s play ended, Murch and Bannman were not out, and
-the score stood at one hundred and thirty, of which number Will Murch
-had made eighty-four.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVI. AN UPHILL GAME.
-
-
-The brilliant stand made by the Australian captain and Bannman caused
-intense excitement, and the attendance on the final day of the match
-was enormous. Hundreds of people who anticipated a tame finish, and a
-one-sided affair, changed their opinions upon reading the score in the
-morning papers. Contrary to expectation, the third day’s play promised
-to be the most interesting of all.
-
-When Murch and Bannman commenced again, every stroke was followed
-with interest. Runs came freely, and Bannman was not disposed of
-until he had made seventy. Then Edgar Foster joined his captain, and
-the reception he received on going to the wicket proved his father’s
-prowess in the field was not forgotten. Foster, in days gone by, was a
-name to conjure by, and people remembered Robert Foster’s feats with
-the bat.
-
-Muriel Wylde felt anxious, and whispered to Doris Foster:
-
-‘I do hope Edgar will make a score.’
-
-‘He will try to do so, because he knows it will give you pleasure,’
-said Doris.
-
-Murch spoke to Edgar when he went in to bat, and gave him a hint or two
-as to the bowling. Edgar played the last ball of the over, and then
-Murch scored a couple in the next over.
-
-The bowling was splendid. Both Shaw and Morley were doing their level
-best. Edgar found Alf Shaw could deceive a batsman, and put in a swift
-ball when least expected. He scored a single off the last ball, and
-then faced Morley. Edgar was partial to swift bowling, as Morley soon
-discovered, and the over proved productive.
-
-‘I’m getting well set,’ thought Edgar. ‘I believe I’m in for a good
-score.’
-
-The runs came freely, and it was not until he had made a hundred and
-sixty runs that Murch was caught.
-
-He had done splendidly, and his return to the pavilion was a triumph.
-Royle joined Edgar and played steadily.
-
-Grace took the ball and faced Edgar. The English captain knew Edgar
-was a free hitter, and placed his men far out. Then he tried to tempt
-him to send a catch. Edgar narrowly escaped being caught at the second
-ball of the over, and this made him careful. The last ball, however,
-was one he could not resist hitting. He drove it straight as a dart,
-and it landed over the boundary. It was a tremendous hit, and caused an
-outburst of cheering.
-
-The next exciting moment came when E. M. Grace made a magnificent catch
-at long-on from a very high hit by Royle. He caught the ball with one
-hand, having had to run for it, and, much to Royle’s surprise, held it.
-
-Donnell came next, and then there was some big hitting. Both batsmen
-knocked the bowling about terribly. When Edgar had scored fifty there
-was a hearty cheer, and he appeared likely to make as big a score as
-his captain. The Australians were playing a splendid uphill game,
-and keeping up their reputation as ‘men who never know when they are
-beaten.’
-
-At the fall of the seventh wicket the two hundred and fifty-two runs
-had been wiped off, and they were over fifty to the good.
-
-The game now became most exciting, as the Englishmen knew if they did
-not quickly dispose of the Australians the game would end in a draw.
-Each man worked hard, and the fielding and bowling was splendid.
-
-Still Edgar Foster kept on increasing his score, and passed his
-century, to the great delight of his father and his friends.
-
-Connor was now in, and his hits were marvellous. The giant--he was
-about six feet four--lifted the balls all over the ground, and safely
-out of the reach of the fielders.
-
-When the last wicket fell Edgar Foster was a hundred and fifty, not
-out, and the score was five hundred and two runs, or two hundred and
-fifty ahead of the Englishmen.
-
-Such a grand uphill game it was generally acknowledged had never been
-played before. Edgar Foster was overwhelmed with congratulations, and
-Muriel Wylde showed her delight on her face.
-
-‘It was splendid, Edgar,’ she said. ‘I believe you would have made two
-hundred or more.’
-
-‘I felt like it,’ said Edgar. ‘I knew you were watching me, and that
-put me on my mettle.’
-
-It seemed well nigh a hopeless task for the Englishmen to get two
-hundred and fifty runs in the short time at their disposal. However,
-they lost no time in making a start to try to do so.
-
-Strange to say, they did not bat in anything like the form shown in
-their first innings. Three wickets fell for under fifty runs, W. G.
-Grace being unluckily run out.
-
-The Australians fielded with wonderful skill. Hardly a ball got past
-them, and many boundary hits were saved.
-
-Seven wickets fell for a hundred runs, and now it was the turn of the
-Australians to endeavour to get their opponents out before the call of
-time.
-
-The Englishmen had reckoned with certainty upon a draw, but they now
-had to fight hard to avert defeat, and even a draw would not be in
-their favour.
-
-‘It is a most extraordinary game,’ said Robert Foster. ‘The glorious
-uncertainty of cricket again. You never can tell how it will go until
-a match is over, no matter how favourable it may look for a particular
-side.’
-
-He had joined the ladies, and they were all watching the game with
-interest, taking keen note of every good stroke and every brilliant
-piece of fielding.
-
-Will Brown looked at his watch.
-
-‘They have only half-an-hour left,’ he said. ‘I should not wonder if
-they were got out in that time.’
-
-The thousands of spectators also wondered how the game would end.
-
-Ten minutes before time Morley joined Shaw at the wickets. They were
-not good bats--anything but that, and the crowd knew it. Morley hit
-out recklessly and made a couple of fours, and Shaw played steadily.
-The Australians did all in their power to separate them, but, as luck
-would have it, they failed to do so. The game ended in a draw, which
-practically amounted to a victory for the Australians, as the English
-eleven required over seventy runs to win.
-
-The result of this match was the subject of conversation for some days,
-and the grand struggle made by the Australians was commented upon on
-all sides.
-
-At Elm Lodge the event was duly celebrated, and, as Robert Foster
-promised, the party made a night of it.
-
-When the tour of the Australians was finished they left for home, but
-Edgar Foster did not return with them. At his father’s request he
-remained at home.
-
-‘What will Eva think when she finds that I have not returned?’ said
-Edgar. ‘I promised her I would go back.’
-
-‘We must try and get her over here,’ said his father. ‘I shall feel
-lonely when you and Doris have left me, and Eva will be nice company
-for me.’
-
-‘She is a dear little thing,’ said Edgar, ‘and you will love her as
-much as though she were your own child.’
-
-‘Do you think every soul on board the _Distant Shore_, with the
-exception of Eva and yourself, was drowned?’ said Robert Foster.
-
-‘There can hardly be any doubt about it,’ said Edgar. ‘Why do you ask?’
-
-‘Because I have received a rather mysterious letter,’ said Robert
-Foster; ‘it bears the Sydney postmark, and contains news that may
-interest you. I will show it you.’
-
-Robert Foster unlocked his desk, and put his hand in one of the
-pigeon-holes. He looked through the letters, but could not find the one
-for which he searched.
-
-‘Strange,’ he said, ‘I am sure I put it there.’
-
-‘You may have dropped it, or torn it up by mistake,’ said Edgar.
-‘Perhaps you remember the contents?’
-
-‘The bulk of them,’ said his father. ‘The letter stated that the writer
-had been on a cruise to the South Sea Islands, where he met a man who
-had been saved from a wreck. He believes, from hints the man, who
-was very reticent, let fall, that he was saved from the wreck of the
-_Distant Shore_. When he returned to Sydney he met with Wal Jessop,
-who was much interested in what he was told about this man. Wal Jessop
-described Captain Manton, and my correspondent says he firmly believes
-from this description it is Captain Manton who was saved and is now in
-the South Seas. He did not tell Wal Jessop this, because the man seemed
-to have a great desire to be left alone, and had no wish to let people
-know he had been saved from the wreck of the _Distant Shore_. It is a
-most extraordinary story, and I wish I had the letter. I must have torn
-it up by mistake. It was careless of me to do so.’
-
-Edgar was amazed at what his father said, and replied:
-
-‘I can hardly credit this story. How any man could live if washed out
-to sea on such a night I do not know. If it is Captain Manton, surely
-he would have made some sign before this. It cannot possibly be Eva’s
-father, for I saw him standing on the deck as the ship struck, and from
-the look on his face, and the way he waved farewell to me, I knew he
-meant to go down with her.’
-
-‘He may have been washed out to sea, and found a spar or something
-to support him. I have a peculiar feeling that this man who was
-saved from the wreck is Manton. I have had strange dreams about him
-since I received the letter, and I am not a dreamer as a rule, or a
-superstitious man. I knew Manton well; he was a proud man, and very
-sensitive. If he be the man so strangely saved, I think it is precisely
-what he would do--to hide himself away in some lonely spot, in order to
-make people think him dead.’
-
-‘But surely he would come forward and tell the story of the wreck,’
-said Edgar. ‘No blame attaches to him; he did his utmost to save the
-ship, and went down with her when he found he could not do so. Then
-there is Eva. He would want to see his child again; surely he would
-hear that she had been saved.’
-
-‘He may not have heard. In such a lonely spot one hears very little
-news from the outer world.’
-
-‘Do you really place any faith in your mysterious correspondent’s
-letter?’
-
-‘I do, Edgar, and for this reason: I feel no man would have written
-such a letter had he not been convinced of the truth of its contents.’
-
-‘But why should he write to you?’ asked Edgar.
-
-‘Wal Jessop probably told him how you saved Eva from the wreck, and it
-would occur to him that you might wish to know what he thought he had
-discovered. He no doubt wrote to me, thinking I would tell you if I
-thought it well to do so,’ said Robert Foster.
-
-‘It may be as you surmise,’ said Edgar. ‘I shall never be easy in my
-mind until I have seen the man who wrote the letter, and heard all he
-has to tell.’
-
-‘That would mean another trip to Australia,’ said his father with a
-smile. ‘What would Muriel say to that?’
-
-‘I do not think she would object to my going, for we are not to be
-married, as you know, until she is twenty-one. Her mother will not
-consent to part with her before that time. In any case I should not
-have the journey for nothing, because I could bring Eva back with me.’
-
-‘So you could,’ said Robert Foster. ‘We should be put down as a couple
-of foolish fellows if anyone knew what you went to Sydney for.’
-
-‘I shall tell no one, with the exception of Muriel,’ said Edgar. ‘She
-will not think it foolish.’
-
-‘I ought to tell you more,’ said Robert Foster. ‘There was a sketch in
-the letter, and it bore a strange resemblance to Manton. I cannot make
-out where the letter has got to.’
-
-‘Was it a sketch made on the spot, or drawn from memory?’
-
-‘Drawn in Sydney, I believe the writer said.’
-
-‘Then it may have been drawn from Wal Jessop’s description,’ said Edgar.
-
-‘Possibly, but I hardly think so. It seemed to me to be a sketch just
-as the man who drew it remembered to have seen him. I did not tell you
-of this before, because I thought it might upset you during the tour.’
-
-‘I should have thought a good deal about it, no doubt,’ said Edgar;
-‘and perhaps it was as well you did not tell me.’
-
-Edgar pondered over what his father told him, and the more he thought
-over it, the more impossible it seemed to him that anyone, least of all
-Captain Manton, should have been saved from the wreck of the _Distant
-Shore_.
-
-The spirit of adventure, however, was still strong within him, and this
-letter his father had received would serve as an excuse, if a poor
-one, to revisit Australia. He communicated his intention to Muriel,
-and when she heard the reason for his setting out again she did not
-consider it so improbable as Edgar himself did.
-
-So it was arranged that Edgar should again voyage to the Colonies, and
-Ben Brody was glad of a comrade to return with him. Will Brown, having
-obtained a situation in a large shipping office, decided to remain in
-England, and Doris Foster was consoled by the thought that if Edgar
-left again, she would still have a companion of her own age to whom she
-was much attached.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVII. THE CAPTAIN OR HIS GHOST.
-
-
-In due course Edgar Foster arrived in Sydney again. He thought it
-better to take Wal Jessop into his confidence, and related to him the
-real reason of his return to Australia.
-
-Wal Jessop remembered the circumstances, and said he did not think
-Edgar would easily find the man.
-
-‘He spoke of sailing for America,’ said Wal; ‘and as I have seen
-nothing of him for some time, I think he must have gone away.’
-
-‘I mean to have a cruise in the South Seas, at any rate,’ said Edgar.
-‘I have never been there, and it will be interesting. I am sure to
-hear something about this man from the natives and traders.’
-
-Wal Jessop thought for a few moments, and then said:
-
-‘I have a schooner that would suit your purpose, and I should not mind
-making a voyage with you. It would be better than going alone, and I
-have been in the South Seas several times.’
-
-‘That would be splendid!’ said Edgar, overjoyed at the prospect of
-having Wal Jessop with him.
-
-Wal Jessop communicated his intention of accompanying Edgar to his
-wife, and although she did not care for him to leave her again to go on
-a cruise, she raised no objections when she heard what object they had
-in view.
-
-‘How strange it will be if you find Captain Manton there!’ she said.
-‘Even if such a thing happened I am afraid he would not return with
-you.’
-
-‘We shall persuade him to do so,’ said Wal, ‘if we find him; but
-that is more than we hope for. Still, more extraordinary things than
-this have happened over shipwrecks, and truth is often stranger than
-fiction.’
-
-Wal Jessop’s schooner did not take much fitting out for the voyage, for
-both he and Edgar were used to roughing it. A couple of good men were
-engaged to go with them, upon whom Wal Jessop knew he could rely.
-
-They set sail early one morning, and were soon outside the heads,
-going along at a fair rate of speed in their small craft.
-
-‘She sails well,’ said Edgar.
-
-‘Many a craft twice her size does not skim over the sea so fast,’ said
-Wal.
-
-Edgar thoroughly enjoyed being on board the schooner. It was vastly
-different from the life on an ocean liner. They had on board a stock of
-goods to trade with the natives, and hoped to make the trip profitable.
-The wind and weather being in their favour, they sailed merrily along,
-and there was every prospect of their making a fast trip.
-
-Wal Jessop suggested going to Fiji first of all.
-
-‘It’s a jolly place,’ he said, ‘and will not be out of our way, and we
-are not tied for time.’
-
-‘It is a good thing your wife cannot hear you,’ said Edgar, laughing.
-‘I fancy I heard you say we should return as quickly as possible.’
-
-‘So we shall,’ said Wal; ‘but we made no stipulation as to the course
-we should take.’
-
-They made sail for Levuka, the former capital of Fiji, Suva being the
-present capital. Levuka is situated on a narrow strip of beach, from
-which the backbone of Ovalau rises precipitately to a height of 2,500
-feet, and falls in a similar manner on the other side.
-
-Levuka, Edgar found, consisted of one main street about a mile in
-length, which runs along the beach from old Government House to the
-native village at the other end. The ground ascends rapidly on leaving
-the beach, and the hills around are dotted with pretty villas. The
-stores and hotels face the water, and here Edgar and Wal took in a
-fresh stock of provisions for the schooner.
-
-After leaving Levuka, they sailed along the coast and saw a number of
-small native towns dotted about at varying intervals, usually among a
-little grove of cocoa-nuts or bananas.
-
-They landed near one of these native villages and obtained a supply
-of yams and sweet potatoes, also bananas in any quantity. The village
-was surrounded by filth and garbage of all sorts, and among this
-highly-scented mess a number of scraggy pigs, thin hens, and young
-children were rummaging. The stagnant water lying about attracted
-swarms of mosquitoes and flies.
-
-Edgar entered one of the houses and was almost choked with the smoke,
-and was glad to get a breath of fresh air. The earthen floor of the
-house he could just discern was covered with dry grass over which were
-spread a few mats. The men seemed a lazy lot of fellows, passing the
-bulk of their time in smoking. They went inland for several miles, but
-found the country hilly and uninteresting.
-
-They saw numerous inland villages nestling in the valley or perched on
-the top of a hill. After leaving Fiji they sailed for the New Hebrides,
-rather an inhospitable country, so Edgar understood. Wal Jessop had,
-however, been to Tana before, and meant to steer for that place.
-
-‘What sort of a place is Tana?’ asked Edgar as they sat idly in the
-schooner with the blue sky shining brilliantly overhead, and the blue
-water of the ocean all around them.
-
-‘It is a volcanic island,’ said Wal. ‘There are several of them in the
-group, and on many of them the natives speak different languages. It is
-a circular island, with a high mountain in the centre which we ought to
-see before long. The mountain is constantly in eruption, and answers
-the purpose of a lighthouse. It is covered with vegetation almost to
-the top.’
-
-‘I hope we shall not have an earthquake during our stay on the island.
-I have experienced one already, during our exploration in the cave of
-Enooma, and I should not care for the experience to be repeated,’ said
-Edgar.
-
-Next morning the island of Tana came in sight, and Edgar marvelled
-at its beauty as seen from the schooner. In the centre of the island
-rose the high mountain, as Wal Jessop had described it, and smoke
-and fire were issuing from the top. They were not long in reaching a
-landing-place, and on the beach they saw a number of native canoes,
-some about fifteen feet long, and others from twenty-five to nearly
-fifty feet in length.
-
-When the natives saw the schooner let go her anchor, two canoes put off
-and were quickly paddled alongside. The natives in them were rather
-under the middle stature and the colour of old copper. Their faces
-were painted a reddish colour, and looked oily and sticky. Their hair
-was frizzy and of a light-brown colour, and was twisted and curled into
-numerous tails, which were thrown back from the forehead and hung down
-the back. It looked for all the world like a wig made of whipcord,
-Edgar thought.
-
-‘These fellows are Tanese,’ said Wal. ‘I must try and make them
-understand a few questions.’
-
-He spoke to one of the natives, who was taller than his companions, and
-asked him to come on board the schooner. Without the least hesitation
-the man did so. As he stood on deck, Edgar saw that he was a well-made,
-athletic young fellow. The septum of his nose was pierced, and through
-it was inserted a reed horizontally, but not so as to project beyond
-either nostril. He had tortoiseshell earrings in his ears, about half
-a dozen hanging down on each side, and the weight had enlarged the
-aperture until a child’s hand might have been passed through. He was
-not tattooed, but on his breast a rude device of a fish had been either
-cut or burnt in, and on the upper part of his arms was a leaf done in a
-similar way. He had no clothes on except a matting bag round the loins.
-He had armlets on, and also three large whale’s teeth on three strings
-hanging horizontally on his breast.
-
-‘He’s a chief,’ said Wal. ‘I can tell that by those teeth he has on his
-breast.’
-
-‘He is a formidable-looking savage,’ said Edgar. ‘I should not care to
-have a hit with that club he carries.’
-
-Wal Jessop motioned the chief to sit down, which he did, and was
-presented with a necklace of bright-coloured beads which delighted him
-immensely.
-
-The other natives in the canoes were looking at the schooner with eager
-eyes, evidently with the expectation of getting a few presents.
-
-The chief, whose name was Meri, spoke a few words of English, and
-as Wal Jessop knew a little of the Tana language, they managed to
-understand each other.
-
-Although Edgar could not make out what they were talking about, he knew
-Wal Jessop was questioning him as to the white men who visited the
-island.
-
-‘Psan Aremama,’ said Meri.
-
-‘There is a white man on the island,’ said Wal to Edgar. ‘We must go
-ashore and try and meet him. Meri knows where he is to be found, but he
-avoids the coast.’
-
-‘Strange a white man should be here,’ said Edgar. ‘It may be the very
-man we are in search of.’
-
-‘If it turns out to be Manton, it will be stranger still,’ said Wal.
-
-Meri agreed to take them ashore in his canoe, and to make room for them
-ordered two of the men to jump out and swim back to land.
-
-Wal Jessop asked if there were sharks about, for he saw the natives
-were frightened, but dared not disobey the chief.
-
-Meri laughed, showing his even teeth, and hinted that it would be good
-sport to see a shark or two hunt the natives.
-
-‘Pleasant sort of man to work for,’ said Edgar, when Wal had explained.
-
-The canoe shot away from the side of the schooner. Wal and Edgar had
-their rifles with them and also a number of beads, trinkets, and pieces
-of bright-coloured cloths, with which to propitiate the natives.
-
-As they neared the shore one of the natives who was swimming dived, and
-before he came to the surface the water was dyed with blood.
-
-‘Laumasan! [good],’ chuckled Meri.
-
-The native came to the surface, and they saw he had dived and stabbed a
-shark that had been in pursuit.
-
-‘That was cleverly done,’ said Wal.
-
-‘They must have some pluck,’ said Edgar.
-
-‘Good fighters, many of them,’ said Wal. ‘We must try and get them to
-give us an exhibition of spear-throwing and stone-slinging. It will
-interest you.’
-
-They got out of the canoes and waded through the surf to the beach.
-Here a number of natives, men and women, were gathered. The women were
-fairly well covered with long girdles reaching below the knee. These
-girdles were made of rolled dried fibre of the banana stalk, which was
-soft to touch and very like hemp. They also wore a few ornaments, and
-their hair was shorter than the men’s, standing erect in a forest of
-little curls about an inch long.
-
-The chief conducted them to his hut, which was rudely constructed, but
-large enough to hold half a dozen persons comfortably. This hut was
-built amongst the trees, and there were huts of a smaller size for
-about eight or ten families.
-
-The chief gave them to understand that they must join them at the
-marum, or place of public meeting.
-
-This meeting was held under a banyan tree in a large clear space. All
-the men assembled here at sundown for their evening meal.
-
-A bowl of kava was prepared by chewing the root and ejecting the
-contents of the mouth into a bowl, which was filled up with water,
-then mixed and strained. In addition to the kava, there were raw yams
-served, and cooked food consisting of figs and fowls. The women had
-their meal apart from the men.
-
-Meri repeated a short prayer before the meal, wishing them success in
-their crops and in the battles in which they were often engaged.
-
-Edgar, having seen the kava prepared, did not relish tasting it, but at
-a sign from Wal Jessop, he took the bowl and sipped a little.
-
-‘They would have been greatly offended had you refused it,’ Wal
-explained.
-
-After the meal, which, with the exception of the kava, Edgar relished,
-the men made speeches and danced, flourishing their clubs. It amused
-Edgar to watch the children, of whom the men seemed very fond. The
-copper-skinned little ones imitated their elders with precocious
-dexterity.
-
-It was a curious sight to see these natives holding a marum under the
-huge banyan tree, and as the shades of night quickly fell their figures
-loomed in the light with a peculiarly weird effect as they danced and
-chanted their monotonous song.
-
-Meri sat between Wal Jessop and Edgar, and as the dance proceeded, he
-caught them one by each arm and nodded across the opening. Edgar and
-Wal looked in the direction Meri indicated, and saw a strange figure
-standing looking at the scene.
-
-Edgar sprang to his feet and shouted:
-
-‘The captain or his ghost!’
-
-‘The very image of him,’ said Wal.
-
-The stranger had, however, noted their movements, and, suddenly
-turning, darted back into the shadow of the trees.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVIII. A STRANGE STORY.
-
-
-Wal Jessop hastily explained to Meri that it was their intention to
-go in pursuit of the white man, and the chief said he would accompany
-them. The meeting came to an end, the savages dispersing to their
-various huts.
-
-Meri, beckoning to Wal and Edgar to follow him, led the way across the
-marum into the forest beyond. They were soon in richly-wooded country,
-and found progress difficult. Edgar constantly stumbled over some
-tangled, twisted root that lay hidden in his path; thorns, growing on
-some of the bushes, pricked him and tore his clothes, and Wal Jessop
-was in no better plight. Meri, however, did not appear to mind the
-thorns, but walked on at a rapid pace.
-
-They continued their tramp for some time, but saw nothing of the white
-man who had so quickly and mysteriously disappeared.
-
-When they halted to rest Wal Jessop questioned Meri, and learned that
-the white man had been on the island for some time. He came in a
-trading vessel, and was left behind, either wilfully or through his
-own desire. The natives regarded him with superstition, and thought
-him scarcely human. Meri himself was evidently a believer in the white
-man’s powers over the natives for good or evil.
-
-On resuming their search they came upon a pathway evidently cut in the
-bush, and along this Meri led them.
-
-He halted at the entrance to a small clearing, and here they saw a
-strange sight.
-
-Standing straight up from the ground were several large trunks of
-trees, that had been hollowed out and rudely carved in the shape of
-hideous heads at the top. They appeared to be idols, and Meri regarded
-them with a look of awe.
-
-‘This is a Sing-Sing ground,’ said Wal; ‘I have heard of them before,
-but never seen one. This is where their gods live, and it is regarded
-as a sacred grove. If the white man is here it easily accounts for the
-fear with which he is regarded. No native would remain here alone; in
-fact, they dare not venture except upon special occasions. I’ll ask
-Meri about it.’
-
-Wal questioned the chief, who said he could enter the sacred grove as
-chief of his tribe, and they walked into the clearing. Raising his club
-Meri struck one of the hollow trunks a blow, and it echoed through the
-forest with a sound like a drum.
-
-Edgar looked into the hollow of each tree, but saw nothing. Presently a
-tall figure glided into the grove, and stood still regarding them.
-
-They were at once convinced it was the unfortunate captain of the
-_Distant Shore_ standing before them, but he showed no sign that he
-recognised them.
-
-He was strangely altered from the fine, stalwart seaman they had known
-as Captain Manton of the _Distant Shore_. His figure was gaunt and
-thin, and his arms and hands were mere skin and bone. His hair was
-white, his beard of the same hue, and his eyes looked vacantly from
-under his bushy eyebrows. He wore an old coat, which reached to his
-knees, and his legs and feet were bare. As he advanced slowly towards
-them Meri fell back, but Edgar and Wal stood their ground.
-
-‘Begone!’ said this ghost-like figure of Captain Manton. ‘This is
-no place for you. Begone, and leave me in peace! I harm no one. I am
-quite alone--alone in a world of my own, peopled with the ghosts of the
-drowned!’
-
-Edgar stepped forward, and, looking him straight in the eyes, said:
-
-‘Do you not know me, Captain Manton? I am Edgar Foster. I was saved
-from the wreck with your daughter Eva.’
-
-At the mention of Eva’s name a momentary light of intelligence came
-into the man’s eyes, but it quickly died away, and left them dull and
-vacant.
-
-‘Poor fellow!’ said Edgar sorrowfully; ‘his brain has given way under
-the strain. He must have suffered severely.’
-
-‘Do you think he is mad?’ asked Wal.
-
-‘Not a dangerous form of madness,’ replied Edgar; ‘but I have no doubt
-he is not in his right mind. We must humour him, and question him. He
-has a strange story to relate, if he can be persuaded to tell it, and
-if he remembers all he has gone through.’
-
-Edgar took the unfortunate man by the hand, and persuaded him to sit
-down.
-
-Meri looked on, his curiosity evidently being excited.
-
-Edgar tried as gently and simply as possible to lead the wandering mind
-of the captain back to the wreck of the _Distant Shore_, and found, to
-his delight, that he succeeded in rousing his dormant memory.
-
-Captain Manton began to talk in a strange, monotonous way. He was
-evidently recapitulating what had happened to him after the wreck of
-the _Distant Shore_, and he seemed almost unconscious of anyone being
-present.
-
-From time to time during the course of the strange tale he related
-Edgar refreshed his weak memory.
-
-‘If we can lead him on to tell us everything,’ said Edgar, ‘he may
-recognise us in the end.’
-
-‘I hope so,’ said Wal; ‘it is terrible to see him like this, but it may
-be caused through not having any white men to converse with.’
-
-Captain Manton--for, indeed, it was that unfortunate seaman--commenced
-by telling them, in a somewhat incoherent way, that he was on a big
-ship when it went on to the rocks and crashed to pieces.
-
-‘It was the captain’s fault,’ he said; ‘he ought to have made for a
-harbour; he is responsible for all our deaths.’
-
-‘You were saved,’ said Edgar. ‘You are not dead, and you ought to be
-thankful. It was not the captain’s fault, for he was a brave man, and
-a good seaman. I knew him well, and he was incapable of a cowardly
-action.’
-
-‘I knew him once,’ said Captain Manton, ‘but it must have been a very
-long time ago. He’s dead now, and you say I am alive. Strange how
-little I remember of Manton, for I must have known him well.’
-
-‘You did,’ said Edgar. ‘Have you forgotten? Can you not remember that
-you are Captain Manton, and that I saved your daughter Eva?’
-
-‘Eva,’ said Manton, with a deep sigh, ‘I know the name very well--Eva;
-yes, I once knew little Eva.’
-
-He spoke in such pathetic tones that both Edgar and Wal Jessop were
-affected.
-
-Suddenly Manton began to talk rapidly.
-
-‘I remember now,’ he said; ‘the captain went down with the ship. I was
-tossed about on the rocks--washed on and then off again. A huge wave
-rolled me back into the sea, and I clutched a broken spar. The captain
-clutched that spar, too, but I pushed him off--ah, ah! I pushed him
-off because there was only room for one; but he came up again and sat
-beside me, and I had not strength to push him off again. He did not try
-to push me off. Out to sea we were taken, and then I recollect nothing
-until I awoke on board a small craft, and the captain was not there. He
-must have fallen off the spar, and been drowned. I was starved on the
-boat, for they had very little to eat. When they landed on some island,
-they went away and left me. The natives were kind to me and gave me
-food. I have lived here many years. I do no one any harm, and I want
-to stay here. You will not take me away?’ he said suddenly, turning to
-Edgar and Wal, with an imploring look in his eyes.
-
-Edgar evaded the question, and said:
-
-‘I will tell you what happened on the night the _Distant Shore_ was
-wrecked, and how Wal Jessop here saved me and your daughter Eva.’
-
-‘My daughter Eva!’ said Manton, with a soft smile--‘my daughter Eva!’
-
-He lingered fondly over the name, and Edgar said to Wal:
-
-‘I believe if I relate all that took place he will remember. His
-sufferings have caused loss of memory, that is all.’
-
-‘I hope so,’ said Wal; ‘it is pitiable to find him like this.’
-
-Edgar then told him as briefly as possible all that took place at the
-wreck of the _Distant Shore_. As he described how Wal Jessop found
-himself and Eva on the rocks, and at great risk got them to the top
-of the cliffs, Manton’s eyes brightened, and he listened with intense
-interest.
-
-‘Eva is now a beautiful little girl,’ said Edgar, ‘and she has been
-expecting to see you. We have always told her you would come back to
-her, and I am sure you will do so. You remember me now, do you not?’
-said Edgar; ‘and also your good friend in Sydney, Wal Jessop?’
-
-‘Ay, you’ll remember me, skipper,’ said Wal, in a hearty voice; ‘I’ve
-towed you safely into port many a time. Come, give me a grip of your
-hand, and say you know me.’
-
-Manton looked, first at Edgar, and then at Wal Jessop. He was wrestling
-with the memories of the past that had so long been absent from him.
-Gradually they saw his memory was recovering its power. The mind was
-only clouded, and brighter days would chase the gloom away.
-
-‘My God! can it be true?’ said Manton, as he gazed at them. ‘Am I
-dreaming, or am I mad? Can this be Edgar Foster, and my old mate, Wal
-Jessop? Where am I, and how did I come here?’
-
-He was wrestling with his memory, and gradually drawing it back to
-life. With the return of reason he failed to comprehend what had
-happened to him, and why he was on this wild island in the New Hebrides.
-
-‘True, true, true!’ he murmured; ‘they are indeed my friends!
-
-He grasped their hands, and his frame shook with the intense emotion he
-felt. He was in a very weak state, and the reaction was too much for
-him. The change from darkness to light overpowered him, and he sank
-back in a dead faint.
-
-Meri, when he saw Manton fall back, to all appearance dead, sprang
-forward and brandished his club in a savage manner. He thought Edgar
-and Wal must have practised some witchcraft upon this white man, who
-had been so long amongst them.
-
-Wal Jessop, leaving Manton in Edgar’s care, explained, as well as he
-could, what had happened. Meri looked displeased when Wal said they
-would take Manton away with them, and said evil would fall upon their
-tribe if they allowed him to go.
-
-It was some time before Manton recovered, and when he did so he was
-too weak to walk. Wal Jessop persuaded Meri to return with him to the
-village, and obtain help to carry Manton to the beach.
-
-Edgar remained with the captain, and did all in his power to cheer him.
-He knew it would be some time before they returned, and Manton was not
-in a fit state to be left alone. With the return of his memory he had
-become nervous and excited. For the first time since that fatal night
-when the _Distant Shore_ was wrecked, he began to remember clearly what
-had taken place.
-
-Edgar saw what it was preyed upon his mind, and said:
-
-‘Everyone will be glad to hear you have been saved in such a strange
-and marvellous way. You will be heartily welcomed in Sydney when we
-return; and think of little Eva waiting and watching for you.’
-
-‘The ship was lost,’ said Manton in a hollow voice, ‘and I am
-responsible. Did all on board perish with the exception of three?’
-
-‘Yes,’ said Edgar; ‘but you were not to blame. Everyone praised your
-conduct, for I told them how you stood by your ship, and went down with
-her. Nothing could have saved her. You did all that man could do.’
-
-‘And my poor wife?’ he moaned.
-
-Edgar was silent. He knew words would avail nothing.
-
-‘How did you find me?’ asked Manton.
-
-Edgar related how his father received a letter, and his own
-determination to set out in quest of him in order to ascertain the
-truth.
-
-‘And you did this for my sake?’ said Manton.
-
-‘I must not take too much credit for that,’ said Edgar. ‘A love of
-adventure prompted me, and, although I hardly credited your being
-alive, yet I knew it was not impossible.’
-
-‘And where am I, and how long have I been here?’ asked Manton
-wonderingly.
-
-‘You are on the island of Tana, in the New Hebrides,’ said Edgar. ‘You
-were no doubt picked up by a schooner on its way to the South Seas from
-Sydney.’
-
-‘It is all very strange,’ said Manton. ‘I must have been near to death
-when I was rescued from the sea.’
-
-‘Your sufferings were so great that your mind became deranged,’ said
-Edgar. ‘With complete rest, and amongst your friends, you will speedily
-recover.’
-
-Manton shook his head despondingly. He was in a melancholy mood, and
-his mind was not quite balanced. As Edgar looked at him his heart was
-full of pity for him, and he fervently hoped it would not be many weeks
-before Captain Manton was fully recovered both in mind and body.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIX. WARLIKE SPORTS.
-
-
-When Meri and Wal Jessop reached the village the chief explained to
-his followers how the white men had recognised their friend, and the
-natives were excited at such an unlooked-for occurrence. A stretcher
-was quickly made of long poles and matting, and, accompanied by four
-stalwart natives, Wal Jessop and Meri returned to the Sing-Sing ground
-where they had left Edgar and Captain Manton. They carefully carried
-Manton to the village, and Wal Jessop went out to the schooner to
-obtain drugs from the medicine chest.
-
-In the course of a few days Captain Manton was much better, and eager
-to be gone from the island. The chief and the natives, however,
-seemed loath to part with him, and Edgar thought there might be some
-trouble in getting him away. To make matters easier they presented
-Meri and most of the natives--men, women, and children--with gifts of
-beads, cloth, and small ornaments. It amused them to watch the women
-adorning their persons with bright red and yellow cloths, and they were
-particularly delighted some with the strings of bright-coloured beads.
-
-Edgar noticed the natives, even when going to walk in the plantations,
-were armed, and Meri said they were always at war with one or more of
-the neighbouring tribes. Even the women and children were armed, and
-it was surprising with what accuracy of aim the smallest lads could
-shoot their arrows. These natives were all fond of sports, and spent
-the greater part of their time practising with the various weapons they
-used.
-
-Meri, at Edgar’s request, ordered some native sports to take place;
-and the men, nothing loath, prepared for them in a very short time.
-Wal Jessop promised the most successful should have prizes given them,
-selected from the stock of trade goods on board the schooner.
-
-Spear-throwing was first undertaken, and the natives aimed with
-wonderful skill, far better than the Enooma blacks. They hurled their
-spears with terrific force, and often buried them six inches deep in
-the trunk of a tree the wood of which was almost as hard as iron.
-Smooth stones were piled up on the beach, and the natives, using
-slings, whirled them out to sea for such a long distance that the
-splash made when they fell could hardly be seen. Club-swinging they
-were clever at, and an attack with clubs, warded off by wooden shields,
-made Edgar fearful for the result, so furious and excited did the
-combatants become.
-
-The boys and girls, all naked, ran races on the clear white sand, and
-swam out to sea in the most daring manner. One lad, a son of the chief,
-shot his arrow through Meri’s fingers as he spread the back of his hand
-out wide against a tree. The girls were quite as active as the boys,
-and ran as fast, and swam as well. These youngsters had very little
-fear in them, and even a shark near the shore did not frighten them,
-for the lads would swim out with spears in their hands and attack the
-monsters.
-
-The canoe-races caused much excitement, and the chief, Meri, paddled
-dexterously--in fact, he was superior to the others in most of the
-sports.
-
-Edgar was much interested in watching the natives build a canoe. A
-tree was felled, and the branches cut off. Then, for a common fishing
-canoe, the log was hollowed out about fifteen feet long, and a rough
-canoe was soon formed. The better-built canoes were made of separate
-planks raised from the keel, and laid on in pieces from twenty-five to
-fifty feet long. Gum of the bread-fruit tree was used instead of pitch,
-and smeared over to make them water-tight. The inside and outside were
-smoothed, and when finished the canoe looked a creditable craft.
-
-Although Edgar enjoyed the experiences he was going through at Tana, he
-was anxious to get away now Captain Manton had been discovered; but the
-chief always made some excuse for detaining them, and Wal Jessop said
-it would be safer to obtain his permission to leave. Captain Manton was
-also in a hurry to depart, and once more get to sea. Wal Jessop gave
-Meri to understand that it was necessary for them to leave, and the
-chief said he would consider the matter.
-
-A meeting was held under the banyan tree in the marum, and the three
-friends looked on, much interested in the proceedings.
-
-Wal Jessop gathered that there was considerable opposition to Captain
-Manton’s departure, and that the chief did not care to resist the will
-of the natives. When the meeting was over, Meri said his people were
-not willing that Captain Manton should go with Edgar and Wal.
-
-To this Wal Jessop made no reply, but after consulting Edgar and
-Captain Manton, it was arranged they should make a bolt for it at
-night, seize one of the canoes, and row back to the schooner.
-
-Wal Jessop went to the schooner to give instructions for all to be
-ready for sailing immediately they were on board.
-
-Towards evening, when the natives were returning from the plantation,
-there was a great row amongst them. They came forward shouting,
-dancing, and gesticulating, and in their midst was a poor wretched
-native, almost ready to drop with fright. Meri’s men had kidnapped this
-man, who belonged to another tribe, and he knew, poor wretch! the fate
-in store for him.
-
-‘What will they do with that poor beggar?’ said Edgar.
-
-‘Eat him probably,’ said Wal Jessop with a shudder. ‘The natives here
-are cannibals.’
-
-‘Horrible!’ said Edgar. ‘Can we do nothing to prevent it?’
-
-‘I am afraid not,’ said Wal. ‘I will remonstrate with the chief, but it
-will be all to no purpose. All we can do is to take advantage of their
-absence when the poor wretch is killed, and make for the schooner.’
-
-‘Speak to Meri,’ said Edgar. ‘We ought to stop it if we can.’
-
-Wal Jessop went to the chief, who acknowledged it was the custom to
-kill and eat prisoners of another tribe. Wal then tried to buy the
-wretch off, but the chief was firm. He could not interfere with the
-custom of the tribe.
-
-That night a large fire was lighted in the marum, and they could see
-the flames flashing in the darkness.
-
-They shuddered as they thought of what was about to take place; but as
-they were powerless to interfere they determined to steal away to the
-schooner.
-
-Cautiously they went down to the beach and secured a canoe. Captain
-Manton sat in the bow, where there was a seat for the chief, and Wal
-and Edgar paddled.
-
-Before they were half-way to the schooner the natives saw them, and,
-uttering loud cries, ran down to the beach. A large canoe was quickly
-launched, Meri took his place in the bow, and the pursuit commenced.
-
-‘They will overhaul us before we reach the schooner,’ said Wal. ‘Our
-only plan is to frighten them. We have our rifles. You must send a
-bullet or two in their direction, Edgar. Do not harm anyone if you can
-help it, but strike the canoe somewhere near the chief. It will give
-him a shock, and may hinder the pursuit.’
-
-The natives were fast nearing them, their canoe skimming along the
-water with wonderful swiftness. Meri stood up in the bow, spear in
-hand, and signalled them to stop. His dark figure was plainly seen in
-the moonlight which covered the sea with a soft, silvery glow.
-
-Edgar put down his paddle and took up his rifle, which he levelled at
-the chief.
-
-Meri saw him, but did not flinch. He turned to his men and urged them
-on.
-
-Edgar took aim and fired at the bow of the canoe. It was a lucky shot,
-for just as he fired the bow of the canoe rose slightly, and the bullet
-splintered the wood under Meri’s feet.
-
-This caused the chief to spring backwards, and in so doing he stumbled
-and fell into the water. The natives at once ceased rowing, and
-assisted him to get into the canoe.
-
-Edgar, as soon as he had fired the shot, put down the rifle and grasped
-the paddle. They gained on the canoe again, and reached the schooner
-before the natives. Captain Manton was assisted into the schooner, and
-Edgar and Wal quickly followed, taking good care to throw their rifles
-to the men on deck.
-
-Everything was ready for sailing immediately, but before the schooner
-could get under way the canoe, full of natives, was alongside.
-
-Meri was about to spring on the schooner when Edgar levelled his rifle
-at him, and Wal Jessop shouted:
-
-‘Get back, or we shall fire. We want to leave peaceably. Go back to
-your island. You have had many presents from us.’
-
-The chief said they wanted their white man back, and meant to have him.
-
-‘Then you must look out for a row,’ said Wal.
-
-The schooner was now under sail, and although there was but little
-breeze, she made headway. Seeing the schooner gliding away, the chief
-gave some order to his men, who stood up and hurled their spears at
-those on deck.
-
-‘Lie flat down,’ shouted Wal, who saw their intention; and they all
-fell on the deck. The spears whistled harmlessly over them, one or two
-striking the mast.
-
-‘Give me the gun; I’ll give them a dose of shot for that,’ said Edgar.
-
-Wal Jessop handed him a gun, and Edgar fired it at the canoe. The shot
-told, and one or two of the natives were hit, but not severely. This
-had the desired effect, and, seeing pursuit was both hopeless and
-dangerous, the chief ordered them to paddle back to the island.
-
-The travellers were all glad to get safely away from Tana, and decided
-to sail direct to Sydney, as there was an ample supply of food on
-board. Captain Manton seemed to recover every day at sea, and both
-Edgar and Wal Jessop did all in their power to cheer him and make him
-forget what he had suffered.
-
-The voyage back to Sydney was uneventful, and the little schooner
-entered the Heads sooner than was expected, and cast anchor in Watson’s
-Bay.
-
-Captain Manton, as they neared the Heads, had looked long at the fatal
-rocks where the _Distant Shore_ went to pieces, and the tears stood in
-his eyes as he thought of that awful night.
-
-When they were in the smooth waters of the harbour, and snugly at
-anchor in Watson’s Bay, his spirits revived at the prospect of meeting
-his daughter again.
-
-He wondered if she would know him, for he was much altered, and she was
-a little child when last he saw her on that fatal night.
-
-‘I am sure she will recognise you,’ said Edgar; ‘you look much more
-like your old self now. When we found you at Tana you were a different
-man.’
-
-They landed at the jetty, and walked up to Wal Jessop’s cottage.
-
-‘We shall give them a surprise,’ said Edgar.
-
-‘A pleasant one,’ said Wal.
-
-Captain Manton’s heart beat fast as he walked up the familiar road, and
-hastened to meet the daughter he had thought he would never see again.
-
-‘Perhaps it will be better for me to go on first,’ said Wal, ‘and
-prepare her. The sudden joy may be too much for Eva.’
-
-They agreed, and Wal walked on. He reached the cottage door, and
-knocked. His wife opened it, and gave a cry of joy as she saw him.
-After a hearty embrace, she said anxiously:
-
-‘Where is Edgar? Is he well?’
-
-‘Never better,’ said Wal. ‘Where’s Eva?’
-
-Eva heard them talking, and came running into the room. She rushed into
-Wal’s outstretched arms, and he kissed her tenderly.
-
-‘Edgar has come back,’ said Wal, ‘and someone else--someone you love
-best in all the world.’
-
-‘Daddy?’ said Eva excitedly.
-
-‘Yes,’ said Wal, looking from her to his wife; ‘daddy has come back.’
-
-He heard footsteps outside, and said:
-
-‘And here he is, with Edgar.’
-
-Captain Manton came into the room. Eva looked at him for a few moments,
-evidently in doubt.
-
-‘Eva, my child, my little one, don’t you know me? Come to my arms, my
-pet; come to daddy again.’
-
-‘It is my daddy!’ said Eva, with a joyful cry, as she flew to
-him. ‘Eddy said he would come back. I shall never let him go away
-again--never, never, never!’
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXX. GOOD-BYE TO AUSTRALIA.
-
-
-How Captain Manton came to Sydney, and how he received a welcome of
-the heartiest description on all sides, is well known throughout the
-colony. His marvellous escape and subsequent adventures, and the
-strange discovery of him at Tana by Edgar Foster and Wal Jessop, have
-been related over and over again. His examination by the Marine Board
-was thoroughly satisfactory, and Captain Fife said no man could have
-done more than Captain Manton to save his ship.
-
-The tall, commanding form of Captain Manton, and the pretty child
-accompanying him wherever he went, soon became familiar figures in the
-parks of Sydney. The big, stalwart seaman was wrapped up in his child,
-and his intense love for her was shown in every word and action.
-
-They sat together for hours on the grassy slopes of the Botanical
-Gardens overlooking the harbour, and watched the big steamers pass to
-and fro, and the sailing vessels towed out from their snug berths to
-face the perils of an ocean voyage to some far-distant land. Those were
-halcyon days for little Eva Manton, and she often thought of them in
-after years, when the business of life had commenced for her in real
-earnest.
-
-Leaving Captain Manton to rejoice in his new-found happiness, Edgar
-Foster took a trip out West to Yanda, in order to bid good-bye to his
-friends before finally departing for England.
-
-They were all very pleased to see him at Yanda, and Ben Brody could
-not refrain from relating wonderful and improbable yarns about his
-experiences with Edgar in London.
-
-‘It’s grown into a mighty big place,’ said Ben. ‘You fellows have no
-idea what London is like. Bless me if the people are not thicker on the
-pavements than sheep in a catching pen!’
-
-‘What’s the mutton like over there?’ asked Jim Lee solemnly.
-
-‘Nearly as juicy as it is here,’ said Ben, with a wink, and a smack of
-the lips that betokened fond remembrances of sundry succulent London
-chops.
-
-Yacka made quite a scene when he discovered that Edgar had returned. He
-summoned all the blacks in the neighbourhood, and a great corroboree
-took place in his honour.
-
-To Edgar’s inquiries Yacka said he had resolved never to return to
-the country of the Enooma, or to the cave of the White Spirit, now no
-longer there.
-
-Yacka was contented to live and die at Yanda, where Ben Brody and the
-hands were kind to him, and where he could idle away most of his time,
-and spend a savage life such as the blackfellow loves.
-
-‘Would you not like to become civilized,’ asked Edgar, ‘and cultivate
-the ways of the white man?’
-
-‘No,’ said Yacka; ‘to be civilized means rum and ruin. Yacka loves his
-freedom, and wants no civilization.’
-
-It was in vain Edgar endeavoured to induce Yacka to leave Yanda, and
-go to Sydney with him. The black was firm in his resolve never to quit
-Yanda again, and many years after Edgar learned that Yacka died at the
-station, and was much regretted, not only by the blacks, but also by
-the hands.
-
-Before Edgar left Sydney he was entertained by the cricketers of the
-city at a banquet, and the speeches made on that memorable occasion
-were treasured by him. They were not mere after-dinner displays, but
-real, genuine words spoken from the heart, and Edgar accepted them as
-such.
-
-Edgar made many attempts to induce Captain Manton to return to England
-with him.
-
-The captain, however, was firm in his determination not to leave Sydney.
-
-‘I want to end my days here in peace,’ he said to Edgar; ‘I have only
-Eva to live for, and I feel we shall be happy here with our good
-friends the Jessops. You will tell your father how much I thank him for
-all his kindness to me and mine.’
-
-‘I am sorry you have decided to remain here,’ said Edgar; ‘we should
-all be so pleased to welcome you home.’
-
-‘I feel I must remain, my lad,’ said Captain Manton. ‘I want to be near
-the place where I lost my wife and my ship, and all the poor souls who
-went down with her. God knows I did my best to save them, but it was
-not to be. I feel it to be my duty to stay here--a duty I owe to the
-dead who lie buried fathoms deep off this spot. At Watson’s Bay I hope
-to end my days, and I am thankful Eva has been restored to me to keep
-me from being lonely in my declining years.’
-
-Wal Jessop became more reconciled to parting with Edgar Foster when
-he heard that Captain Manton had decided to remain and take a small
-cottage at Watson’s Bay.
-
-‘I should have been lost without one of you,’ he said, ‘and I don’t
-know what the wife would have done without Eva. She loves that bairn as
-much as if she were her own.’
-
-The day that Edgar sailed for home Captain Manton and Eva stood on
-the cliffs at Watson’s Bay, and watched the great steamer pass slowly
-through the Heads. They waved their handkerchiefs, and Captain Manton,
-looking through his glasses, spied Edgar leaning over the rails of the
-upper-deck also waving a farewell.
-
-As he saw those two figures on the cliffs, Edgar Foster felt a sadness
-creep over him at the thought that he might never see them again. He
-watched them as the steamer ploughed its way south, until they were
-mere specks against the sky-line.
-
-As for Captain Manton and Eva, they stood there until the steamer had
-disappeared, and only a faint line of smoke denoted where she had sunk
-below the horizon. Then the captain took Eva by the hand, and led her
-gently down the rough, steep, pathway to Wal Jessop’s cottage. He did
-not feel lonely, for he had his child to comfort him, and he knew the
-remainder of his life would be quiet, uneventful, and peaceful. He had
-determined to devote his life to his child, and to try and teach her
-how to be a brave, good woman.
-
-Mrs. Jessop had been a mother to Eva, and she felt it would be hard to
-part with her.
-
-‘Try and persuade Captain Manton to stay with us,’ she said to Wal. ‘We
-have room for him, and then I shall not lose Eva.’
-
-Wal Jessop broached the subject to Captain Manton, who was easily
-persuaded to fall in with Mrs. Jessop’s wishes.
-
-‘It will be better for Eva,’ he said, ‘for your wife has taken her
-mother’s place. I shall not want much attention. We old sailors are
-accustomed to looking after ourselves and taking things easily, eh,
-Wal?’
-
-‘I guess we are,’ replied Wal; ‘I’m right glad you have decided to stay
-with us, skipper. I believe the wife would have broken her heart if you
-had taken Eva away from her.’
-
-So Captain Manton and Eva remained at Wal Jessop’s cottage, and a happy
-united family they were.
-
-Leaving Captain Manton and the Jessops, we must now return to Edgar
-Foster, who, after a safe passage home, was once more at his father’s
-house at Elm Lodge.
-
-He related how Captain Manton was found, and excited interest by
-displaying a number of curiosities he had secured in the South Seas.
-
-‘I wish Manton had come home with you,’ said his father; ‘I wanted to
-see him again.’
-
-‘After all, I think he decided rightly to remain in Sydney,’ said
-Edgar. ‘Eva was much attached to Mrs. Jessop, and Wal will be a good
-companion for the captain.’
-
-Naturally, Edgar had not been home long before he paid a visit to the
-Wyldes, and he found Muriel looking more charming than ever. After
-several years of travel, Edgar felt it was high time he settled down
-and devoted himself to business seriously. He knew his father was
-moderately well off, but he was determined to get his own living, and
-not rely upon him. He did not know that Mrs. Wylde was a wealthy woman,
-or he would perhaps have felt some diffidence in proposing to Muriel.
-
-Will Brown and Doris Foster were married soon after Edgar’s return, and
-resided in a comfortable house at Putney.
-
-When Edgar had been at home some time, the secretary of the M----
-Cricket Club died, and Robert Foster thought it would be a good place
-for his son. The salary was excellent, and the work such as Edgar
-liked, and knew a good deal about.
-
-At a meeting of the club Edgar’s name came up, and the committee
-decided in his favour, at the same time suggesting that he should play
-when required. This suited Edgar’s plans admirably, and it was somewhat
-of a novelty to see the secretary of such a club taking a prominent
-position in the cricket-field.
-
-Feeling his position secure, and having now an ample income for his
-wants, Edgar asked Muriel Wylde to marry him at an early date, and she
-consented. The wedding took place at Twickenham Church, and never had
-the sun shone on a prettier bride, or a more manly-looking bridegroom.
-
-Prosperity dogged Edgar’s footsteps, for he invested a considerable sum
-in mines in West Australia, and being well advised, his speculation
-proved successful. As the years rolled on he became a devoted husband
-and father, and he taught his sons to be honest and manly, and to earn
-for themselves a good name as lads of mettle.
-
-In the cricket-field Edgar constantly distinguished himself, and many a
-century was recorded to his credit. Through his management the club of
-which he was secretary advanced by leaps and bounds, until financially
-it stood far above the average run of clubs, and in the cricket-field
-had twice held the honours at the close of the season.
-
-News from Sydney came frequently, and kept Edgar in touch with the
-world over the water, for which he had a great affection.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Many years after Edgar Foster left Sydney for the last time an old
-man and a lovely girl were sitting on the cliffs at Watson’s Bay.
-Below them the vast expanse of sea lay calm and still. Hardly a ripple
-stirred the placid surface of the water, as it gently lapped over the
-smooth worn slabs of rock at the base of the cliffs. A faint breeze
-fanned the faces of the old man and the beautiful girl, and waved his
-white beard gently, and caressingly lingered amidst her silken hair. It
-was easy to see they were father and daughter, for she resembled him
-very much.
-
-They both looked out to sea, and watched the boats sailing slowly in
-the calm water. Scores of yachts and small boats had ventured outside
-the Heads on this calm day.
-
-It was Sunday, and there were many people from Sydney enjoying the cool
-breeze on the cliffs. Several of them looked at the gray-bearded man
-and his lovely daughter, and there was respect in their glances, for
-they knew the history of this inseparable pair.
-
-Eva Manton had developed into a lovely girl. The promise of childhood
-had been fulfilled in womanhood--for woman she was, although her father
-always called her ‘my little girl.’
-
-Captain Manton was ageing rapidly, but still looked to have many years
-of life before him. With sturdy Wal Jessop and his wife he passed life
-comfortably, and lived for his daughter, who amply repaid the affection
-he bestowed upon her.
-
-Eva Manton had her admirers as other girls have, but she kept them at
-arm’s length. She meant to be her father’s companion while he lived,
-and thought it no sacrifice upon her part to remain with him.
-
-Now she could understand all about that terrible wreck, and how Wal
-Jessop’s sturdy arms had rescued Edgar Foster and herself from the
-rocks below where they stood.
-
-She often sat there looking down into the depths, and thought how Edgar
-Foster had at the risk of his own life saved hers. Then she would think
-of the peril her father had passed through, and of his wonderful rescue
-and discovery on the island by Wal Jessop and Edgar. She felt it was
-good to be alive after such trials and sufferings, and she was thankful
-for her existence.
-
-‘A letter from Edgar,’ said Wal Jessop one morning as they all sat in
-the cottage.
-
-This was an important event, and one always eagerly looked forward to.
-Edgar’s letters gave them all pleasure, they were so bright and cheery,
-and full of good news and good wishes.
-
-Wal Jessop read it, and, as usual, had to repeat the operation.
-
-‘That’s what I call a manly letter,’ said Captain Manton.
-
-‘He was always a straight goer,’ said Wal Jessop. ‘As a lad he was a
-manly youngster.’
-
-‘He was brave,’ said Eva, ‘and full of courage. He risked his life for
-mine.’
-
-‘And for that I am ever grateful,’ said her father.
-
-‘I wish him well,’ said Wal, ‘for he deserves to be happy. I always
-thought him a lad of mettle.’
-
-
-
-BILLING AND SONS, PRINTERS, GUILDFORD.
-
-
-
-
- * * * * *
-
-
-
-
-Transcriber’s note:
-
-This book was published in 1897.
-
-Some cricketers in the book have the same names as well-known
-cricketers of the time period.
-
-The original hard copy version of this book has advertisements at
-the end, some of which are now illegible due to wear, and these
-advertisements are not included in this version.
-
-Punctuation has been made consistent.
-
-Variations in spelling and hyphenation were retained as they appear in
-the original publication, except that obvious typographical errors have
-been corrected.
-
-The following change was made:
-
-p. 187: MacDonald changed to MacDonnell (the MacDonnell Ranges)
-
-
-
-***END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A LAD OF METTLE***
-
-
-******* This file should be named 66030-0.txt or 66030-0.zip *******
-
-
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
-http://www.gutenberg.org/dirs/6/6/0/3/66030
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
diff --git a/old/66030-0.zip b/old/66030-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index f062ee6..0000000
--- a/old/66030-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66030-h.zip b/old/66030-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 05223b0..0000000
--- a/old/66030-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66030-h/66030-h.htm b/old/66030-h/66030-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index 2c17512..0000000
--- a/old/66030-h/66030-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,11298 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml">
-<head>
-<meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html; charset=UTF-8" />
-<title>The Project Gutenberg eBook of A Lad of Mettle, by Nat Gould</title>
- <style type="text/css">
-
-body {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
- h1,h2 {
- text-align: center; /* all headings centered */
- clear: both;
-}
-
-p {
- margin-top: .51em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: .49em;
-}
-
-.p2 {margin-top: 2em;}
-.p4 {margin-top: 4em;}
-
-hr {
- width: 33%;
- margin-top: 2em;
- margin-bottom: 2em;
- margin-left: 33.5%;
- margin-right: 33.5%;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-hr.tb {width: 45%; margin-left: 27.5%; margin-right: 27.5%;}
-hr.chap {width: 65%; margin-left: 17.5%; margin-right: 17.5%;}
-@media print { hr.chap {display: none; visibility: hidden;} }
-
-div.chapter {page-break-before: always;}
-.nobreak {page-break-before: avoid;}
-
-table {
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;
-}
-
-/*Table of Contents format*/
-table.toc { max-width: 30em;}
-td.tocchapter{ text-align: right; vertical-align: top; padding-right: 1em;}
-td.toctitle { text-align: left; vertical-align: top; text-indent: -1.3em; padding-left: 1.3em;}
-td.tocpage { text-align: right; vertical-align: bottom; padding-left: 1em;}
-
-.pagenum { /* uncomment the next line for invisible page numbers */
- /* visibility: hidden; */
- position: absolute;
- left: 92%;
- font-size: smaller;
- text-align: right;
- font-style: normal;
- font-weight: normal;
- font-variant: normal;
-} /* page numbers */
-
-.boxit{
- max-width: 19em;
- padding: 1em;
- border: 0.15em solid black;
- margin: 0 auto; }
-
-.center {text-align: center;}
-
-.smcap {font-variant: small-caps;}
-
-/* Images */
-
-img {
- max-width: 100%;
- height: auto;
-}
-img.w100 {width: 100%;}
-
-
-.figcenter {
- margin: auto;
- text-align: center;
- page-break-inside: avoid;
- max-width: 100%;
-}
-
-/* Poetry */
-.poetry-container {text-align: center;}
-
-.poetry{
- display: inline-block;
- text-align: left;
-}
-
-/* large inline blocks don't split well on paged devices */
-
-@media print{
- .poetry{
- display: block;
- margin-left: 1.5em;
- }
-}
-
-.x-ebookmaker .poetry{
- display: block;
- margin-left: 1.5em;
-}
-
-.poetry .stanza {margin: 1em auto;}
-
-.poetry .indent0 {text-indent: -3em; padding-left: 3em;}
-.poetry .indentquote0 {text-indent: -3.35em; padding-left: 3em;}
-/* End poetry*/
-
-/* Transcriber's notes */
-.transnote {background-color: #E6E6FA;
- color: black;
- font-size:smaller;
- padding:0.5em;
- margin-bottom:5em;
- font-family:sans-serif, serif; }
-
-/*CSS to set font sizes*/
-/*font sizes for non-header font changes*/
-.xxlargefont{font-size: xx-large}
-.largefont{font-size: large}
-.smallfont{font-size: small}
-.cheaderfont{font-size:medium}
-.italicfont{font-style:italic}
-
-/*Half-title page CSS*/
-#half-title{
- page-break-before: always;
- page-break-after: always;
- text-align: center;
- font-size: x-large;
- padding: 6em 0;
-}
-.illowp51 {width: 51%;}
-.x-ebookmaker .illowp51 {width: 100%;}
-
-
- h1.pgx { text-align: center;
- clear: both;
- font-weight: bold;
- font-size: 190%;
- margin-top: 0em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- word-spacing: 0em;
- letter-spacing: 0em;
- line-height: 1; }
- h2.pgx { text-align: center;
- clear: both;
- font-weight: bold;
- font-size: 135%;
- margin-top: 2em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- word-spacing: 0em;
- letter-spacing: 0em;
- page-break-before: avoid;
- line-height: 1; }
- h3.pgx { text-align: center;
- clear: both;
- font-weight: bold;
- font-size: 110%;
- margin-top: 2em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- word-spacing: 0em;
- letter-spacing: 0em;
- line-height: 1; }
- h4.pgx { text-align: center;
- clear: both;
- font-weight: bold;
- font-size: 100%;
- margin-top: 2em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- word-spacing: 0em;
- letter-spacing: 0em;
- line-height: 1; }
- hr.pgx { width: 100%;
- margin-top: 3em;
- margin-bottom: 0em;
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;
- height: 4px;
- border-width: 4px 0 0 0; /* remove all borders except the top one */
- border-style: solid;
- border-color: #000000;
- clear: both; }
- </style>
-</head>
-<body>
-<h1 class="pgx" title="">The Project Gutenberg eBook, A Lad of Mettle, by Nat Gould</h1>
-<p>This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States
-and most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
-restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
-under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
-eBook or online at <a
-href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you are not
-located in the United States, you'll have to check the laws of the
-country where you are located before using this ebook.</p>
-<p>Title: A Lad of Mettle</p>
-<p>Author: Nat Gould</p>
-<p>Release Date: August 10, 2021 [eBook #66030]</p>
-<p>Language: English</p>
-<p>Character set encoding: UTF-8</p>
-<p>***START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A LAD OF METTLE***</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<h4 class="pgx" title="">E-text prepared by Demian Katz, Craig Kirkwood,<br />
- and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team<br />
- (https://www.pgdp.net)<br />
- from page images generously made available by<br />
- Villanova University Digital Library<br />
- (https://digital.library.villanova.edu/)</h4>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<table border="0" style="background-color: #ccccff;margin: 0 auto;" cellpadding="10">
- <tr>
- <td valign="top">
- Note:
- </td>
- <td>
- Images of the original pages are available through
- Villanova University Digital Library. See
- https://digital.library.villanova.edu/Item/vudl:279070
- </td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<hr class="pgx" />
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp51" style="max-width: 43.125em;">
- <img id="coverpage" class="w100" src="images/cover.jpg" alt="Cover." />
-</div>
-
-<p id="half-title">A LAD OF METTLE</p>
-
-<div class="boxit">
-<p class="largefont center">NAT GOULD’S SPORTING NOVELS</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Crown 8vo., Picture Boards.</em></p>
-
-<p>
-THE DOUBLE EVENT<br />
-RUNNING IT OFF<br />
-JOCKEY JACK<br />
-HARRY DALE’S JOCKEY<br />
-BANKER AND BROKER<br />
-THROWN AWAY<br />
-STUCK UP<br />
-ONLY A COMMONER<br />
-THE MINERS’ CUP<br />
-THE MAGPIE JACKET<br />
-WHO DID IT?<br />
-HORSE OR BLACKSMITH?<br />
-NOT SO BAD AFTER ALL<br />
-SEEING HIM THROUGH
-</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Also, uniform with the above</em>,</p>
-
-<p>
-ON AND OFF THE TURF IN AUSTRALIA<br />
-TOWN AND BUSH<br />
-THE DOCTOR’S DOUBLE<br />
-A LAD OF METTLE
-</p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h1 class="nobreak">A LAD OF METTLE</h1>
-</div>
-
-
-<p class="center p4" style="line-height:1.5"><span class="smallfont">BY</span><br />
-<span class="largefont">NAT GOULD</span></p>
-
-<p class="center smallfont">AUTHOR OF ‘THE DOUBLE EVENT,’ ETC.</p>
-
-<p class="center p4" style="line-height:1.5">LONDON<br />
-GEORGE ROUTLEDGE AND SONS, <span class="smcap">Limited</span><br />
-<span class="smcap">Broadway, Ludgate Hill</span>
-</p>
-
-<hr class="tb x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p class="center" style="line-height:2"><span class="italicfont">To</span><br />
-MY SONS.</p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak">CONTENTS</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<div class="center">
-<table class="toc" border="0" cellpadding="1" cellspacing="0" summary="Contents">
-<tr><td class="tocchapter"><span class="smallfont">CHAPTER</span></td><td></td><td class="tocpage"><span class="smallfont">PAGE</span></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">I.</td><td class="toctitle">BULLY RAKES TAKEN DOWN</td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_I">9</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">II.</td><td class="toctitle">IN THE CRICKET-FIELD</td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_II">19</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">III.</td><td class="toctitle">A CRITICAL MOMENT</td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_III">28</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">IV.</td><td class="toctitle">LEAVING SCHOOL</td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_IV">38</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">V.</td><td class="toctitle">A FURIOUS STORM</td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_V">46</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">VI.</td><td class="toctitle">THE ‘DISTANT SHORE’</td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_VI">55</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">VII.</td><td class="toctitle">WHAT THE MORNING BROUGHT FORTH</td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_VII">64</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">VIII.</td><td class="toctitle">IN WAL JESSOP’S COTTAGE</td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_VIII">74</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">IX.</td><td class="toctitle">UP COUNTRY</td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_IX">83</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">X.</td><td class="toctitle">A WILD SCENE</td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_X">92</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XI.</td><td class="toctitle">YACKA THE BLACK</td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XI">101</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XII.</td><td class="toctitle">IN SEARCH OF ADVENTURES</td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XII">110</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XIII.</td><td class="toctitle">BY THE LAGOON</td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIII">119</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XIV.</td><td class="toctitle">ON THE OVERLAND LINE</td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIV">129</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XV.</td><td class="toctitle">THROUGH THE RANGES</td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XV">139</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XVI.</td><td class="toctitle">AFTER THE FIGHT</td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XVI">148</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XVII.</td><td class="toctitle">WONDROUS CAVERNS</td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XVII">158</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XVIII.</td><td class="toctitle">THE WHITE SPIRIT</td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XVIII">167</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XIX.</td><td class="toctitle">THE FORCES OF NATURE</td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIX">176</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XX.</td><td class="toctitle">THE RETURN TO YANDA</td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XX">186</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XXI.</td><td class="toctitle">AN EXCITING CHASE</td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXI">195</a><span class="pagenum">[viii]</span></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XXII.</td><td class="toctitle">TIME FLIES</td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXII">204</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XXIII.</td><td class="toctitle">AN EVENTFUL NIGHT</td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXIII">214</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XXIV.</td><td class="toctitle">HOME AGAIN</td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXIV">223</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XXV.</td><td class="toctitle">THE SCENE AT LORD’S</td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXV">232</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XXVI.</td><td class="toctitle">AN UPHILL GAME</td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXVI">241</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XXVII.</td><td class="toctitle">THE CAPTAIN OR HIS GHOST</td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXVII">250</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XXVIII.</td><td class="toctitle">A STRANGE STORY</td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXVIII">259</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XXIX.</td><td class="toctitle">WARLIKE SPORTS</td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXIX">269</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XXX.</td><td class="toctitle">GOOD-BYE TO AUSTRALIA</td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXX">278</a></td></tr>
-</table></div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p class="center xxlargefont nobreak" style="margin-bottom:1em" id="CHAPTER_I">A LAD OF METTLE</p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER I.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">BULLY RAKES TAKEN DOWN.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Lessons were over for the day, and the boys at
-Redbank School came running with shouts and
-whoops of joy into the playing-fields. They were
-like young colts freed from restraint for a few hours,
-and eager to make the most of their liberty.</p>
-
-<p>Redbank was the home of brilliant cricketers and
-all-round athletes. Many a noted cricketer had
-received his first lessons in the great game on Redbank
-cricket ground. The lads were proud of the
-men who played in the All England eleven, and who
-were never slow to acknowledge that to Redbank
-they owed what prowess they possessed.</p>
-
-<p>The Redbank lads were born runners, so many an
-old hand training them for races vowed. Something
-in the atmosphere of Redbank seemed to make the
-lads athletic. Perhaps the traditions attached to the<span class="pagenum">[10]</span>
-school had much to do with this, for lads are very
-proud, and justly so, of the feats of scholars who have
-preceded them.</p>
-
-<p>But Redbank was not merely a training ground for
-famous athletes. Redbank scholars had taken high
-honours at the Universities, and afterwards distinguished
-themselves in various walks of life. The
-Bishop of Flaxham was proud of the fact that he was
-‘grounded’ at Redbank. He was an eloquent and
-distinguished man, an ornament to the Church, and
-a brilliant writer of readable books.</p>
-
-<p>When the Bishop of Flaxham came to Redbank,
-and preached in the chapel, the lads with difficulty
-restrained themselves from giving him a hearty cheer
-at the end of his address. The Bishop knew how to
-talk to boys, and never forgot that at one period of
-his life he had been bored with wearisome sermons
-about the world, the flesh, and the devil, which he
-did not in the least understand. So he took warning,
-and told the lads to run the race set before them
-much in the same manner as they would a hundred
-yards sprint, each striving to win the prize and do
-the distance in even time. The Bishop believed that
-well-trained muscles and a healthy body were conducive
-to an active and moral state of mind. The
-Redbank lads gloried in the fact that the Bishop of
-Flaxham had been one of themselves.</p>
-
-<p>Field-Marshal Lord Kingcraft was a Redbank boy,
-and his warlike deeds and bravery were celebrated
-in song on the fly-leaves of school-books, and occasionally<span class="pagenum">[11]</span>
-on the panels of doors and the insides of
-desks.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="indentquote0">‘Lord Kingcraft’s won the great V.C.,
-</div><div class="indent0">May Redbank do the same for me.’
-</div></div></div></div>
-
-<p>was discovered carved, evidently with much labour
-and pains, on the lid of a desk at which the celebrated
-Field-Marshal formerly worried his brains over Euclid
-and algebra.</p>
-
-<p>This inscription was pointed out to the brave leader
-of men when he visited his old school, and he never
-forgot it. He hoped, from the bottom of his heart,
-the lad who carved it would one day win his V.C.</p>
-
-<p>Redbank was represented in the navy and in the
-diplomatic world, and one day it was hoped a Redbank
-lad would become Prime Minister.</p>
-
-<p>So, with all these successful public men constantly
-before them as an example, the lads of Redbank felt
-bound to endeavour to do great deeds, and win
-renown for themselves and their school.</p>
-
-<p>The head-master of Redbank was the Rev. Henry
-Hook, and it was universally acknowledged that no
-more suitable man could have been selected. He
-ruled his lads with a firm hand, but he was no tyrant
-or hard task-master. The boys knew he meant what
-he said, and that his word to them could be implicitly
-relied upon. He had confidence in his boys, and they
-returned it.</p>
-
-<p>When Edgar Foster came to Redbank School he
-was sixteen, small for his age, but muscular and<span class="pagenum">[12]</span>
-active. At this time there were between two and
-three hundred scholars at Redbank, and naturally out
-of such a number there were several lads whose
-absence would not have been regretted.</p>
-
-<p>Young Edgar Foster soon became popular. For
-one thing, his father was a well-known man, who had
-worthily upheld the honour of Redbank in the cricket
-field, and had captained the All England eleven.
-This was quite sufficient to give Edgar a standing in
-the school.</p>
-
-<p>Bullies exist in almost every walk of life, and a few
-of this undesirable species were to be found at Redbank.
-The leader of these bullies was a lad named
-Raymond Rakes&mdash;‘Bully Rakes’ as he was generally
-called. He was a big, hulking fellow, powerful and
-strong, but deficient in courage, as bullies generally
-are.</p>
-
-<p>There was nothing manly about Bully Rakes, and
-the boys knew it. So far he had held his own,
-for he was the biggest boy in the school. Any new
-scholar he at once endeavoured to inspire with awe,
-and generally succeeded.</p>
-
-<p>Our story commences about a week after Edgar
-Foster’s arrival at Redbank. The boys were bounding
-out of school and soon spread over the fields in groups;
-the bulk of them, however, went towards the cricketing
-nets.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar Foster had not had any opportunity of
-showing what he could do with the bat. He was a
-lad who did not push himself forward, but quietly<span class="pagenum">[13]</span>
-bided his time, knowing full well that when that time
-came he would not be found wanting. The boy is
-father to the man, and it will be gathered from this
-story of a lad of mettle that Edgar Foster acted in
-this wise during many trying periods of his after-life.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar watched the practice with keen and critical
-eyes. His father had taught him how to handle a bat
-as only a skilful player can.</p>
-
-<p>‘Here, Foster, take a turn,’ said the lad who had
-just finished batting. ‘We’ve not had the chance of
-seeing how you shape yet.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I’m ready,’ said Edgar, pulling off his coat and
-eagerly holding out a hand for the bat.</p>
-
-<p>‘It’s my turn,’ said Bully Rakes. ‘Just you drop
-that bat, or I’ll make you.’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar Foster looked up at the big fellow standing
-before him, but he did not flinch, nor did he drop the
-bat.</p>
-
-<p>The boys crowded round, anticipating a row, and
-anxious to see how the new-comer would shape with
-Rakes.</p>
-
-<p>‘If it is your turn,’ said Edgar quietly, ‘I will give
-you the bat. If it is not your turn, under no circumstances
-will I drop the bat.’</p>
-
-<p>The tones were firm, there was no flinching, and
-the lad looked determined.</p>
-
-<p>Bully Rakes was not accustomed to be addressed
-in this manner. He eyed Edgar scornfully, and
-said:</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[14]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘I shall have to teach you manners. I am the
-best judge of whose turn it is. Will you drop that
-bat?’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar turned to the lad who had handed him the
-bat, and said:</p>
-
-<p>‘Do you bat in turns? Has Rakes any right to
-bat before me?’</p>
-
-<p>Courage is infectious. Will Brown had never
-defied Rakes before, but he felt he must back up his
-plucky schoolmate.</p>
-
-<p>‘Rakes has no right to bat here at all,’ he replied.
-‘He’s been batting at the other net, and has just
-finished his turn.’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar Foster made no further remark, but walked
-coolly to the wicket.</p>
-
-<p>This defiance of his demands gave Bully Rakes a
-shock. He knew if he allowed Foster to bat his
-hold over the boys would be gone. He strode up to
-Edgar and said savagely:</p>
-
-<p>‘Give me the bat, or I’ll thrash you!’</p>
-
-<p>‘Had you asked me politely at first, I should
-probably have handed you the bat,’ said Edgar. ‘I
-shall not do so now. As for thrashing me&mdash;well,
-that has to be decided.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Bravo, Foster!’ shouted several lads.</p>
-
-<p>‘Punch his head, Rakes,’ said one of the bully’s
-toadies.</p>
-
-<p>‘Give me that bat, or fight me!’ shouted Rakes in
-a passion.</p>
-
-<p>‘Shame!’ shouted the lads.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[15]</span></p>
-
-<p>Rakes was much taller and more powerfully built
-than Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar Foster handed the bat to Will Brown, and
-said:</p>
-
-<p>‘Come on, I’m ready.’</p>
-
-<p>Bully Rakes had his coat off, and the boys, seeing
-a fight about to take place, formed a ring. They
-would have given much to see Bully Rakes get a
-severe thrashing.</p>
-
-<p>Now they were in a fighting attitude the disparity
-between the lads was more apparent. Edgar was
-lightly built, but active, and evidently in good condition.
-Bully Rakes was massive, heavy, and ponderous
-in his movements. The boys were determined to see
-fair play, and gave Edgar every encouragement. As
-usual, when he had to fight, Bully Rakes rushed in at
-close quarters, and tried to overwhelm his smaller
-opponent by the force of his onslaught.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar, however, was ready for him. He knew how
-to box better than most lads of his age. His father
-had taught him, impressing upon him that because
-he knew how to use his fists he ought not to pick
-quarrels.</p>
-
-<p>Seeing Bully Rakes rush at him, Edgar sprang
-nimbly to one side. The bigger lad stumbled forward
-and almost fell. Thus foiled at the first
-attempt, Rakes lost his temper. He heard the lads
-jeering at him, and he determined he would make
-Edgar suffer for the humiliation.</p>
-
-<p>Recovering himself, Rakes glared at Edgar and<span class="pagenum">[16]</span>
-then aimed a terrific blow at his ribs. Quick as
-lightning shot out Edgar’s left and caught Rakes on
-the ear. It was a stinging blow, and the bully did
-not take punishment well. Rakes again rushed at
-Edgar, and, closing with him, kicked him severely on
-the shin. It was a despicable act, and several lads
-pulled Rakes back, others shouting ‘Coward!’ and
-‘Foul play!’</p>
-
-<p>‘Hands off!’ shouted Rakes. ‘You’d better not
-interfere with me.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Leave him to Foster,’ said Will Brown; ‘he’ll
-settle him.’</p>
-
-<p>A roar of laughter followed this remark, and made
-Bully Rakes furious.</p>
-
-<p>‘Stand up and fight fair,’ said Edgar. ‘Who
-taught you to kick? We’re not playing football.’</p>
-
-<p>The boys were delighted. Here was young Foster
-taking it out of Bully Rakes, and chaffing him unmercifully.</p>
-
-<p>Rakes again commenced the attack, but with more
-caution. He was not a match for his young opponent
-when it came to science. He managed to land
-a blow on Edgar’s right eye, but the return he
-received fairly between his own eyes staggered him.
-Edgar followed up his advantage and soon had the
-satisfaction of seeing Bully Rakes measure his length
-on the grass.</p>
-
-<p>The younger boys danced with delight as the
-defeat of their enemy looked assured.</p>
-
-<p>Rakes, however, was not yet beaten. He staggered<span class="pagenum">[17]</span>
-to his feet and fought again with some determination.
-Feeling he had met his match, his courage,
-what little he possessed, gave way, and Edgar soon
-had the bully at his mercy. Edgar was not disposed
-to let him off lightly, and he knocked Rakes about
-in a manner that both astonished and alarmed
-him.</p>
-
-<p>‘Have you had enough?’ said Edgar, standing
-over him after another knock-down blow. ‘If not,
-get up, and I’ll repeat the dose.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I’ve done for to-day,’ growled Rakes; ‘but I’ll
-be even with you for this, see if I don’t.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Take your defeat like a man,’ said Edgar, ‘and
-drop bullying in the future. Where’s the bat?’ he
-added, turning to Will Brown.</p>
-
-<p>But the boys would not let him bat. They cheered
-him and shook hands with him, and Edgar felt he
-had quickly made a position for himself in the
-school.</p>
-
-<p>Bully Rakes slunk away with one or two companions,
-who had been tempted by his example to
-bully on a smaller scale, and were downcast at his
-defeat.</p>
-
-<p>‘You’ll get into a row,’ said Will Brown to Edgar.
-‘The chief can’t bear fighting, but when he hears the
-truth, I fancy he’ll side with you.’</p>
-
-<p>‘He’ll hear the truth then,’ said Edgar. ‘I shall
-ask to see him when we reach school.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I shouldn’t,’ said Will Brown. ‘None of the
-masters may have noticed it.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[18]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘It makes no difference to me whether they have
-noticed it or otherwise,’ said Edgar; ‘I shall tell the
-doctor all about it, if he will see me. It is the most
-straightforward way, as I have only been about a
-week in the school.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Perhaps you’re right,’ said Will Brown.</p>
-
-<p>‘Sure of it,’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>That evening Dr. Hook received a polite note
-from Edgar Foster, in which he asked for an interview.
-Dr. Hook knew Edgar’s father, and admired
-him for his many manly qualities.</p>
-
-<p>‘You wanted to see me, Foster,’ said Dr. Hook,
-when the lad came into his study.</p>
-
-<p>Then, catching sight of Edgar’s discoloured eye,
-he frowned.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar explained what had occurred in the cricket-field.
-Dr. Hook listened attentively, noting the
-boy’s face all the time. His scrutiny was evidently
-favourable.</p>
-
-<p>‘I am glad you came to me,’ said the head-master;
-‘I strongly object to fighting, but in this instance I
-think it may be overlooked. Send Rakes to me
-when you go out.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Please, sir,’ said Edgar, and hesitated. ‘I hope
-you will not punish Rakes; I gave it him severely
-this afternoon.’</p>
-
-<p>Dr. Hook smiled as he said:</p>
-
-<p>‘No, I will not punish Rakes; I merely wish to
-speak to him about his conduct. You may go.’</p>
-
-<p>‘That lad will get on in the world,’ thought Dr.<span class="pagenum">[19]</span>
-Hook, when the door closed behind Edgar. ‘I’m
-glad he thrashed Rakes; it will do him good.’</p>
-
-<p>Bully Rakes got a very different reception to
-Edgar Foster, and as he left the room he vowed he
-would have his revenge upon Edgar for ‘sneaking’
-to the head-master.</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_II">CHAPTER II.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">IN THE CRICKET-FIELD.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>The thrashing of Bully Rakes gave Edgar Foster
-a hold over the affections of his schoolfellows, and
-he never lost it. In twelve months he became captain
-of the eleven, and led them to victory on many
-occasions. Edgar worked hard, both at lessons and
-play. He found it much easier to study when his
-body was in good order, and his athletic exercises
-helped to make his school tasks the easier. He
-could not be called a brilliant scholar by any means,
-but he was endowed with an amount of perseverance
-that generally pulled him through.</p>
-
-<p>‘It’s got to be done, and I’ll do it,’ Edgar thought
-to himself when pondering over a difficult task, and
-he generally succeeded.</p>
-
-<p>The Redbank lads took a defeat from their great
-opponents, the eleven of Fairfield College, with a
-very bad grace. Not that they allowed their successful<span class="pagenum">[20]</span>
-opponents to see their chagrin, they were too
-manly for that, but they felt the defeat keenly.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar Foster determined to win the return match
-if possible. He had taken great care to select his
-eleven, and felt confident of success. He was the
-more eager to win because his father was coming to
-Redbank to watch the game. Dr. Hook too was
-anxious his boys should regain their lost laurels, and
-he encouraged Edgar by his kindly advice.</p>
-
-<p>It so happened that Raymond Rakes, despite his
-many bad qualities, was a very fair cricketer. He
-had not been chosen to play in the first match
-against Fairfield, and he put his being left out of
-the team down to Edgar’s animosity.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar Foster, however, was not actuated by any
-such motive. He thought Rakes hardly good enough,
-and therefore did not select him. Since this match
-Rakes had shown such good form that Edgar decided
-to include him in the eleven for the return match.</p>
-
-<p>Bully Rakes was much surprised when Edgar
-asked him to play. He said he would think over
-the matter, and complained about not being chosen
-in the first match.</p>
-
-<p>‘You had not shown good enough form then,’
-said Edgar; ‘you have come on wonderfully since,
-and therefore I ask you to play. It is for the honour
-of the school we are playing this time, so you ought
-to have no hesitation.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Then I’ll play,’ said Rakes, in his usual surly
-manner.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[21]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘And I hope you will make a good score,’ said
-Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>As the captain of the Redbank eleven walked
-away, Rakes looked after him with no friendly eyes.
-He had never forgotten the humiliating defeat he
-sustained when Edgar first came to the school. No
-opportunity had yet occurred of paying off the grudge
-he owed Edgar on that account.</p>
-
-<p>‘He’s set his heart on winning this match,’ muttered
-Rakes to himself; ‘he’d have left me out again
-if he could. I’ve a good mind to spoil his plans.
-What does it matter whether we win or lose the
-match? I don’t care much which way it goes, and
-I’d like to see Foster taken down a peg or two.
-I’ll wait and see how our side shapes. I may be
-able to carry out a plan of my own.’</p>
-
-<p>Had Edgar Foster doubted Rakes, he would not
-have asked him to play; but he could not understand
-any lad throwing away a chance of victory
-merely to spite the captain of the team. Such conduct
-Edgar would not have suspected even in Raymond
-Rakes.</p>
-
-<p>‘So you’ve asked Rakes to play?’ said Will
-Brown, who had become a stanch friend of Edgar’s
-ever since the fight with Bully Rakes.</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes,’ said Edgar. ‘He’s not a bad bat at all;
-he’s a fair field, and will do to put on for a change
-bowler. We must win the match. I’m awfully
-anxious about it. My father will be here, and
-there’s sure to be a big crowd of people. We<span class="pagenum">[22]</span>
-have a good team, and I’m pretty confident this
-time.’</p>
-
-<p>‘All the same, I should not have played Rakes,’
-said Will Brown.</p>
-
-<p>‘Why?’ asked Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘Because I don’t trust him. He’s never forgiven
-you for licking him, and if he gets half a chance
-he’ll throw us over in the match, just to spite you,’
-said Will.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar looked at his schoolmate in surprise. He
-could not believe in any lad doing such a thing.</p>
-
-<p>‘He’ll never do that,’ said Edgar. ‘Even if it is
-as you say, and he still bears me a grudge, he would
-never be such a cad as to throw the school over in
-order to annoy me.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I hope he won’t, for your sake,’ said Will; ‘but
-all the same, I have my doubts.’</p>
-
-<p>Will Brown’s words made Edgar feel uneasy for
-a time, but he soon forgot them. It was universally
-agreed that a better eleven could not have been
-chosen to meet Fairfield College. Masters were not
-to play; it was to be purely a boys’ match.</p>
-
-<p>Early and late Edgar was at the cricket nets
-watching the practice and debating how he should
-send his team in to bat. For such a young lad, he
-had keen powers of observation, and he made a
-pretty accurate calculation as to the pluck and nerve
-of each boy. Edgar’s father arrived the day before
-the match, and saw the final practice.</p>
-
-<p>‘You have a real good team,’ he said to his son,<span class="pagenum">[23]</span>
-‘and ought to win. Remember, a good deal depends
-upon the captain.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I’m not likely to forget that,’ said Edgar. ‘You
-have often told me a good captain wins many a game
-at cricket.’</p>
-
-<p>Robert Foster was proud of his son, and naturally
-felt anxious to see him successful.</p>
-
-<p>‘How’s my lad doing?’ he had said to the head-master.</p>
-
-<p>‘Well&mdash;very well,’ said Dr. Hook. ‘He is not a
-brilliant scholar, but he will get on in the world. He
-is like his father in one respect. He is about the
-best cricketer and all-round athlete we have in the
-school.’</p>
-
-<p>Robert Foster’s eyes brightened, and he said:</p>
-
-<p>‘I’m glad of that. I’m not a rich man, and my
-lad will have to fight his own battles. He has a
-great inclination to go abroad, and I don’t know that
-it will not be a good thing for him. His sister will
-be able to keep me from feeling lonely.’</p>
-
-<p>Dr. Hook looked at Robert Foster with his kindly
-eyes, and replied:</p>
-
-<p>‘Travel expands the mind. If a lad has plenty of
-ballast, he will take no harm in any part of the
-world. Your son is a lad of mettle, and you need
-have no fear about his future. If I am a judge of
-character, I should say Edgar Foster is a lad who
-will surmount difficulties and dangers, and he is
-bound to be a leader of men.’</p>
-
-<p>Robert Foster was proud of the way in which the<span class="pagenum">[24]</span>
-head-master spoke of his son. How little do thoughtless
-schoolboys know the pleasure a father feels in
-hearing praise bestowed upon his child, or of the
-pang he feels when the son he loves strays from the
-right path. Robert Foster loved his son devotedly,
-although he made very little demonstration of his
-affection, and Edgar thoroughly understood and
-appreciated the manly qualities of his father.</p>
-
-<p>The eventful day arrived, and a glorious day it
-was. The sun shone brightly, and there was a slight
-cool breeze. Redbank cricket ground was charmingly
-situated. The pavilion was small, but there were
-several large trees growing at the back which afforded
-ample shade. The ground was level and well-kept,
-and the pitch had much care bestowed upon it. It
-was a great day at Redbank when this return match
-with Fairfield College was to be played. Flushed
-with the triumph of their previous victory, the Fairfield
-lads were eager for the fray, and had invited
-many friends to come and witness their further
-triumph. The captain of the Fairfield eleven, Harold
-Simpson, was almost as popular at Fairfield as
-Edgar Foster was at Redbank. The two captains
-had a mutual liking for each other, although each
-one was determined to beat the other in the great
-game they were about to play.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar Foster lost the toss, and, as the ground was
-in such good order, Harold Simpson elected to send
-his men in first.</p>
-
-<p>‘They are a strong batting team,’ said Edgar to<span class="pagenum">[25]</span>
-his father. ‘It will take us some time to get rid of
-them.’</p>
-
-<p>‘It is a one-day match, so you must do your level
-best to get them out quickly,’ said his father.</p>
-
-<p>As the boys filed on to the field they were cheered
-by their comrades and the Redbank supporters, who
-had mustered in strong force.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar Foster came in for a special share of applause,
-and he felt his pulses tingle and his heart beat high
-with hope as he bounded over the springy turf towards
-the wickets.</p>
-
-<p>The two Fairfield batsmen were wildly cheered by
-their mates, and Harold Simpson decided on this
-occasion to go in first.</p>
-
-<p>Will Brown and Sayers junior were put on to
-bowl.</p>
-
-<p>An anxious moment is that during which the first
-ball in a match is delivered. The bowler goes back
-from the wicket, measuring his men; for a second or
-two he hesitates and looks round, then he glances at
-the batsman, sees all is ready, and prepares for the
-delivery. As he takes his run to the wicket the
-spectators hold their breath. Will this first ball be
-fatal? A sigh of relief goes round as the batsman
-plays it well forward.</p>
-
-<p>Harold Simpson failed to score in Brown’s first
-over. Sayers junior then took the ball, and his first
-delivery made the bails fly, much to the delight of
-the Redbank boys, who shouted and cheered vociferously.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[26]</span></p>
-
-<p>Edgar Foster felt they had commenced well, and
-was anxious for the good-fortune to continue. The
-Fairfield boys were determined bats, and a long stand
-took place before the second batsman was got rid of.</p>
-
-<p>Harold Simpson still kept his wicket up, and runs
-came freely. At the fall of the fifth wicket Fairfield
-had put a hundred runs on, of which the captain had
-made forty.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar Foster went on to bowl. He was not such
-a good bowler as Rakes, who thought he ought to
-have been tried before, and looked sullen.</p>
-
-<p>In his first over Harold Simpson skied a ball to
-Raymond Rakes. It was an easy catch, but Rakes
-missed it, and so clumsily that the boys jeered at
-him.</p>
-
-<p>Will Brown, who had been watching him, thought:</p>
-
-<p>‘He dropped that on purpose, because Edgar
-bowled it.’</p>
-
-<p>Nothing daunted at this stroke of bad luck, Edgar
-sent another similar ball down. Harold Simpson
-hesitated for a moment as to what he should do with
-it; then he struck out, and, strange to say, the ball
-went to Rakes again.</p>
-
-<p>It was not such an easy catch as the former one,
-but, still, there ought to have been very little difficulty
-in a good fielder securing it. Rakes fumbled it badly,
-and again missed the catch.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar Foster could not help thinking of what Will
-Brown had said to him. He was very much annoyed,
-and at the conclusion of his over said to Rakes:</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[27]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘Those were two easy catches to miss; they may
-cost us the match.’</p>
-
-<p>‘They were not as easy as they looked,’ said Rakes.
-‘You don’t suppose I dropped them on purpose, do
-you?’</p>
-
-<p>‘I should be very sorry to think that,’ said Edgar;
-‘but be more careful next time.’</p>
-
-<p>At last Will Brown secured Harold Simpson’s
-wicket, and the others followed rapidly, the innings
-closing for a hundred and thirty-four, a good score in
-a one-day school match.</p>
-
-<p>‘What do you think of it, Edgar?’ asked his father.
-‘Shall you be able to wipe that off?’</p>
-
-<p>‘I think so,’ replied Edgar. ‘We should have had
-a much easier task had Rakes held those two catches
-off my bowling.’</p>
-
-<p>‘He made an awful mess of them,’ said Robert
-Foster. ‘How he dropped the first puzzles me; he
-had it fairly in his hands.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Look here, Edgar!’ said Will Brown. ‘It’s no use
-mincing matters. I’m sure Rakes missed those
-catches purposely. When are you going to send
-him in?’</p>
-
-<p>‘About seventh,’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘Put him in last,’ said Will.</p>
-
-<p>‘That would only make matters worse,’ said Edgar;
-‘he would know I doubted him, and act accordingly.
-He shall go in sixth wicket down. It will
-give him a chance of making up for missing those
-catches.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[28]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘As you wish,’ said Will. ‘Mind, if you are in with
-him, he does not run you out.’</p>
-
-<p>‘No fear of that,’ said Edgar, laughing.</p>
-
-<p>And he crossed over to speak to Raymond Rakes.</p>
-
-<p>‘You go in sixth wicket down,’ he said.</p>
-
-<p>‘All right,’ replied Rakes, ‘that will suit me.’</p>
-
-<p>‘We’ve not been very good friends,’ said Edgar,
-‘but you know it is not my fault. We want to win
-this match, and it may be that your batting will turn
-the scale in our favour at a critical point of the game.
-I shall rely upon you to do your best for the honour
-of the school. You missed two very easy catches;
-try and make up for it by playing your best when
-you go in to bat.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I always do,’ said Rakes sulkily, and walked
-away.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar Foster felt rather sorry he had included
-Raymond Rakes in the Redbank eleven.</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_III">CHAPTER III.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">A CRITICAL MOMENT.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>As Edgar Foster walked to the wickets he felt much
-depended upon him. He was going in first, taking
-first over, and if he failed to play with confidence it
-would set a bad example to the remainder of the
-team. It was, however, at such moments as these that
-Edgar Foster’s courage and spirit did not fail him.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[29]</span></p>
-
-<p>As he took his position at the wicket he looked
-round him with a confident air to see how the field
-was placed. He saw Harold Simpson had so placed
-his men that not a chance would be thrown away,
-provided the bowlers were in good form. After a few
-moments’ delay Edgar handled his bat confidently,
-and prepared to receive the first ball of the over.</p>
-
-<p>A lad named Winter was bowling, and Edgar knew
-he was a promising youngster. The first ball pitched
-short and then shot forward at a tremendous pace.
-It was a ball that might have deceived any batsman,
-and Edgar had only just time to change his mind and
-block it. The escape was narrow, and the boys saw
-it, but they knew the ball was well played, and
-cheered.</p>
-
-<p>‘Thought it had him,’ said Robert Foster to one of
-the Redbank masters.</p>
-
-<p>‘It would have been a stroke of bad luck for us if
-he had gone out,’ was the reply.</p>
-
-<p>Off the next ball Edgar scored a couple, and the
-fourth ball of the over he skied on to the pavilion.</p>
-
-<p>‘That first ball put him on his mettle,’ thought his
-father.</p>
-
-<p>Strange to say, in the next over Edgar’s partner
-was dismissed first ball in a similar manner to that in
-which the Fairfield batsman was out.</p>
-
-<p>Will Brown was next in, and he and Edgar made
-things lively. They fairly collared the bowling, and
-gave the Fairfield team plenty of leather-hunting.
-Fours came freely, and Harold Simpson began to<span class="pagenum">[30]</span>
-look rather downcast. However, when Will Brown
-was bowled with the score at eighty, the Fairfield
-captain brightened up again. He knew how often a
-collapse followed a long stand, and how ‘glorious’
-was the uncertainty of cricket.</p>
-
-<p>Will Brown’s partnership with Edgar had put the
-Redbank boys into an excellent humour, and they
-were prepared to cheer every hit. What they were
-not prepared for happened. This was the collapse of
-the next four batsmen. Three of them were bowled
-in one over, and the fourth had his bails sent flying
-when he had scored two. Eighty for two wickets,
-and eighty-two for six wickets altered the game completely.</p>
-
-<p>It was now the turn of the Fairfield boys to give
-vent to their delight. The prospect of defeat had not
-been pleasant, but this sudden change mended the
-fortunes of their side, and they were wild with the
-sudden revulsion of feeling. They chaffed the Redbank
-lads unmercifully, until at one time there was
-danger of a fistic war.</p>
-
-<p>This was, however, happily averted by the appearance
-of Raymond Rakes, who was cheered as he went
-to the wickets. Although Rakes was unpopular, the
-boys knew he was a fair bat, and they wished to encourage
-him to make a stand with Edgar Foster.</p>
-
-<p>As Rakes came to the wickets Edgar went forward
-to meet him.</p>
-
-<p>‘Play steady,’ said Edgar; ‘I feel I am well set.
-If you play carefully for a few overs you will soon<span class="pagenum">[31]</span>
-master the bowling. Remember how much depends
-upon you. We shall have to win the match between
-us.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I’ll see what I can do,’ said Rakes. ‘It’s precious
-bad luck four of our best bats going out like this.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Don’t think of that,’ said Edgar. ‘Try and make
-up for it by piling up a good score.’</p>
-
-<p>Raymond Rakes followed Edgar’s advice, and soon
-found he had very little difficulty in playing the
-bowling. He knew how anxious Edgar was, not
-only to win the match, but to make fifty because his
-father was present.</p>
-
-<p>‘I’m well set,’ thought Rakes. ‘I’d like to get
-him out. It would cut him up terribly to be run
-out. Even if he got out we have a chance. I can
-make a fair score, and our tail-end is not a bad
-one.’</p>
-
-<p>Still harbouring such thoughts as these Raymond
-Rakes batted steadily, and Edgar was immensely
-pleased to see him scoring freely, and the Redbank
-boys were cheering every stroke. They watched the
-scoring-board intently, and grew more and more
-excited with every run. Suddenly there was a loud
-cry of dismay from the boys. Some shouted ‘Run,
-Rakes!’ others ‘Go back, Foster!’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar Foster hit a ball forward, and called to
-Rakes to run. Had Rakes come at once it would
-have been an easy but smart run. Rakes started
-late, and then when Edgar Foster was three parts of
-the way down the pitch shouted to him to go back,<span class="pagenum">[32]</span>
-and ran back himself. This left Edgar in a most
-unenviable position. The ball was smartly fielded,
-and as Edgar ran back he saw it flash past him
-straight for the wicket-keeper.</p>
-
-<p>‘I’m done,’ thought Edgar, but he ran on as fast
-as possible.</p>
-
-<p>It was a critical moment. The wicket-keeper in
-some unaccountable way fumbled the ball, and only
-knocked the bails off as Edgar reached the crease.</p>
-
-<p>‘How’s that?’ came from wicket-keeper, bowler,
-and fielders in a general chorus.</p>
-
-<p>They were anxious to see Edgar out, for he had
-given them a lot of trouble, and seemed likely to
-give more.</p>
-
-<p>‘Not out!’ promptly came the decision of the
-umpire, and a roar of applause echoed over the field
-as the Redbank lads danced with delight, and flung
-their caps high into the air because their captain had
-another chance given him. Edgar knew the decision
-of the umpire was correct, and he thanked his lucky
-star that the wicket-keeper had fumbled the ball.
-When he thought of Raymond Rakes he felt inclined
-to give him a bit of his mind, but he determined to
-treat the matter as a pure accident until the close of
-the game. As for Raymond Rakes he was savage
-at the non-success of his plan. He had deliberately
-tried to run Edgar out. It was a dirty trick, and he
-knew it, but he was bitterly disappointed that it had
-not been successful.</p>
-
-<p>‘Hang the fellow! he seems to have all the luck,’<span class="pagenum">[33]</span>
-thought Raymond. ‘I wonder if he suspects anything?’</p>
-
-<p>The idea of Edgar Foster suspecting he had acted
-in such a manner made Rakes feel uneasy, for he
-had not forgotten the punishment Edgar gave him
-when he first came to the school. He did not bat
-with such confidence, and Edgar put this down to
-its proper cause. Runs came freely again, for Edgar
-felt the result of the match depended almost entirely
-upon himself. When his score reached fifty the
-cheering broke out again, and made Rakes turn
-green with envy.</p>
-
-<p>‘He shall have a new bat for that,’ said Robert
-Foster. ‘By Jove! he deserves it. He’s batting
-splendidly. I’m glad that big hulking fellow did not
-run him out.’</p>
-
-<p>Before the score reached a hundred Rakes was
-caught. He was not very warmly greeted as he
-returned to the pavilion. The boys knew how matters
-stood between him and Edgar, and they had a shrewd
-suspicion Bully Rakes had tried to get Edgar run out.</p>
-
-<p>Rakes flung his bat down in a corner of the dressing-room
-and took off his pads.</p>
-
-<p>‘You didn’t manage to run him out,’ said Will
-Brown.</p>
-
-<p>‘Who wanted to run him out?’ said Rakes angrily;
-‘I didn’t. It was his own fault. There was no run,
-and I didn’t want to get out through his foolishness.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You’d better tell him that when the match is over,’
-said Will Brown. ‘He’ll probably want an explanation.<span class="pagenum">[34]</span>
-If he believes you, well and good; if not&mdash;oh
-my, won’t you just catch it!’</p>
-
-<p>Bully Rakes took up a pad and hurled it at his
-tormentor.</p>
-
-<p>‘Get out of this, you little beast!’ he said. ‘You
-know I can’t touch you here, or you’d not be so
-cheeky.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Mind and keep clear of Edgar’s left if it comes to
-war,’ said Will Brown. ‘I fancy you know he’s a
-good fist at the end of his left arm.’</p>
-
-<p>Bully Rakes jumped to his feet and made towards
-the speaker; but Will Brown was too quick for
-him, and shot out at the side door.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile the game was at a critical stage. Edgar
-Foster was playing at his best. He did not give a
-chance, nor did he throw away an opportunity of
-stealing a run. He knew that every run was of vast
-importance. A run lost might mean the match lost.
-Sayers junior was in with him, and blocked steadily
-while his captain made the runs. The fielders were
-on the alert, and were smart and active, and many a
-run was saved. Harold Simpson was a good general,
-and handled his men well.</p>
-
-<p>‘It does one good to watch a game like this,’ said
-Robert Foster to Dr. Hook. ‘I have seldom seen
-lads field better, and Edgar is batting really well.
-Who is the little chap keeping his end up so well?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Sayers junior,’ said Dr. Hook. ‘He’s helping
-your son famously.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Playing a most unselfish game,’ said Robert<span class="pagenum">[35]</span>
-Foster. ‘That is how matches are won. A selfish
-player at any game is a big handicap on his side.’</p>
-
-<p>A burst of cheering from lusty throats stopped
-the conversation. It was caused by Edgar Foster
-hitting a ball over the pavilion&mdash;a mighty stroke for
-a lad.</p>
-
-<p>‘Well hit!’ ‘Bravo, Foster!’ ‘Three cheers for
-our skipper!’ And the Redbank lads shouted until
-they were hoarse.</p>
-
-<p>The match was, however, not yet won. Sayers
-junior played a ball on to his wicket when ten runs
-remained to be got to tie and eleven to win.</p>
-
-<p>‘I am afraid we shall lose,’ said Dr. Hook, as the
-ninth man was clean bowled and the last of the team
-went in.</p>
-
-<p>‘Can he bat at all?’ asked Robert Foster anxiously.</p>
-
-<p>‘He is uncertain, but at times he shapes well,’ said
-one of the masters.</p>
-
-<p>‘Then I hope it is his day for shaping well,’ said
-Edgar’s father.</p>
-
-<p>‘Block them, Bull,’ said Edgar, as the lad came to
-the wicket.</p>
-
-<p>‘I’ll do my level best,’ said Bull, ‘and I don’t feel
-a bit nervous.’</p>
-
-<p>‘That’s right,’ said Edgar. ‘Then, between us we
-must win the match.’</p>
-
-<p>Fortunately Edgar was batting, and he hit the first
-ball sent him after Bull came in for a single. It was
-fielded smartly, thrown in swiftly, the wicket-keeper
-could not quite reach it, and there was another run<span class="pagenum">[36]</span>
-for an overthrow. This gave Edgar another chance
-before the over was finished, and he promptly took
-advantage of it, hitting the next ball round to leg for
-three. The excitement was intense. Would Bull be
-able to keep his wicket up during this over? The
-Redbank boys vowed they would make Bull a presentation
-if he managed to do so. It was a surprise
-to them when Bull fluked a ball past point, and
-another run followed. Edgar determined to finish
-the game if possible, and a couple of runs were got
-by a somewhat lucky stroke. This left three runs to
-win, and the boys of both schools were in a fever of
-excitement.</p>
-
-<p>‘If Edgar can only manage to hit a three,’ said
-Will Brown, ‘then we shall be all right. He’s done
-wonders, considering everything.’</p>
-
-<p>The next ball Edgar could do nothing with. It
-puzzled him, and nearly got past his bat.</p>
-
-<p>Then came a comparatively easy ball, and Edgar
-lifted it over the ropes, amidst a perfect hurricane
-of cheers. This hit won the match, and the
-Redbank boys rushed wildly over the ground and,
-surrounding Edgar, bore him shoulder-high to the
-pavilion. It was a scene seldom witnessed even on
-this famous school-ground, and as Edgar’s father
-looked on he felt the moisture well up into his eyes,
-and his heart beat with pride. He knew what this
-moment of triumph would mean to his son, and he
-gloried in it. He made his way to the dressing-room,
-and as he came the boys stood on one side and<span class="pagenum">[37]</span>
-cheered him again and again. They were proud of
-the father and proud of the son, and were not slow to
-show it.</p>
-
-<p>‘Splendidly done, my lad!’ said Robert Foster, as
-he placed his hand on Edgar’s shoulder. ‘It was a
-plucky, uphill fight, and your schoolfellows are enthusiastic
-about it. I never saw you play a steadier or
-better game.’</p>
-
-<p>‘It was hard work,’ said Edgar, ‘but I did not feel
-a bit nervous. We have won, but it was a narrow
-shave. I think it ought to have been an easier
-victory had Rakes done his best.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Then, you think Rakes behaved badly? I should
-give a boy like that a wide berth.’</p>
-
-<p>‘We are not friends,’ said Edgar, ‘but I bear him
-no animosity.’</p>
-
-<p>The Redbank boys could do nothing but talk over
-their victory, and Edgar Foster found they gave most
-of the credit to himself.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar gave Rakes to understand he believed he
-had tried to run him out.</p>
-
-<p>‘I may be wrong, but that is my opinion,’ said
-Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘Your opinion is worth nothing to me,’ said Rakes,
-‘so you may keep it to yourself.’</p>
-
-<p>‘That may be,’ replied Edgar; ‘but the honour of
-the school ought to be worth something to you. I
-shall not ask you to play again during the time I am
-captain of the eleven.’</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[38]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_IV">CHAPTER IV.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">LEAVING SCHOOL.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>The time arrived, all too soon, when Edgar Foster was
-to leave Redbank. Unlike many lads, he was not
-eager to have done with lessons, and take his place
-in the busy world. During his stay at Redbank he
-had made many friends, Will Brown being an
-especial favourite with him. Dr. Hook was proud
-of his scholar, for Edgar had done as well at work as
-at play.</p>
-
-<p>When the holiday time came round, Edgar Foster
-bade farewell to Redbank with feelings of regret. As
-he looked back at the school he was leaving he
-thought of the many happy hours he had spent
-within its walls. He had gone through trial and
-struggle, such as every lad must encounter, but they
-only made victory taste the sweeter.</p>
-
-<p>‘I shall feel quite lonely next term,’ said Will
-Brown, who was going home with Edgar to spend a
-few days. ‘It’s lucky for some of us Rakes is leaving,
-or he would have made it uncomfortably hot. I shall
-never forget the thrashing you gave him. It did me
-good to see you punish him;’ and Will Brown
-chuckled with delight at the mere thought.</p>
-
-<p>‘If I never have a harder battle to fight than that,’
-said Edgar, ‘I shall be lucky.’</p>
-
-<p>‘What are you going to do?’ asked Will Brown.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[39]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘With my father’s permission I shall go to Australia,’
-said Edgar. ‘You know how fond I have
-always been of reading and learning about our great
-colonies. I think it is a splendid thing to start life
-in a new country, where you are not bound down
-by a lot of old-world prejudices.’</p>
-
-<p>‘And what shall you do in Australia?’ asked Will
-Brown.</p>
-
-<p>‘I hardly know, but you may be sure I shall
-not remain idle very long. There ought to be
-plenty for an active young fellow like me to do out
-there.’</p>
-
-<p>‘They are great cricketers, the Australians,’ said
-Brown. ‘You’re sure to get into one of the best
-elevens, and that will help you along.’</p>
-
-<p>‘And give me a chance of a trip home perhaps,’
-said Edgar. ‘I should hardly like playing against
-England.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I expect you will become such an enthusiastic
-colonist that you will be only too eager to assist in
-lowering the flag of old England on the cricket-field.’</p>
-
-<p>‘We shall see,’ replied Edgar. ‘Of one thing you
-may be quite sure: I shall look upon Australia as my
-home if I have to earn my living there.’</p>
-
-<p>Robert Foster was heartily glad to welcome his
-son’s schoolmate at Elm Lodge. He was a believer
-in schoolboy friendships when judiciously made.</p>
-
-<p>Elm Lodge was not a large place, but it was old-fashioned
-and picturesque, and overlooked the
-Thames near Twickenham. Robert Foster, in<span class="pagenum">[40]</span>
-addition to being a great cricketer, was a skilful
-oarsman, and many a Thames waterman had found
-it a hard task to row with him. He was also an
-enthusiastic fisherman, and knew the favourite haunts
-of the famous Thames trout, and where many a good
-jack was to be found. There was a boathouse at
-Elm Lodge, and Edgar always anticipated a good
-time on the great river.</p>
-
-<p>Doris Foster was a bright, merry girl of seventeen,
-a perfect picture of ruddy health, her cheeks untouched
-by any artificial beautifier. Nature was her
-lady’s-maid, and Doris Foster would not have
-changed her for the most skilful of tire-women. It
-was a difficult matter to keep Doris Foster indoors,
-no matter how bad the weather might be. She
-revelled in sunshine, but she loved the keen, sharp,
-frosty air of winter, and the sound of the frozen snow
-crunching beneath her tiny feet. She knew the
-names of the wild-flowers, and was well acquainted
-with their haunts, and also their habits. She was
-not a clever girl, but she was thoroughly domesticated,
-a far more desirable accomplishment. Her
-father and brother were her best friends, and she
-made but few new acquaintances. Doris Foster
-was a true-born English girl, not a forced artificial
-production such as may be encountered by the score
-in the Row, or the fashionable thoroughfares of the
-West End. She had not learned to talk slang, and
-to consider it correct to endeavour to make people
-think, ‘What a pity she is not a man!’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[41]</span></p>
-
-<p>With the enthusiasm of a schoolboy, Will Brown
-adored Doris Foster. There was no maudlin, sentimental
-love nonsense about his adoration. It was
-the pure affection and liking a healthy youth feels for
-a healthy girl.</p>
-
-<p>‘Excuse the expression, Edgar,’ he said one day,
-‘but your sister is a brick.’</p>
-
-<p>The schoolboy ‘brick’ is synonymous for everything
-that is good. When one lad calls another a
-‘brick’ there’s a ring about the word that is unmistakable.
-So, when Will Brown called his sister a
-brick, Edgar Foster heartily endorsed the sentiment.</p>
-
-<p>‘I’d like to know,’ said Will, ‘if there is anything
-she cannot do?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Several things,’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>They were sitting in a boat close to the garden
-hedge, and passing their time pleasantly enough.</p>
-
-<p>‘Enumerate some of them,’ said Will Brown incredulously.</p>
-
-<p>‘She cannot smoke,’ said Edgar solemnly; ‘nor
-can she make a speech. She would be a ghastly
-failure as a woman politician, or a leader of fashion.
-I am afraid she could not write a book, and drag all
-her female friends through a moral pillory in it. Oh,
-there are heaps of things Doris cannot do!’</p>
-
-<p>‘And a jolly good thing, too!’ said Will Brown.
-‘I hate stuck-up girls&mdash;they’re worse than spoony
-girls. Now, your sister&mdash;well, a fellow can make a
-chum of her, and all that, don’t you know.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[42]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘Comprehensive, certainly,’ laughed Edgar. ‘What
-does “all that, don’t you know” mean?’</p>
-
-<p>Will Brown waved his hand towards the flowing
-river, and was at a loss for an answer.</p>
-
-<p>Splash!</p>
-
-<p>‘What’s that?’ said Will, as he shook the water
-off his boating-jacket.</p>
-
-<p>‘That is Miss “All that, don’t you know,”’ laughed
-Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘Where is she?’ said Will, jumping up, and narrowly
-missing overturning the boat.</p>
-
-<p>‘In safety, on the other side of the hedge,’ said
-Edgar loudly. ‘She dare not come nearer, for fear
-of the consequences.’</p>
-
-<p>Splash!</p>
-
-<p>‘We had better get out of this,’ said Will.</p>
-
-<p>A merry peal of laughter sounded from the other
-side of the hedge.</p>
-
-<p>‘You lazy boys! I thought I would rouse you.
-Pull the boat round to the steps, and take me for a
-row immediately.’</p>
-
-<p>‘We decline to be ordered about,’ said Edgar.
-‘Ask politely, and your request may be granted.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Will Mr. William Brown and Mr. Edgar Foster,
-of Redbank School&mdash;ahem! College&mdash;have the goodness
-to row to the steps of Elm Lodge, where they
-will find Miss Doris Foster at home?’</p>
-
-<p>‘That’s much better,’ said Edgar. ‘Our compliments
-to Miss Doris Foster, and we hasten to comply
-with her request.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[43]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘Pull, Edgar, you lazy beggar!’ said Will, ‘for
-Elm Lodge, home, and beauty.’</p>
-
-<p>Doris Foster looked charming in her light summer
-dress and large river hat, as she stood on the steps
-leading from the lawn to the water.</p>
-
-<p>‘Your ladyship has showered many favours upon
-us of late,’ said Will Brown, as he gave her his hand
-and she stepped into the boat; ‘in fact, we are in
-danger of being overwhelmed with them.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Doris, you ought not to throw stones,’ said Edgar,
-with an attempt to be serious.</p>
-
-<p>‘I did not throw stones,’ said Doris.</p>
-
-<p>‘You hear her?’ said Edgar to Will. ‘She did not
-throw stones! I blush for my sister.’</p>
-
-<p>‘They were two half-bricks,’ said Doris. ‘Didn’t
-they splash!’ And she laughed merrily.</p>
-
-<p>‘There’s prevarication!’ said Edgar. ‘A brick
-in this instance is to all intents and purposes a
-stone.’</p>
-
-<p>‘A brick is a brick,’ said Doris; ‘therefore it cannot
-be a stone.’</p>
-
-<p>‘A brick is not a brick when it is only half a brick,’
-said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘If you don’t stop it,’ said Will Brown, ‘I’ll&mdash;&mdash;Look
-out!’ he shouted.</p>
-
-<p>There was a bend in the river, and they did not
-see the small launch until it was nearly on to them.
-The swirl she made in the water caused their boat to
-dance up and down in the swell.</p>
-
-<p>‘All your fault,’ said Edgar to his sister. ‘But,<span class="pagenum">[44]</span>
-thank goodness! it has put an end to your argument.’</p>
-
-<p>They had a pleasant row, and came back glowing
-with health, and very hungry. Luncheon proved
-most acceptable, and was thoroughly enjoyed by
-these young people with good appetites and no
-thoughts of indigestion.</p>
-
-<p>Doris Foster missed Will Brown when he left Elm
-Lodge, for she had come to regard him as a sincere
-friend. She had, however, other things to occupy
-her mind now, for Edgar was to sail for Australia in
-a couple of months. She dreaded the parting with
-her brother, not only on her own account, but because
-she knew how much her father would miss him. She
-was half inclined to be angry with Edgar because he
-had chosen to go abroad. At the same time, she
-admired the spirit of adventure that tempted him
-away from a comparatively easy life in England.
-She knew if she had been a man she would have
-followed her brother’s example.</p>
-
-<p>Robert Foster made the most of the time his son
-was to remain at home.</p>
-
-<p>‘I shall be sorry to part with you,’ he said to
-Edgar; ‘but you are young, and I am not old. So I
-hope, ere many years have gone, we may meet again.
-I believe it will do you good to go abroad. One
-thing you must bear in mind: come home again if
-you do not like it.’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar Foster was fond of the sea, and, as his father
-knew the owner of one of the principal lines of sailing<span class="pagenum">[45]</span>
-ships trading to Australia, he had decided to make
-the voyage in the <em>Distant Shore</em>, a large vessel holding
-a quick record.</p>
-
-<p>‘You are quite sure you prefer to go out in a sailing
-vessel?’ said Robert Foster. ‘It will be a tedious
-voyage.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I am sure the time will pass quickly,’ said Edgar.
-‘I love the sea. Those big steamers are too much
-like hotels, and I cannot bear hotel life.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Please yourself, my boy. The <em>Distant Shore</em> is a
-fine vessel, and Captain Manton a good seaman.
-He’ll look after you well, I feel sure.’</p>
-
-<p>The weeks rolled all too quickly by, and the time
-drew near when the <em>Distant Shore</em> was to sail for
-Sydney.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar Foster paid a visit to Redbank, and was
-heartily welcomed by his old schoolmates, who
-wished him a prosperous voyage and success in the
-new country. Dr. Hook was very kind to him, and
-gave him some good advice.</p>
-
-<p>As Edgar shook hands with him, Dr. Hook said:</p>
-
-<p>‘An old friend of mine once gave me what I consider
-good advice. He said: “Don’t fret, keep your
-temper, and mind your own business.” If you carry
-out his precepts, I think you will do well.’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar did not feel in very good spirits when his
-last night at home arrived. As he looked around the
-cosy room, he wondered how many years it would be
-before he saw it again, and the dear ones he must
-leave behind. He said to himself he must work hard<span class="pagenum">[46]</span>
-and earn a good name, and then he would come home
-and be received with open arms.</p>
-
-<p>His father was kinder than ever on this their evening
-of parting, and Doris did all in her power to make
-things bright and cheerful. Edgar never ceased to
-remember this particular night, and it came vividly
-before him on many occasions when far away.</p>
-
-<p>Robert Foster and his daughter saw Edgar sail in
-the <em>Distant Shore</em>, and waved him a tearful farewell.</p>
-
-<p>As Edgar stood looking at them he felt lonely, and
-when they gradually receded from his sight he heaved
-a sigh, and felt a choking sensation in his throat.</p>
-
-<p>When Robert Foster and Doris reached Elm Lodge
-again he kissed her fondly, and said in a broken
-voice:</p>
-
-<p>‘God knows when we shall see him again, Doris.
-You are all I have left now; you must not leave your
-father.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Edgar will return some day,’ she said quietly. ‘I
-will take his place until then. When he comes back
-you will forget all the sorrow of parting.’</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_V">CHAPTER V.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">A FURIOUS STORM.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Hundreds of people hurrying to business in Sydney
-at an early hour in the morning cast anxious eyes at
-the dull leaden sky, across which heavy clouds rolled,<span class="pagenum">[47]</span>
-hanging over the harbour and the city. They also
-gazed in wonderment, and with feelings not devoid of
-awe, upon a mass of peculiar white clouds banked up
-in an exactly opposite direction to the harbour. These
-clouds were of a fleecy whiteness, balloon-shaped, and
-clung together until they were heaped almost mountains
-high.</p>
-
-<p>There was a peculiar stillness about the atmosphere&mdash;the
-calm that usually precedes a storm. All day
-long the clouds hung suspended overhead, and towards
-the middle of the afternoon it grew much darker.
-People residing at harbour suburbs hurried home as
-fast as possible, and were glad when they were ferried
-safely across the water.</p>
-
-<p>The Watson’s Bay ferry-boat was throwing off from
-the landing-stage as a well-built man in a pilot’s coat
-jumped on board.</p>
-
-<p>‘Nearly missed it, Wal,’ said the skipper of the
-<em>Fairy</em>. ‘The next boat will have a rough passage, I
-reckon.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes; it’s been brewing all day,’ replied Walter
-Jessop. ‘We shall have a terrible night, I fear. It
-will be dangerous near the coast to-night. Luckily,
-there’s no vessel been sighted anywhere handy.’</p>
-
-<p>The speaker was evidently a seaman. He had an
-honest, open face, weather-beaten and tanned with
-exposure, and his hands were hard and big and used
-to hard work.</p>
-
-<p>Pilot Jessop was well known in Sydney. In years
-gone by he had done good service as a pilot, and he<span class="pagenum">[48]</span>
-still followed his calling, but fortune had favoured him
-in the shape of a windfall from a rich relation, and he
-only took on work when he felt inclined.</p>
-
-<p>Walter Jessop knew the coast of Australia as well
-as any man, and he had sailed up most of the harbours
-and rivers between Adelaide and Normanton. Such
-a man was not likely to make many mistakes about
-the weather, and he knew what these lowering clouds
-that had been hanging about all day meant.</p>
-
-<p>The <em>Fairy</em> was one of the smallest ferry boats on
-the harbour, and at this time Watson’s Bay was not
-such an important place as it is now. Pilot Jessop,
-however, found it handy to live at Watson’s Bay, as
-it was under the great shadows of South Head, beyond
-which lay the open sea. Many a ship had he piloted
-to a safe anchorage in the harbour.</p>
-
-<p>When the landing-stage was reached, he bade the
-skipper of the <em>Fairy</em> good-night, and walked to his
-home, which nestled in a sheltered position high up
-above the harbour.</p>
-
-<p>A bright little woman, clad in a homely dress, gave
-him a hearty welcome. Mrs. Jessop was just the wife
-for such a man, and they had only one regret: they
-had no child to lavish their affection upon.</p>
-
-<p>‘We’re in for a storm,’ said Wal Jessop, as he was
-generally called. ‘I hope there’s no vessel making
-for the harbour; they’d better keep away from our
-coast to-night.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I’m right glad you have no occasion to go to sea
-on such nights,’ said his wife. ‘It would make an old<span class="pagenum">[49]</span>
-woman of me before my time if you were out in these
-storms.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I weathered a good many storms before I met
-you,’ said Wal Jessop, ‘but I don’t feel much inclined
-for it again when I come to such comfortable quarters
-as these.’</p>
-
-<p>A low murmuring sound could be heard, a door
-banged, and the windows creaked ominously.</p>
-
-<p>‘It’s coming,’ said Jessop. ‘Make everything
-snug, my lass; there’ll be a perfect hurricane before
-morning.’</p>
-
-<p>As Wal Jessop sat at the well-laden tea-table, he
-suddenly put down his knife and fork, and drew a
-paper from his coat-pocket.</p>
-
-<p>‘I’d quite forgotten,’ he said. ‘I hope they’re not
-making for Sydney in such a gale as this will be.’</p>
-
-<p>‘What ship do you mean?’ asked his wife.</p>
-
-<p>‘The <em>Distant Shore</em> is due here early next week.
-It’s Saturday, and the agents expect her on Monday
-at the latest. I hope Captain Manton has not made
-an extra quick passage. She’s a clipping sailer, is the
-<em>Distant Shore</em>, and he’s a bit venturesome&mdash;likes to
-make a rapid run. I shouldn’t wonder if she’s not far
-away to-night.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I hope not,’ said Mrs. Jessop.</p>
-
-<p>Captain Manton often paid a visit to the Jessops
-when in Sydney, and the pilot and his wife were very
-fond of his company.</p>
-
-<p>As the evening wore on the storm raged in all its
-fury. Every hour seemed to add to the velocity of<span class="pagenum">[50]</span>
-the gale. A great roar like distant thunder could be
-heard in the cottage as the waves dashed against the
-mighty rocks of South Head, and then rushed back,
-baffled and angry.</p>
-
-<p>‘It’s beginning to rain,’ said Wal Jessop; ‘I’ll just
-see if the pony’s all right before it comes on faster.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Be quick in again,’ said his wife, ‘or you’ll be
-drenched.’</p>
-
-<p>A fierce gust came in as he opened the door and
-quickly shut it again.</p>
-
-<p>‘It doesn’t rain after all,’ he said, as he looked up
-at the dark clouds through which the moon occasionally
-shone in fitful gleams.</p>
-
-<p>As if to convince him he had made a mistake, and
-that his first surmise was correct, a shower of heavy
-drops fell upon him. He stood still and thought for
-a moment; then he touched the wet on his coat and
-tasted it. It was salt, and he knew the waves outside
-were running high and dashing showers of salt spray
-over the top of the rocks, and the wind carried it
-across the village.</p>
-
-<p>‘Such a sea is worth having a look at,’ he thought.
-‘I’ll have a walk up to the cliffs before I turn in.’</p>
-
-<p>He told his wife it was the spray from the waves
-being dashed on the rocks, and she knew it must be
-terrible out at sea.</p>
-
-<p>Walter Jessop could not rest. He felt uneasy, and
-had an undefinable feeling that some dire catastrophe
-was about to take place. He sat down and tried to
-read the evening paper, but nothing in it interested<span class="pagenum">[51]</span>
-him. His pipe continually went out because he was
-so deep in thought he failed to draw sufficiently to
-keep it alight. His wife watched him with anxious
-eyes. She had seen him like this before when he
-had been affected by a presentiment of evil. He got
-up from his chair and restlessly paced about the
-room.</p>
-
-<p>‘Have a glass of something,’ said his wife. ‘It’s
-getting on for bedtime.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Don’t mind if I do,’ he said. ‘I’ll tell you what
-it is, lass: I fear there’ll be something awful happen
-before the night’s over.’</p>
-
-<p>‘It’s the storm makes you feel like that,’ said his
-wife. ‘This will do you good.’ And she handed
-him a glass of toddy.</p>
-
-<p>Wal Jessop drank it with evident relish. Then he
-looked at his watch, and said:</p>
-
-<p>‘Ten o’clock. I’ll just go up on the cliffs, and
-have a look out to sea; I’ll never rest if I don’t.’</p>
-
-<p>‘If you say you’ll go I know you mean it,’ said
-his wife; ‘but do be careful. You might get blown
-over the rocks.’</p>
-
-<p>‘There’s a moon,’ he said; ‘and I’m more likely
-to be blown away from the rocks than over them.
-I’ll not be gone long. You go to bed.’</p>
-
-<p>He put on a thick coat and slouch hat, kissed his
-wife, and then went out into the stormy night.</p>
-
-<p>‘If he fancies I’m going to bed until he comes
-home he’s mistaken,’ said Mrs. Jessop to herself.
-‘Oh, these sailors! A furious gale seems to tempt<span class="pagenum">[52]</span>
-them outside when other folk are only too anxious to
-hide their heads under the bedclothes.’</p>
-
-<p>Wal Jessop felt the full force of the wind as he
-made his way up a narrow path towards the top of
-the cliff. He battled with it, and seemed to take a
-fierce delight in overcoming it. A terrific gust nearly
-swept him off his feet, and he muttered:</p>
-
-<p>‘Nearly had me that time, but I’ll beat the winds
-as I have done before. There’s some satisfaction in
-fighting a gale like this, but I’d sooner be doing it
-here than out at sea yonder.’</p>
-
-<p>At last he reached the roadway, which he crossed,
-and then climbed up again towards the top of the
-rocks. As he made his way slowly the salt spray
-dashed into his face, and wetted him all over. He
-could hear the waves thundering against the rocks,
-and every roar was followed by a dense shower of
-spray. When he reached the top of the rocks the
-moon came out from behind a cloud, and shed a pale
-light on the scene.</p>
-
-<p>Wal Jessop looked out to sea, and saw nothing but
-a black mass of tumultuous water and fierce waves
-chasing each other in mad sport. Then he looked
-down below and saw masses of foam tossed about
-and flung high into the air. He saw the great waves
-roll across the jutting rock, then dash furiously
-against the solid mass opposed to them, and cast up
-spray like a waterspout. This battle between the
-waves and the rocks had been going on for centuries,
-and would, he knew, continue for centuries more.<span class="pagenum">[53]</span>
-The waves, constantly baffled and defeated, had to
-retreat, but they returned again and again to the
-charge, bringing up reinforcements from their mighty
-reserves, until at last the rocks seemed to give way
-inch by inch, and their jagged, worn fronts bore
-unmistakable testimony to the fierceness of the onslaught.</p>
-
-<p>Pilot Jessop could not tear himself away from this
-scene of tumult and fierce war. He stood alone
-upon the rocks, the spray drenching him, and the
-wind whistling and whining in his ears. He knew
-there was a warm bed awaiting him at home, and yet
-he could not leave the spot. He peered out to sea,
-and saw an empty space. The moon was again
-hidden, and all was black and desolate. Suddenly
-he started, and gave vent to an exclamation. He
-thought he saw a tiny light sparkle far away out in
-the gloom. He looked again and again, but could
-see nothing. Could his eyes have deceived him?
-What could he have mistaken for a light so far out
-at sea? There it was again. He could not mistake
-it this time. There were two lights like stars; now
-he saw three. A cold, dull feeling came over him,
-and froze the blood in his veins; his heart beat
-loudly, and he put his hands to his head to think.</p>
-
-<p>Was it a ship out at sea and heading for the
-harbour on such a night as this? Surely no captain
-would be so mad and foolish as to risk passing
-through that narrow strait between the Heads in such
-a gale! He looked again and again, and the more<span class="pagenum">[54]</span>
-he looked the more he was convinced it was a vessel
-being driven on to the rocks. He knew if it was a
-ship she would be dashed into a thousand pieces and
-not a soul on board could be saved. Hoping against
-hope, he looked again. The light had gone, and he
-breathed more freely. His eyesight must have
-deceived him.</p>
-
-<p>He felt a tug at his sleeve, and turning quickly
-round, faced his wife.</p>
-
-<p>‘I could bear it no longer,’ she said; ‘you have
-been out over three hours. The suspense was
-terrible. I thought you were blown over the rocks.
-Come home, Wal, you are wet through.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Three hours!’ he exclaimed, then, knowing how
-he had been compelled to struggle to reach the rocks,
-he took his wife in his arms, strained her to his
-breast, kissed her fondly, and said:</p>
-
-<p>‘You are a brave little woman, and I’m a brute for
-causing you anxiety. We will go home at once.
-This is no fit place for you.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Wal, Wal!’ she cried as she stared over his
-shoulder with wide, terror-stricken eyes; ‘look,
-there’s a light; two lights, three! It’s a ship!
-Lord have mercy on ’em!’</p>
-
-<p>‘Good God, she’s seen it! Then my eyes have
-not deceived me. That’s what I’ve been watching
-this hour,’ he said.</p>
-
-<p>They looked together out across the furious ocean,
-and saw the lights plainly now.</p>
-
-<p>Mary Jessop hid her face on her husband’s shoulder<span class="pagenum">[55]</span>
-and sobbed aloud. She knew not a single man,
-woman, or child on the ill-fated vessel could expect
-to live when the ship was shattered to pieces. As
-she stood there in the rocks with the wind roaring
-around her, safe in her husband’s strong arms, she
-offered up a prayer to the God who rules the seas to
-save the ship from destruction.</p>
-
-<p>As for Pilot Jessop, he seemed for the moment
-incapable of action. He quickly recovered, and said
-in a hollow voice:</p>
-
-<p>‘Suppose it’s the <em>Distant Shore</em>?’</p>
-
-<p>His wife shuddered and said:</p>
-
-<p>‘Can nothing be done to save her?’</p>
-
-<p>‘No, Mary; she’s beyond control. No captain
-would be here on such a night if he had control of his
-ship. She’s helpless, and we are helpless; but we
-can rouse the folk and do all we can. Come.’</p>
-
-<p>They went down the rocky path and hurried to the
-village, where, despite the gale, the people were sleeping
-soundly.</p>
-
-<p>They roused two or three men, and telling them to
-pass the word on, they fought their way back to the
-top of the cliffs.</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_VI">CHAPTER VI.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">THE ‘DISTANT SHORE.’</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>The <em>Distant Shore</em> made a quick voyage towards
-Australia, and her captain felt sure of beating the<span class="pagenum">[56]</span>
-sailing record by two or three days. Captain Manton
-had taken a great liking to Edgar Foster, who spent
-many a pleasant hour in his cabin with him. On
-this voyage Captain Manton was accompanied by
-his wife and child, a bright little girl about three
-years of age. The child was very fond of Edgar,
-and he played with the little one on deck for hours
-at a stretch.</p>
-
-<p>‘I never remember a more favourable voyage,’
-said the captain to Edgar one morning; ‘we ought
-to be in Sydney harbour in the course of two or
-three days. Looks as though we are going to finish
-with a squall,’ he added, pointing to the restless
-clouds overhead.</p>
-
-<p>‘I am quite anxious to weather a storm before
-we get to our journey’s end,’ said Edgar, smiling,
-‘or I shall fancy I have not been to sea.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Your wish is likely to be gratified,’ he said; ‘but
-the <em>Distant Shore</em> is a good ship, and it will be an
-uncommon bad storm she cannot sail through safely.’</p>
-
-<p>‘With a good ship and a clever captain we have
-not much to fear,’ said Edgar. ‘Here’s little Eva
-coming for her morning romp. I should have been
-quite lonely on board without her.’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar held out his arms, and the child ran into
-them. He lifted her above his head, where she
-laughed with delight, and looked at her father with
-merry eyes.</p>
-
-<p>‘Pass her on to me,’ said Captain Manton; and
-Edgar tossed her into her father’s arms.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[57]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘Back again,’ she cried, and she was tossed to
-Edgar again.</p>
-
-<p>The captain watched them for a few moments as
-they played on the deck, and then cast an anxious
-look at the sky. He knew they were in for a storm,
-probably a bad one.</p>
-
-<p>During the night Edgar heard the vessel creak
-and groan, and her timbers strain in a most unusual
-manner. The sailors were hard at work on deck,
-and he knew the storm must have burst upon them.
-He turned over in his berth, and felt thankful the
-<em>Distant Shore</em> was such a safe vessel, and her captain
-a trustworthy seaman.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar had some difficulty in reaching the deck
-next morning. Not a single passenger was in the
-saloon as he staggered through, holding on first to
-one thing, and then another.</p>
-
-<p>‘You had better keep below, sir,’ said one of the
-stewards; ‘you’ll stand a good chance of being blown
-overboard if you venture on deck. We are finishing
-up with a real bad storm.’</p>
-
-<p>‘That’s just what I want to see,’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘You can’t get out that way,’ said the man; ‘the
-hatches are down. Come this way, and I will show
-you how to get on deck.’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar followed the man to the fore-part of the
-ship, and was well knocked about during the
-journey.</p>
-
-<p>‘Go up there, and you’ll be able to see what it’s
-like before you go on deck,’ said the steward.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[58]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘Just as well to look before I leap, I suppose,’
-said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘I don’t think you’ll want to leap on deck when
-you have had a look out,’ was the reply.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar climbed up the steep steps, holding on with
-all his might. When he reached the top he saw
-there was a thick glass with bars across it. He could
-see well enough through the glass, and the sight
-almost took away his breath.</p>
-
-<p>A huge wave towered high above the ship, and
-Edgar thought if it came over the deck the vessel
-must surely go down. The <em>Distant Shore</em> gave a
-mad plunge, and he nearly lost his foothold. The
-ship seemed to dive down into the depths of the
-sea, and then, coming up again, shook herself all
-over. On second thoughts Edgar decided to remain
-where he was, or rather down below in the saloon.
-Captain Manton entered a few minutes after Edgar
-succeeded in finding his way back.</p>
-
-<p>‘Well, my lad, you’ve got a storm at last,’ said
-the captain; ‘I hope you are satisfied. My wife and
-Eva are in their cabin, and I don’t think they are
-quite so pleased as you are about the weather. It will
-get worse before it mends.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Worse?’ said Edgar. ‘Why, it’s blowing a regular
-hurricane, and the sea is running as high as the
-ship.’</p>
-
-<p>‘How did you find that out?’ said Captain
-Manton. ‘I gave orders no one was to be allowed
-on deck.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[59]</span></p>
-
-<p>Edgar explained, and the captain was satisfied.</p>
-
-<p>‘So you did not like the look of things?’ he asked.</p>
-
-<p>‘No,’ said Edgar. ‘I think I am safer here,
-although I confess I feel a little queer.’</p>
-
-<p>Captain Manton smiled as he replied:</p>
-
-<p>‘Sea-sickness will soon cure you of a longing for
-storms. I’d advise you to turn in before you have
-to be carried to your berth.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, it’s not so bad as that,’ said Edgar. ‘It will
-pass off.’</p>
-
-<p>‘No doubt,’ said the captain with a meaning smile.</p>
-
-<p>All that day the storm raged, and the <em>Distant
-Shore</em> battled with it. As night came on, Captain
-Manton became anxious. He knew they were nearing
-the coast of New South Wales, and the wind
-was driving them straight in that direction. He tried
-in vain to alter the ship’s course, but he could not
-keep out to sea; some uncontrollable current appeared
-to drive the vessel along. As the night wore on
-there were no signs of the storm abating; in fact, the
-gale was worse than ever.</p>
-
-<p>A terrible crash made everyone on board quake.
-A huge sea dashed over the ship, sweeping her deck
-well-nigh clear. The boats were smashed to atoms;
-two sailors were washed overboard, and Captain
-Manton was dashed against his cabin and almost
-stunned. Before the <em>Distant Shore</em> could right herself
-another merciless sea swept over her, and at the
-same moment the rudder chain snapped, and the
-vessel swung helplessly round.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[60]</span></p>
-
-<p>Captain Manton at once realized the danger they
-were in. By the fitful light of the moon he saw the
-terrible havoc the waves had made on deck. Then
-he saw something that made his heart quail; it was
-the flashing of the light from South Head lighthouse.
-Well might a brave man tremble at the thought of
-being dashed to pieces on those great rocks. His
-ship was no longer under control, and he could do
-nothing to save her from being driven to destruction.
-Had the steering gear held firm he might have tried
-to dash through the Heads into the harbour. That
-would have been a mere chance; but even this,
-small as it was, had gone. Despair seized upon him,
-and held him in chains; but he burst the bonds at
-the thought of the lives of those on board. They
-were still some distance from the Heads; the light
-flashed out many miles to sea. He must prepare
-them as quietly as possible to await their fate.</p>
-
-<p>Leaving the mate in charge of the vessel, he went
-below. He made for Edgar’s cabin and entered
-without knocking.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar was wide awake and dressed, and he knew
-there must be something wrong when he saw the
-captain.</p>
-
-<p>‘What is it?’ said Edgar. ‘Any danger?’ and he
-tumbled out of his berth.</p>
-
-<p>‘You are a brave lad,’ said Captain Manton, ‘and
-I have come to you first. There is no time to lose.
-We are in deadly peril. I have no control over the
-ship, and we are being blown straight for the rocks.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[61]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘What can I do?’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>He was pale, but perfectly calm.</p>
-
-<p>‘Very little,’ said Captain Manton; ‘but you can
-set a good example. A panic will only make matters
-worse. If the passengers are kept under control, it
-may be possible to save some of them. Will you
-call them up in the saloon cabin? Tell them to dress,
-and try and calm them. I will tell my wife and take
-her and Eva up with me. You will find them in my
-cabin. If it comes to the worst, do what you can
-for them. I must stick to the ship. I’ll save her if
-I can, but I see no chance at present. Good-bye!’</p>
-
-<p>He held out his hand and Edgar gripped it hard.
-They looked firmly into each other’s eyes. They
-were not afraid of facing death. Edgar seemed to
-have grown older, and Captain Manton saw the look
-of determination on his face and thought to himself:</p>
-
-<p>‘This lad will not fail me. He will give his life to
-save those I love.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Good-bye,’ said Edgar, and without another word
-he went to rouse his fellow-passengers.</p>
-
-<p>So well did he accomplish his difficult task that,
-although the peril they were in was understood, there
-was no panic. Happily there were very few women
-and children on board, and the men behaved well.</p>
-
-<p>It was an awful sight, Edgar thought: the saloon
-filled with people hastening to their death, awaiting
-the summons from the captain, ‘All hands on deck,’
-which meant they were to sell their lives as dearly as
-possible. The very suddenness of the danger appeared<span class="pagenum">[62]</span>
-to have taken all sense of fear away. Not
-a word was spoken; the sobbing of children, and the
-half-smothered, heart-rending groan of some poor
-mother, could alone be heard.</p>
-
-<p>A great rush of wind, followed by a loud shout,
-aroused them:</p>
-
-<p>‘All hands on deck!’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar led the way, and then stood by while the
-women and children were helped up the stairs. The
-men followed. Edgar was the last to leave the
-saloon. Once on deck he saw what their danger
-was, and from whence it came. The lighthouse stood
-high up on the rocks, flashing across the sea, and they
-were so near now that the rays lighted up the faces
-of those in deadly peril on the doomed ship. Edgar
-forced his way towards the captain’s cabin, and found
-Mrs. Manton and Eva crouching down, overcome with
-fear. He spoke a few words of encouragement, and
-little Eva looked up into his face with wistful eyes.</p>
-
-<p>Then Edgar looked round the ship as the light
-flashed on it again. He saw pale, blanched faces all
-round him, men clinging in desperation to ropes
-and bars, and women holding their children fast,
-themselves held by strong men’s disengaged arms.
-It was an awful sight, but Edgar felt no fear for himself
-as he looked at it. He thought of the grand
-voyage they had gone through, and how near they
-were to their destination. The good ship was struggling
-on, and after going these thousands of miles
-was to be dashed to pieces at the very entrance to<span class="pagenum">[63]</span>
-the harbour of safety. His mind wandered to those
-at home, and he seemed to see his father and sister
-sitting in the dear old room at Elm Lodge, as on
-that last night in the home he loved so well. Their
-voices seemed to ring in his ears, giving him hope
-and encouragement. He smiled faintly as he
-imagined he could hear his father say:</p>
-
-<p>‘You’re in a tight fix, my lad, but never despair;
-be brave and fight to the end.’</p>
-
-<p>A loud cry of despair echoed through the night.
-It was wafted to the watchers on the rocks, who
-stood there helpless, unable to lend a hand to save
-the men and women going to sure destruction.
-Again it rose above the roar of the sea, and Edgar
-shuddered as he heard it.</p>
-
-<p>Well might the doomed ones cry aloud. To the
-right of them, not many yards away, yawned a large
-opening between the gigantic rocky Heads. Through
-that opening lay safety and rest, and yet no power
-on earth could drive the <em>Distant Shore</em> through it.
-Facing them was another gap, but there was no
-opening there; the solid rock rose straight out of the
-sea. On came the <em>Distant Shore</em> through the boiling,
-seething mass of waters.</p>
-
-<p>Captain Manton stood at his post. Once he cast
-his eyes in the direction of his cabin, and a satisfied
-smile played over his face as he saw Edgar there.</p>
-
-<p>‘My life for theirs, O God!’ he cried.</p>
-
-<p>He was not a man given to many prayers, but he
-believed his cry would be heard.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[64]</span></p>
-
-<p>Edgar looked ahead. He saw the vessel heaved
-high upon the waves; he saw the merciless rock in
-front. There was not a moment to spare. He
-rushed into the cabin.</p>
-
-<p>‘Give me Eva,’ he said. ‘You will have a better
-chance alone.’</p>
-
-<p>The mother pressed her child to her heart and
-smothered her with kisses.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar snatched the child away and sprang out of
-the cabin. At the same moment there was a terrific
-crash, a rending and splitting of timbers, cries and
-groans, shrieks for help, and strange, unearthly
-sounds.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar, with the child firmly clasped in his arms,
-was hurled against the side of the vessel. He felt it
-give way, and as he glanced round he saw the ship
-shattered into a thousand pieces, and great timbers
-hurled high into the air. Then he felt the water
-rush over him, he was lifted off his feet and flung
-into the furious waves, with little Eva still clasped
-firm in his arms.</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_VII">CHAPTER VII.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">WHAT THE MORNING BROUGHT FORTH.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>And what of the watchers on South Head? Wal
-Jessop’s summons had been obeyed, and a small
-knot of men, and one or two women, stood looking
-out to sea at the doomed ship.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[65]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘What is she, Wal?’ said one man. ‘Do you know
-her name?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Not for certain; but I’m afraid it’s the <em>Distant
-Shore</em>,’ replied Jessop.</p>
-
-<p>‘Captain Manton? I hope not,’ was the reply.</p>
-
-<p>‘She’s helpless,’ said Jessop. ‘There’s no control
-over that ship. It’s awful! Here we are, and cannot
-lend a helping hand. No boat could live in such a
-sea; no man could swim near those rocks.’</p>
-
-<p>They saw the ship lifted upon the top of the waves,
-and then sink out of sight again. The large vessel
-was no more to the merciless sea than a mere cork.</p>
-
-<p>‘It will not be many minutes now,’ said Jessop to
-his wife; and she shuddered, and stepped back from
-the cliffs. ‘Go home, Mary,’ he said; ‘this is no
-place for you.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I’ll face it now I’m here,’ she said; ‘the crash will
-be awful. Can nothing be done to save them?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Nothing,’ he replied. ‘We must wait and see
-what the morning brings forth; the sea may have
-gone down by then. There’s very little hope that
-anyone will be saved.’</p>
-
-<p>They crowded dangerously near the edge of the
-cliffs, and strained their eyes in the direction of the
-ship.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly the vessel shot upright under them, deep
-down below. She was heaved forward with tremendous
-force on the waves, and then came the crash, which
-seemed to shake the rock upon which they stood. It
-was an awful sound, this rending of timbers, the<span class="pagenum">[66]</span>
-grinding and splitting to pieces of a fine ship, with
-her living freight, within a few yards of the harbour.</p>
-
-<p>Cries came up from this abyss and made strong
-men tremble and weep. Cries for help, and they
-could not help, although there was not a man
-amongst them but would have risked his life cheerfully
-had he thought there was the slightest hope of
-saving those on board.</p>
-
-<p>They heard the ship grinding on the rocks, they
-heard groans and shrieks, and in a few moments
-there came an awful stillness. Even the waves
-seemed awed by this terrible disaster, and there was
-a lull in the storm. The wind dropped quickly and
-moaned dismally.</p>
-
-<p>Wal Jessop lay flat down, and, while a man held
-his legs, peered into the depths below, but he
-could see nothing but the white foam from the waves.
-There was not a trace of the vessel, so far as he could
-make out.</p>
-
-<p>‘We must wait till morning, but it’s weary work,’
-he said. ‘Would to God we could do something to
-help them! They’re beyond help now, I’m afraid.
-Poor Manton!’</p>
-
-<p>‘Then, you feel sure it’s the <em>Distant Shore</em>?’</p>
-
-<p>‘I have a presentiment it is. She’s due shortly,
-and Manton always liked to make a quick passage.
-If it is the <em>Distant Shore</em>, it will be the last trip he
-will ever make,’ said Jessop.</p>
-
-<p>‘What shall we do as soon as it’s light?’</p>
-
-<p>Wal Jessop was always the man addressed; the<span class="pagenum">[67]</span>
-others recognised him as the guiding hand in this
-trouble.</p>
-
-<p>‘We must have ropes ready,’ he said. ‘I’m going
-down the rocks as soon as it’s light.’</p>
-
-<p>‘No, no,’ said his wife; ‘you must not, Wal. It
-will mean death to you, and then to me. If the rope
-broke you would be dashed to pieces. Wait until
-you can row round through the Heads.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Nay, my lass,’ he said kindly; ‘even if the gale
-drops, the sea will be too rough for any boat to reach
-the rocks below. I must go down. There’ll be no
-danger, with a stout rope and sturdy arms to hold
-me. Think of it, lass&mdash;I might save a life. It’s
-worth the risk, if only for the chance.’</p>
-
-<p>She knew it would be useless to try and dissuade
-him; but she determined to remain and watch.</p>
-
-<p>It was weary work waiting for the light to come.
-Ropes had been procured, and a heavy crowbar
-driven firmly down.</p>
-
-<p>‘No danger of them breaking,’ said Wal Jessop as
-he handled the ropes. ‘You must keep the rope
-well away from the rock as you lower me down; if it
-frays on a jagged sharp edge it might break.’</p>
-
-<p>At last daylight began to appear, and in these
-climes there is not long to wait before it is quite light.</p>
-
-<p>As the men looked over the cliffs they could see no
-sign of any living creature. Spars and timbers had
-been dashed upon the rocks, and remained there, but
-they were the only signs of the wreck.</p>
-
-<p>‘If timber can lodge there,’ said Jessop, ‘maybe<span class="pagenum">[68]</span>
-some poor fellow has managed to be cast up out of
-reach of the waves. Make ready quickly; we must
-lose no time.’</p>
-
-<p>The men set to work with a will. The stoutest
-rope was not long enough to reach to the foot of the
-rocks, and another long one had to be fastened on.
-The end was made fast to the iron bar, bags were
-put along the edge of the cliff to prevent the rope
-fraying, and, when Wal Jessop had inspected everything,
-and found all right, he tied the rope round his
-waist, and stood ready to make the descent. It was
-a perilous task, for the wind was still high and the
-face of the rocks dangerous, having so many sharp
-projections against which he might be knocked as he
-was lowered down.</p>
-
-<p>He kissed his wife, and bade her think only of the
-duty he had to perform; and if there was a spice of
-danger in it, why, so much the better, and the more
-credit to a man for undertaking it.</p>
-
-<p>‘You ought to be proud I’m going to do it,’ he
-said; ‘there’s not a man here who does not envy me
-the job, and would like to take it on himself.’</p>
-
-<p>‘That’s so,’ said one of the men. ‘It’s because
-we have such respect for your husband that we’re
-letting him have first turn. If he wants to go down
-a second time, I reckon there’ll be a dispute about it.’</p>
-
-<p>Wal Jessop crawled to the edge of the rocks, and
-then, taking a firm hold of the rope, slipped quickly
-over. Two men held the rope near the edge, the
-others were behind, and one man stood watching<span class="pagenum">[69]</span>
-Jessop, giving the signal when to stop and when
-to lower.</p>
-
-<p>The wind was blowing strong from the sea, and it
-took Wal Jessop all his time to keep himself clear of
-the rocks. He dared not push off with his feet because
-the wind swung him back violently. He was
-bruised and scratched, and his clothes were torn, when
-he reached a rock above the level of the waves, and
-signalled to stop lowering.</p>
-
-<p>‘He’s down,’ said the man giving orders to the
-others, ‘and in a safe place, too.’</p>
-
-<p>Mary Jessop felt thankful for this, but she would
-not be at rest until her husband reached the top
-again.</p>
-
-<p>Wal Jessop unfastened the rope and left it dangling.
-He then sat down and looked around him. Those
-above could merely see a small figure contemplating
-the scene. On all sides there was ample evidence of
-a wreck, but it seemed to Wal Jessop the vessel had
-been shattered to atoms.</p>
-
-<p>‘Not much chance of anyone being saved,’ he
-thought sadly. ‘How could they be dashed against
-these rocks and live?’</p>
-
-<p>He scrambled along from rock to rock and found
-very little. A hat or a coat he came across, lodged
-high up on some projection. There was plenty of
-timber and odds and ends, but not a sign of any
-living soul. He searched in one direction, towards
-the Heads, for about an hour, and then began to make
-his way in the opposite direction. It was hard work,<span class="pagenum">[70]</span>
-for the sea was still rough and the wind high, and it
-was difficult for him to obtain a firm foothold on
-the slippery slabs and slanting rocks.</p>
-
-<p>He was about to give up his search, when he caught
-sight of something white lying on a high level piece
-of rock some distance away.</p>
-
-<p>‘Wonder what that is?’ he thought. ‘A white
-jacket, or something of the sort, I expect. Anyhow,
-now I am here, I may as well go and see.’</p>
-
-<p>He scrambled along, and as he neared the object
-that had attracted his attention, his heart began to
-beat fast. The white garment he fancied covered a
-human form. Could it be possible? Had some poor
-fellow been cast up by the sea on to a ledge of safety?
-He hurried on, in the hope that after all he might be
-able to save a human life. What a feeling of exultation
-comes over a man when he snatches a fellow-creature
-from the jaws of death! Wal Jessop had
-saved men’s lives before this time, but he was
-anxious to save someone from this fearful wreck if
-possible.</p>
-
-<p>As he struggled on over the uneven rocks, he saw
-that the ledge upon which the white object lay was
-out of the reach of the waves. His practised eyes
-saw at a glance that, if a man had been cast up on to
-this ledge, he would not be washed back by the
-receding waves. He reached the foot of the rock, and
-found it a difficult matter to get up the side. He
-walked round and found a better foothold on the
-other side. It was not long before he reached the<span class="pagenum">[71]</span>
-top, and there he saw a sight that brought tears to his
-eyes.</p>
-
-<p>Stretched on the rock lay a youth, calm and still&mdash;so
-still that Wal Jessop thought him dead. It was a
-comely face he looked upon, a face he knew would
-be fair, indeed, if life still remained to bring back
-light to the closed eyes. Clasped in the left arm
-of the youth was a child, and she also lay insensible.</p>
-
-<p>Wal Jessop looked down upon them with great
-sorrow in his heart.</p>
-
-<p>‘A brave lad this,’ he thought. ‘He must have
-fought hard to save that little lass&mdash;a brave lad,
-indeed, to risk his life for a little child.’</p>
-
-<p>He stooped over them. He had a flask of brandy
-in his coat-pocket. He placed his hand on the
-youth’s heart and felt there was a slight pulsation.
-He could not resist a loud cry of joy.</p>
-
-<p>‘He’s alive yet!’ he shouted. Then he felt the
-child’s heart. Yes, it still beat faintly.</p>
-
-<p>‘Both alive!’ he cried. ‘Thank God, they may be
-saved!’</p>
-
-<p>He forced some brandy into the youth’s mouth,
-and a few drops he gave to the child. Then he
-pulled off his coat, wrapped the little girl in it, and
-began to rub the youth’s limbs and body to try and
-restore animation.</p>
-
-<p>‘Not a case of half-drowned,’ he said. ‘They’ve
-been thrown up on to this ledge and stunned. They
-must have been insensible for some hours. He’s got<span class="pagenum">[72]</span>
-a nasty cut at the back of his head, and the little one
-has a big bruise on her temple.’</p>
-
-<p>After rubbing the youth’s hand for some time
-Wal Jessop saw signs of returning life. The sight
-gladdened him, and he redoubled his efforts.
-Presently he heard a faint sigh, the youth’s eyes
-opened, and he gazed wildly about him as though
-thinking of and looking for something. In a few
-minutes he gasped:</p>
-
-<p>‘The child! Little Eva&mdash;where&mdash;&mdash;’</p>
-
-<p>‘Safe, my lad. She’s here,’ said Wal Jessop.</p>
-
-<p>A satisfied smile passed over the youth’s face, and
-he sank again into insensibility.</p>
-
-<p>‘A brave lad,’ muttered Wal Jessop again. ‘Thinks
-of naught but the saving of that little one.’</p>
-
-<p>A faint cry made him turn his head, and he saw a
-movement under his coat.</p>
-
-<p>‘The warmth has brought her round,’ he thought.
-‘I’ll attend to her first. He won’t come round again
-yet awhile.’</p>
-
-<p>He took up the girl and she opened her eyes wide.</p>
-
-<p>‘Where is I?’ she lisped. ‘Where’s my daddy
-and my mammy? Where’s Eddy? Who is you?’
-Then, as she caught sight of the sea and the rocks,
-she began to cry.</p>
-
-<p>‘I’ll take care of you, my lamb,’ said Wal Jessop.
-‘Eddy’s asleep&mdash;look.’</p>
-
-<p>The girl looked at him and said quickly:</p>
-
-<p>‘No wake him. Eddy very tired. He carried me
-long way.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[73]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘Then, I’ll take you home and come back for him,’
-said Wal. ‘Give me a kiss, little one.’</p>
-
-<p>She put up her face and he kissed her tenderly.
-Then he took her up in his arms and carried her as
-gently as possible over the rocks back towards the
-rope. Tired and worn out, the child was soon fast
-asleep.</p>
-
-<p>‘That’s well,’ said Wal Jessop as he hurried on;
-‘she’ll not be frightened as we are hauled up.
-There’ll be something for Mary to do here. We’ve
-no young one of our own. Perhaps we are to have
-this one from the sea. We’ll see about it when the
-lad can tell us all.’</p>
-
-<p>When Wal Jessop reached the rope he gave a loud
-hallo, and held up the sleeping child. He could hear
-the ringing cheers from those on the top.</p>
-
-<p>Having made the rope fast and tied the child firmly
-round the waist, he gave the signal to haul up, and
-soon reached the top without any mishap.</p>
-
-<p>‘Here, lass, there’s a present for you,’ said Wal, as
-he laid the sleeping child in his wife’s arms.</p>
-
-<p>Mary Jessop kissed it fondly, and could find no
-words to express her feelings.</p>
-
-<p>‘There’s a lad down yonder,’ said Wal Jessop. ‘I
-must go back for him. You take the child home,
-Mary. I’ll not be long. There’s no danger. It’s a safe
-trip. I’ve been once, and I know the way. Now, lads,
-lower me down again, and we’ll soon have the young
-fellow up here. He’s a fine-looking chap, and I’m
-glad I’m the one to rescue him. Lower away, boys!’</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[74]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_VIII">CHAPTER VIII.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">IN WAL JESSOP’S COTTAGE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>When Wal Jessop reached Edgar Foster&mdash;for it was
-our hero who had been so miraculously saved from
-sudden death&mdash;he found him sitting with his back to
-the rock, and gazing out to sea with wistful eyes.
-Edgar smiled faintly as he approached, and held out
-his hand, which Wal Jessop seized in a hearty clasp.
-Edgar began to talk, but Wal Jessop told him not to
-excite himself, and to leave anything he had to say
-until they were safe and sound on the top of the
-rocks.</p>
-
-<p>‘The little one is safe,’ said Wal. ‘It was easy
-enough to take her up, but it will be more difficult
-with you, and I shall want you to help me all you
-can.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I’ll do my best,’ said Edgar, ‘but I feel very weak.
-What an awful night it was!’ And he shuddered as he
-spoke.</p>
-
-<p>‘You’ll be able to tell me about it later on,’ said
-Wal Jessop. ‘Try and walk a bit; put your arm
-round my neck, and lean on me heavily.’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar managed to stand on his feet, but he felt so
-weak he almost fell down again. However, he succeeded
-in dragging along, with Wal Jessop’s assistance,
-as far as the dangling rope. Edgar saw how
-long it was, and said:</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[75]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘Will it bear us both? You ought not to run any
-risk.’</p>
-
-<p>It’s strong enough to hold an elephant,’ said Wal;
-‘and there’s plenty of good sturdy fellows on top to
-haul us up.’</p>
-
-<p>Without further delay he proceeded to make preparations
-for the ascent. He tied the rope firmly
-under Edgar’s arms, then made a loop lower down in
-which he could fix his feet. When Wal had put his
-feet in the loop, Edgar put his feet on the top of
-Wal Jessop’s, and, facing each other, they were ready
-to be hauled up. Wal Jessop also had his arms
-round Edgar, in case the rope was not sufficient
-support for him.</p>
-
-<p>‘Do you feel firmly fixed?’ said Wal.</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes,’ replied Edgar; ‘but it will be a stiffish pull
-for those on the top.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Never you fear!’ said Wal. ‘They’ll manage it.
-It’s what they have been at all their lives, hauling in
-ropes either on board or ashore.’</p>
-
-<p>He gave the signal, and they commenced slowly to
-ascend.</p>
-
-<p>It was with a hearty cheer the men hauled them
-out of danger, and when Wal Jessop and Edgar stood
-on the top of the rock the good fellows capered with
-delight like so many schoolboys. They surrounded
-Edgar, and were so boisterous in their expressions of
-goodwill towards him, that Wal Jessop felt he ought
-to interpose, or else the excitement would be too
-much for the lad.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[76]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘Hold hard, boys!’ he shouted, forcing them back.
-‘This is my prize, and I’m going to carry him off
-home. A rest will do him good, and we shall hear
-all about his escape later on.’</p>
-
-<p>‘What ship was it?’ asked one of the men.</p>
-
-<p>‘The <em>Distant Shore</em>,’ said Edgar sadly.</p>
-
-<p>‘And the skipper?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Lost&mdash;all lost, I am afraid, but myself and the
-little one,’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>Good-natured Wal Jessop, wishing to prevent more
-painful questions, hurried Edgar Foster away from
-the scene as quickly as he could walk.</p>
-
-<p>‘Where are we going to?’ asked Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘My cottage,’ said Wal. ‘The wife has taken the
-young one, and has probably put her in bed ere
-this.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You are very kind to us,’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘I shouldn’t be much of a man if I didn’t do all I
-could for you,’ said Wal. ‘I’ll bet you’d have done
-as much for me.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I should have done my best,’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘I know it, lad, and therefore there is all the more
-pleasure in helping you. Mind the path here, it’s a
-bit rough and steep,’ said Wal.</p>
-
-<p>When they reached Wal Jessop’s cottage, Edgar
-felt exhausted, and sank helplessly into the easy-chair
-Mrs. Jessop placed ready for him. Tears stood
-in her eyes as she looked at Edgar’s youthful face,
-and thought of those who would mourn him as lost
-until they learned the truth.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[77]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘Poor lad!’ she said in a whisper to Wal. ‘He’s
-worn out, and no wonder. You must get him into
-bed, and I’ll make something hot for him.’</p>
-
-<p>‘He’ll be best there,’ said Wal. ‘Here goes!’</p>
-
-<p>He lifted Edgar out of the chair, and carried him
-into a small bedroom. He helped him off with his
-clothes, such as they were, all ragged and torn, and
-wrapped him in the blankets. Mrs. Jessop brought
-him a bowl of beef-tea and bread, and after Edgar
-had done justice to it, he fell into a sound sleep.</p>
-
-<p>‘Wonder who he is?’ said Mrs. Jessop. ‘He’s a
-fine lad.’</p>
-
-<p>‘And a brave one,’ said Wal. ‘He’ll sleep a good
-many hours, I guess. I’ll go up to Sydney by the
-boat, and give what information I can about the
-wreck. I’ll hurry back as quickly as possible. If he
-asks for me, tell him I shall not be long away.
-Where’s the child?’</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Jessop, with her finger on her lips to ensure
-silence, noiselessly opened their bedroom door.</p>
-
-<p>Fast asleep in his own bed Wal Jessop saw the
-child he had rescued from a cruel death. How calm
-and peaceful she lay; not a thought of trouble haunted
-her as she slept! One tiny hand peeped out from
-the coverlet, and Wal Jessop could not resist covering
-it with his large hand. The little one returned the
-pressure, but did not awake.</p>
-
-<p>‘I wish she belonged to us,’ he said to his wife.</p>
-
-<p>‘So do I,’ was her reply. ‘Who knows but what
-she may do, if she has lost her father and mother?’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[78]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘We shall find out all about them when I return,’
-he said. ‘Rest is what they want now, poor things.
-I’ll bring some clothes back for him. You can get
-the little one some when you go out. It will be a
-bit of fresh shopping for you,’ he added with a smile
-that brought the colour into his wife’s cheeks.</p>
-
-<p>When Wal Jessop reached Sydney, he found
-everyone in a state of excitement about the wreck,
-so many different accounts having been given by
-irresponsible persons. But he did not stay to gratify
-mere idle curiosity. He went direct to the offices of
-the Marine Board, and gave all the evidence he could
-about the wreck of the <em>Distant Shore</em>. His story was
-listened to with rapt attention, for Wal Jessop was
-a man who could be depended upon in all he did or
-said.</p>
-
-<p>At the conclusion of his story, Captain Fife, President
-of the Board, complimented him upon his
-bravery, and asked him to bring the youth he had
-rescued to the offices of the Board as soon as he was
-in a proper state to give his version of the disaster.</p>
-
-<p>‘By the way, what sort of a lad is he, Jessop?’
-asked Captain Fife.</p>
-
-<p>‘If looks go for anything, he’s one of the right sort,’
-said Wal; ‘and that he’s brave goes without saying,
-after what I have told you.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Then, I dare say I can find him something to do,’
-said Captain Fife; ‘that is, I mean, if he has no friends
-out here to help him.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I’m sure it is very kind of you,’ said Wal. ‘I<span class="pagenum">[79]</span>
-don’t know who or what he is, at present; but he’s
-been brought up a cut above me, I guess.’</p>
-
-<p>‘That may be,’ said Captain Fife, smiling; ‘but if
-he turns out as good a man as Wal Jessop, his father
-will have reason to be proud of him.’</p>
-
-<p>Wal Jessop’s honest face shone with pleasure at
-this remark, and he said:</p>
-
-<p>‘If I can be of any use to him, he’s welcome to
-all I know about Australia.’</p>
-
-<p>‘And that is more than most of us,’ said Captain
-Fife. ‘He is in good hands, at any rate. Bring him
-here as soon as you can.’</p>
-
-<p>Wal Jessop made the best of his way home. He
-avoided the busy shipping quarters, but was waylaid
-by several of his acquaintances, who knew he could
-tell them more about the wreck than anyone. The
-pressmen were also on his track, and, in order to
-quiet them, Wal Jessop gave them a short account of
-what had occurred.</p>
-
-<p>‘It’s not all I know,’ he said at the conclusion of
-his remarks; ‘but it is quite enough for you chaps
-with vivid imaginations to work upon. I reckon,
-when I read the accounts, they’ll be equal to anything
-that could have been strung together on the spot.
-Some of you have fathered stirring yarns on to me
-before now. Give me a rest this time, and I’ll forgive
-you.’</p>
-
-<p>‘We can’t let you off so easily, Wal,’ said one
-pressman. ‘If I don’t get your photo for my paper
-I shall have to find another shop to work in.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[80]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘You’ll get no photo from me,’ said Wal. ‘I’m
-not a particularly good-looking man, but I draw the
-line at those outrages in your paper, Billy.’</p>
-
-<p>When Wal Jessop arrived home, he found Edgar
-had just awoke out of a refreshing sleep, for which he
-felt much better.</p>
-
-<p>‘I have brought you some new clothes,’ said Wal;
-‘your garments were rather knocked about with
-rough usage. How do you feel now, my lad?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Excepting the pain in my head, I am all right,’
-said Edgar. ‘It is very good of you to purchase me
-clothes. I have lost all I had on board the ship. I
-put a draft in my coat-pocket, but I had to get rid of
-my coat to save our lives. I must let my father
-know I am saved, as he will be anxious about me
-when he hears of the wreck.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I’ll send a cablegram,’ said Wal. ‘We can
-manage to advance you cash enough,’ he added,
-smiling. ‘Now put on your clothes and come and
-have a chat with the lassie.’</p>
-
-<p>‘She’s a dear little child,’ said Edgar, ‘and the
-captain’s daughter.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Poor Manton!’ said Wal; ‘I fancied as much.
-She’s got the look of her father about her.’</p>
-
-<p>When Edgar appeared in the cosy room, he saw
-Eva quietly sitting on Mrs. Jessop’s knees. The
-child cried out, and slipping down, toddled towards
-him, holding out both hands.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar clasped her in his arms and kissed her
-fondly.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[81]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘Poor little Eva,’ he said. ‘I promised to save
-you if I could, and, now I have done so, I will look
-after you.’</p>
-
-<p>Eva commenced to prattle in her childish way, and
-asked for her mother.</p>
-
-<p>‘She’s gone a long way off,’ said Edgar. ‘You
-will stay with me, won’t you, dear?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes. Stay till mamma comes back,’ said Eva.
-‘Where’s daddy?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Gone with mamma,’ said Edgar. ‘He said you
-must be a good girl.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Always good girl with Eddy,’ she said, snuggling
-up against him.</p>
-
-<p>This was more than Mrs. Jessop’s motherly heart
-could stand, and she beat a hasty retreat.</p>
-
-<p>‘Me go too,’ said Eva; and Edgar let her patter
-after Mrs. Jessop.</p>
-
-<p>‘Now,’ said Wal Jessop, ‘we may as well introduce
-ourselves. I’m Pilot Walter Jessop, and am as well
-known along this coast as a good many sailors.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Edgar Foster is my name,’ said Edgar, who proceeded
-to relate how it came about he was on board
-the <em>Distant Shore</em>. He also told Wal Jessop about
-his school-days and life at home. Wal Jessop was a
-man who inspired confidence, and Edgar felt it would
-be good for him to make a friend of the man who
-had rescued him from a watery grave.</p>
-
-<p>‘We had a splendid passage,’ said Edgar, ‘until
-we were somewhere off the coast of Tasmania, I believe.
-It was then the storm commenced to brew,<span class="pagenum">[82]</span>
-and Captain Manton became anxious. We could not
-have had a better skipper, and no blame can be attached
-to him for the loss of the ship. It was a pure
-accident. The rudder chains snapped at a critical
-moment, and the ship was not under control. It was
-a terrible time, and I shall never forget it. Captain
-Manton asked me to do what I could to save his
-wife and child, as he had to try and look after the
-ship and those on board. The last I saw of him he
-was standing as cool and collected as though sailing
-calmly into port. What the agony of his mind must
-have been I fail to imagine. When the crash came
-I snatched Eva from Mrs. Manton’s arms, and
-directly afterwards I was hurled against the side of
-the vessel, and the support almost immediately gave
-way. I was pitched into the seething waves, with the
-child in my arms. For a moment I was stunned,
-but when the dazed feeling passed I caught hold of
-a floating spar, which I managed to grasp with one
-hand and to hold Eva with my other arm. The
-child was insensible from the shock, and luckily for
-us she did not know what happened.</p>
-
-<p>‘After a few minutes I scrambled on the spar,
-which was tossed up and down by the waves in a
-fearful manner. I expected every moment would be
-my last, and that we should be dashed to pieces on
-the rocks. How we escaped is really marvellous, and
-God must have been very near us at that time. One
-huge wave lifted the spar on to the rocks, and as I
-felt it roll backwards I slipped off and clung to a<span class="pagenum">[83]</span>
-jagged edge of rock. Another wave came rushing
-over us, and must have rolled me higher up the
-rocks, for I remember nothing more until I saw you
-bending over me. I can hardly realize I am saved,
-and can still hear the roar of the waves, and seem to
-feel the water dashing over me.’</p>
-
-<p>‘When you see the place where you were cast up
-by the sea,’ said Wal, ‘you will wonder still more
-that you were not dashed to pieces. I see you are
-tired now. In the morning we can talk over what is
-best to be done.’</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_IX">CHAPTER IX.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">UP COUNTRY.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Edgar Foster accompanied Wal Jessop to Sydney,
-in order to give evidence before the Marine Board as
-to the cause of the disaster to the <em>Distant Shore</em>.
-He found he was the cynosure of all eyes on the
-ferry-boat, for the morning papers had given a glowing
-account of his bravery in saving Eva.</p>
-
-<p>Wal Jessop felt proud of the fine lad by his side,
-who had so quickly recovered from his exertions,
-and seemed to have almost forgotten the horrors of
-the wreck in looking at the beautiful scene he now
-saw for the first time.</p>
-
-<p>As the ferry-boat left the landing-stage at Watson’s
-Bay, Wal Jessop pointed out the narrow passage
-through the Heads, and Edgar saw with wondering<span class="pagenum">[84]</span>
-eyes how near the ill-fated ship had been to the
-harbour of refuge.</p>
-
-<p>‘If we could only have been driven through that
-passage instead of on to the rocks,’ said Edgar, ‘we
-might all have been alive now.’</p>
-
-<p>‘It was a terrible thing to go down so near home,’
-said Wal Jessop. ‘This is one of the best and safest
-harbours in the world.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I have heard a good deal about it,’ said Edgar,
-smiling, ‘but I am not surprised at the enthusiastic
-way in which people praise its beauties. All I have
-heard or read gave me a very faint idea of the
-reality, which is far beyond any expectation I had
-formed.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I’m glad to hear that,’ replied Wal Jessop.
-‘People at times are apt to consider we “blow” too
-much about our harbour.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Too much praise cannot be bestowed upon a
-scene like this,’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>When they arrived at Circular Quay, Wal Jessop
-took his companion to the Marine Board offices,
-where he left him, and went to send a cablegram to
-Edgar’s father.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar gave his account of the wreck in a manner
-that at once won the respect of Captain Fife and
-the members of the Board. He modestly put his
-own courageous conduct in the background, and
-spoke of Captain Manton in such a manner that it
-left no doubt upon the minds of his hearers that
-everything had been done that was possible to save<span class="pagenum">[85]</span>
-the ship. Edgar’s description of the wreck and the
-bravery of Wal Jessop was given in a simple,
-straightforward style.</p>
-
-<p>Captain Fife watched Edgar narrowly, and came
-to the conclusion he was a lad to be trusted, and
-also a lad who had received a good education. After
-the Board meeting he took Edgar into his private
-office, and asked him what he intended to do.</p>
-
-<p>‘I hardly know at present,’ replied Edgar, ‘but I
-have no doubt I shall be able to obtain some kind
-of work until I can look round.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Your name seems familiar to me,’ said Captain
-Fife.</p>
-
-<p>‘Probably,’ said Edgar, smiling, ‘if you are a lover
-of cricket.’</p>
-
-<p>Captain Fife jumped up from his chair, and said
-in astonishment:</p>
-
-<p>‘Surely you are not the son of Robert Foster, who
-captained the last English eleven against our team at
-Lord’s?’</p>
-
-<p>‘I am,’ said Edgar, ‘and proud of it.’</p>
-
-<p>‘And well you may be, my lad,’ said Captain Fife.
-‘The son of such a sterling, manly cricketer as
-Robert Foster will not lack friends in Australia. I
-suppose it is needless to ask if you play?’</p>
-
-<p>‘I am very fond of the game,’ said Edgar, ‘and
-was captain of my school when I left.’</p>
-
-<p>‘We must give you a trial here,’ said Captain
-Fife, ‘but in the meantime I must try and find you
-something to do.’ He thought for a few moments,<span class="pagenum">[86]</span>
-and then said: ‘How would you like to go up country
-for a time? I have an interest in a station in the
-West, and I think you would enjoy the life. It is
-very quiet, but the change would in itself be a novelty
-to you.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I should like it immensely,’ said Edgar; ‘I do
-not care much for a town life.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I believe you lost everything in the wreck?’ said
-Captain Fife.</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes,’ replied Edgar. ‘Wal Jessop has sent a
-cablegram to my father, stating I am safe, and also
-that I lost all, so I have no doubt he will send me
-out a draft by an early mail to cover expenses.
-I do not wish to draw upon my father continually,
-and I came out here to earn my living if
-possible.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Glad to hear it,’ said Captain Fife. ‘We have
-too many young fellows out here who live upon
-money sent them from home. It is a mistaken kindness,
-as it causes them to rely upon others instead
-of themselves, and self-reliance a man must have to
-get on in this world.’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar was much impressed with what Captain
-Fife said, and knew it was sound advice he gave.</p>
-
-<p>‘My father always taught me to hold my own,’
-said Edgar, ‘and to do what is right. Of course I
-got into scrapes sometimes at school, but I never
-shirked the consequences. I fought a lad called
-Bully Rakes, and beat him, the first week I was at
-Redbank. I was in the right, and therefore I felt<span class="pagenum">[87]</span>
-confident of success, although he was a much stronger
-lad.’</p>
-
-<p>‘So you can box as well as play cricket,’ said
-Captain Fife, smiling; ‘you’ll get on all right here, I
-can see. Can you ride well?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Fairly well,’ said Edgar. ‘I followed the hounds
-during the holidays when I had an opportunity. I
-should like to have a chance in the cricket-field here.’</p>
-
-<p>‘So you shall,’ said Captain Fife. ‘I will take
-care your going up country does not injure your
-prospects in that line. We have a very good team
-on the station, and you will have plenty of practice
-to keep your hand in. Some of our best men have
-been drawn from up country.’</p>
-
-<p>It was decided that Edgar, after a week’s stay in
-Sydney with Wal Jessop, should go up to Yanda,
-and try how the life suited him.</p>
-
-<p>‘I will advance you enough money to keep you
-going,’ said Captain Fife, ‘and you can repay me
-when you have “knocked up a cheque,” as we say
-here.’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar left Captain Fife’s office feeling he had
-been most fortunate. His heart was heavy when
-he thought of the <em>Distant Shore</em> and those on board
-who had lost their lives. He could hardly realize,
-as he walked the streets of Sydney, how near he
-had been to death, and that only a day or two ago.
-He met Wal Jessop, and told him what Captain
-Fife had done.</p>
-
-<p>‘He’s a good sort,’ said Wal&mdash;‘a regular out-and-outer.<span class="pagenum">[88]</span>
-You’ll have a real good time at Yanda. It’s
-different to many stations, for the hands up there all
-pull together, and, my eye! don’t they turn out some
-good sports. Why, Tom Trundle, one of the best
-fast bowlers we ever had in the New South Wales
-team, came from Yanda. How he learned to bowl
-up there, blest if I know! but that he had learned
-he quickly proved when he tried his hand on the
-Association Ground. I’ll never forget that match,’
-went on Wal, warming to his work, as this was one
-of his favourite topics. ‘Tommy was picked to play
-for the country against the town, and the way he
-made some of the crack players’ stumps fly was a
-caution. Frank Rarey was a good bat&mdash;about our
-best&mdash;but the country chap sent Frank’s middle
-stump turning summersaults in the air like a clown
-in a circus. It was as good as a pipe of ‘bacca after
-a day’s hard graft to see the expression on Frank’s
-face when he saw that stump fly. He looked at
-Tom, and he looked at the shattered wicket. Then
-he walked into the dressing-room and meditated.
-When the innings was ended Frank went up to Tom
-and said:</p>
-
-<p>‘“You’re a wonder, Trundle. You’ll have to play
-for the colony next time.”</p>
-
-<p>‘Sure enough he did,’ added Wal; ‘and bless me
-if he didn’t come off first pop. He took seven of the
-Victorian wickets in the very next match we had
-against that colony.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Something like a triumph,’ said Edgar, who<span class="pagenum">[89]</span>
-listened to Wal’s recital with all the ardour of a
-schoolboy. ‘I only hope I may come off as well as
-he did when I have the luck to play for the colony.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Did Captain Fife say anything about it?’ asked
-Wal. ‘He’s a rare one for cricket, and, in fact, all
-sorts of sport.’</p>
-
-<p>‘He said if I went up country it would not prejudice
-my chance in the cricket-field,’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘Nor will it,’ said Wal. ‘It will be far better for
-you to go up country than remain hanging about
-town.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I shall have to leave Eva behind until some of
-Captain Manton’s friends have been communicated
-with. My father will probably see to that when he
-learns the news. I must write him a long letter by
-the next mail, and tell him all about the wreck and
-how bravely Pilot Jessop acted.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Ay,’ said Wal, with a smile, ‘and if I were you
-I’d just send him a few papers in order to let him see
-how well his son behaved. That would only be fair.
-As for the little lass, she’s welcome to stop with us as
-long as she’s allowed. It will be a sore trial to my
-wife to part with her. You see, we have no bairn of
-our own,’ added Wal, with a wistful sigh.</p>
-
-<p>‘She could not be in better hands,’ said Edgar. ‘I
-suppose,’ he asked, as a sudden idea occurred to him,
-‘there is no possible chance of anyone being saved
-from the wreck? I mean, do you think it possible
-anyone could have drifted out to sea on a portion of
-the wreck and been picked up by a passing boat?’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[90]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘That’s not possible, I think,’ said Wal. ‘No boat
-left the harbour next day, and the storm was so bad,
-I hardly think anyone could have lived through it out
-at sea.’</p>
-
-<p>‘It was just a thought occurred to me,’ said Edgar.
-‘I know every search has been made, but one clings
-to hope, even after all hope has gone.’</p>
-
-<p>Wal Jessop took Edgar round Sydney, and showed
-him several sights. The more Edgar saw of the city,
-the more he marvelled at its wondrous growth. He
-had been taught much at school about the colonies,
-but he had no idea such vast cities as Sydney lay on
-the other side of the world. Young though he was,
-he saw at once how greatly such possessions as
-Australia must enhance the power and importance of
-the mother-country. He saw how widespread the
-influence and example of England was, and every
-name and building tended to revive some association
-with the old country.</p>
-
-<p>As he sat in the Botanical Gardens with Wal
-Jessop, looking over the lovely expanse of harbour
-before them, and the hills and bays of the opposite
-shore, he said:</p>
-
-<p>‘It is only a lad’s opinion, but I think we are not
-taught sufficient about our country’s great possessions
-abroad when we are at school.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Perhaps not,’ said Wal; ‘but on this side of the
-world our youngsters are taught more about old
-England than Australia.’</p>
-
-<p>‘That should not be,’ said Edgar. ‘Every child<span class="pagenum">[91]</span>
-ought to have a thorough knowledge of his own
-country, and, from what little I know of it, the history
-of Australia must be vastly interesting.’</p>
-
-<p>‘It is,’ said Wal, ‘and I have managed to scrape
-together a good deal about it. The early settlers
-here had no easy time, but they did well, and laid the
-foundation of a promising colony upon a lot of bad
-material. You would hardly think to look at it now
-that Sydney, a century ago, was a convict settlement
-of only a few huts, and inhabited by desperate
-criminals, many of whom were more like fiends than
-human beings.’</p>
-
-<p>‘There are not many traces of those days left?’ said
-Edgar questioningly.</p>
-
-<p>‘No,’ said Wal, ‘and it is far better they should be
-obliterated. Now, in Tasmania you see more of it.
-You would find Port Arthur a curious old place. It
-gave me the horrors the first time I saw it.’</p>
-
-<p>They chatted on for some time. Wal Jessop was a
-good talker, and interested a lad of Edgar’s age.
-Edgar Foster was a manly boy, not a boy developed
-into a man before his time by a forcing process, as
-too often is the case in this age of rapid progress.</p>
-
-<p>On reaching home again, Wal Jessop explained to
-his wife how Edgar had been received by Captain
-Fife.</p>
-
-<p>‘You’ll not object to keep the little lass here,’ said
-Wal, ‘while Edgar goes up country for a few
-months?’</p>
-
-<p>‘I should like to keep her for my own,’ said Mrs.<span class="pagenum">[92]</span>
-Jessop. ‘She is a dear child, and will be a joy to our
-home.’</p>
-
-<p>‘She is a lovable little thing,’ said Edgar, ‘and I
-am sure will give you no trouble. I do not know
-whether Captain Manton had any relations in
-England, but I imagine he had. In any case, we
-shall hear something before very long. I know I
-shall leave her in safe hands.’</p>
-
-<p>‘That you may rest assured of,’ said Mrs. Jessop;
-‘and I hope you will have a good time up country.
-Captain Fife has evidently taken a fancy to you, and
-he’s a man worth knowing.’</p>
-
-<p>‘That he is, Mary,’ said her husband; ‘and many’s
-the good turn he’s done me.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Which you thoroughly deserved,’ said Edgar, with
-a smile.</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_X">CHAPTER X.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">A WILD SCENE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Yanda Station was situated in a wild country, and
-when Edgar Foster arrived there he thought he had
-never seen such a dreary spot. Accustomed to the
-green fields of old England and her charming rural
-landscapes, Edgar found the barren plains and scraggy
-trees monotonous. Instead of miles upon miles of
-green, undulating pasture-land, he saw brown, hard-baked
-ground, the stunted grass growing in patches,
-and looking parched and dry for want of water.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[93]</span></p>
-
-<p>Although the first glimpse of Yanda disenchanted
-Edgar of the ideas he had formed of ‘up-country’
-scenes, the reception he met with from the station
-hands reconciled him to the prospect before him.
-Captain Fife had written to Benjamin Brody, the
-manager at Yanda, informing him who Edgar Foster
-was, and how he had behaved at the wreck of the
-<em>Distant Shore</em>. He also stated that Edgar was the
-son of the famous cricketer, Robert Foster. This was
-quite sufficient to ensure Edgar a hearty reception,
-and his arrival was quite an event on the station.</p>
-
-<p>Ben Brody was a born colonial, a man accustomed
-to take the rough with the smooth of life and weld
-them into an even existence. Brody’s temper was
-none of the best, but he kept it under control. He
-was a sober man in the accepted sense of the word;
-that is, he never took more liquor than he could conveniently
-carry. There was no better rider at Yanda
-than Ben Brody, and the toughest buck-jumper
-generally found he had met his match when Brody
-got on to his back.</p>
-
-<p>Fearless and determined, he was the very man to
-manage the somewhat mixed lot of hands on Yanda
-Station. They had some ‘queer customers’&mdash;Brody’s
-expression&mdash;on Yanda. It was a wild country, and
-far out of the beaten track. The wonder to most
-people who took the trouble to think about such an
-outlandish place as Yanda was how it was kept going,
-for they would never have been so rash as to argue
-that Yanda paid its way.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[94]</span></p>
-
-<p>But Yanda, thanks to good management, did pay
-its way, and Captain Fife and others were perfectly
-satisfied with their investment. Yanda was bought
-cheap at a time when station property in the far
-West was going begging, and the installation of Ben
-Brody as manager had resulted in its turning out a
-good bargain. Brody was a great believer in sheep,
-but he had not much faith in cattle on Yanda. The
-hands firmly believed that Ben Brody had been reared
-from a very early age upon lean mutton, and that the
-taste for any other kind of meat was foreign to
-him.</p>
-
-<p>Ben Brody had a horror of fat sheep. He preferred
-sheep “all wool,” because wool was worth considerably
-more than flesh. The slaughtering of a bullock
-at Yanda was the signal for much joy on the part of
-the hands. When Ben Brody received the news that
-Edgar Foster would arrive on a certain day at Yanda,
-he resolved to duly celebrate the event, just to give
-the ‘new chum’ a better idea of the country.</p>
-
-<p>‘What’s come over Brody?’ asked Will Henton.
-‘He’s actually ordered the slaughtering of a bullock.
-I am overwhelmed with joy.’</p>
-
-<p>Will Henton was a young fellow who discovered
-town life too fast for him, so had found his way to
-Yanda, and turned out a useful man.</p>
-
-<p>‘There’s a new hand coming,’ said Harry Noke.
-‘Brody’s told me about him. He’s the young fellow
-who rescued that little lass at the wreck of the <em>Distant
-Shore</em>, and he’s a son of Robert Foster the cricketer.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[95]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘No!’ said Will Henton. ‘You can’t mean it.
-What a slice of luck! He’s sure to play cricket well,
-and we’re short of a man or two.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You know the reason of the slaughter now,’ said
-Harry. ‘I must confess beef will be a change from
-Brody’s everlasting mutton.’</p>
-
-<p>‘We must give young Foster a good reception,’
-said Will.</p>
-
-<p>‘He deserves it,’ said Harry, ‘and he’ll be able to
-spin us some yarns about the wreck.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Plucky young beggar,’ said Will. ‘I’m open to
-bet you a trifle he can box.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You’re mad on boxing,’ said Harry. ‘It would be
-a blessing if some disguised fighting-man came here
-to knock the conceit out of you.’</p>
-
-<p>The hands at Yanda talked the matter of Edgar’s
-arrival over, and agreed to make things pleasant for
-him; occasionally they made matters rather rough
-for a new hand, until he paid a substantial
-footing.</p>
-
-<p>So it came about that there was much feasting and
-rejoicing when Edgar arrived, and he thought them a
-set of jolly good fellows.</p>
-
-<p>‘The hospitality makes up for the barrenness of the
-land,’ thought Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>There were a good many blackfellows about
-Yanda, and they were as keen on the scent of fresh-killed
-meat as a hound after a fox. Towards night,
-when the feasting was over, and Ben Brody, Edgar,
-and several of the hands were sitting on the wide<span class="pagenum">[96]</span>
-veranda running round the homestead, dusky forms
-were seen advancing across the open plain.</p>
-
-<p>‘Have you black men about here?’ asked Edgar in
-some surprise.</p>
-
-<p>‘Thousands of ’em,’ said Brody, without moving a
-muscle of his face.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar looked at him, smiling, and said:</p>
-
-<p>‘They must be pretty tame if there are thousands
-of them. I suppose when you first arrived here you
-brought an army to conquer the country.’</p>
-
-<p>‘We’ll say hundreds,’ said Brody; ‘I must have
-been thinking of sheep.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Mutton again!’ whispered Will to Harry Noke.
-‘He lives on mutton, consequently he thinks of
-sheep.’</p>
-
-<p>‘How many hundred blacks have you on Yanda?’
-said Edgar, who had been somewhat prepared for Ben
-Brody’s exaggerations by Wal Jessop.</p>
-
-<p>‘Well, really, I couldn’t say for certain,’ replied
-Brody; ‘I’ve not had ’em mustered lately. When
-we’ve a bit of spare time I’ll have ’em counted for you.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Thanks,’ said Edgar; ‘it is always interesting to
-ascertain what likelihood there is of the original inhabitants
-of a country becoming extinct.’</p>
-
-<p>A roar of laughter greeted Edgar’s reply, and Will
-Henton said:</p>
-
-<p>‘The young un’s a bit too much for you, Brody.
-You had better not spin him any of those well-seasoned
-aboriginal yarns of yours, for I fancy they
-won’t wash.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[97]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘You swallowed some of them, anyway,’ said Ben
-Brody.</p>
-
-<p>‘Merely to oblige you,’ said Will.</p>
-
-<p>Ben Brody glared at him, and then said:</p>
-
-<p>‘Meat is bad for you, Will; I must in future
-restrict you to a mutton diet.’</p>
-
-<p>‘What are these fellows coming for?’ asked Edgar,
-as about thirty blacks, including a few females,
-advanced to within a dozen yards or so of the
-veranda.</p>
-
-<p>‘They are on the war-path,’ said Will Henton.
-‘The slaughtering of a bullock at Yanda is an
-event of such magnitude that even the natives
-of the country assemble to give thanks on the
-occasion.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Never mind his chaff,’ said Ben Brody to Edgar;
-‘you will have plenty of it if you remain here very
-long. Would you care to see these fellows dance,
-hold a “corroboree” as they call it?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes,’ said Edgar, ‘I should very much like to
-see it.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Then you shall. They have not given us anything
-in that line lately,’ said Brody.</p>
-
-<p>He called a big, powerful-looking black, and spoke
-to him, and made signs.</p>
-
-<p>‘I’ve promised them a good square meal if they
-give us a dance,’ said Brody.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar thought it a wild scene as he looked at the
-dusky forms in the moonlight. As far as he could
-see the endless plain stretched out before him. The<span class="pagenum">[98]</span>
-white, gaunt trees were ghostly and weird, and the
-hum of many insects was in the air.</p>
-
-<p>In a few minutes Edgar heard a low, crooning
-sound, which gradually swelled into a hoarse roar,
-and then, with a loud shout from their leader, the
-black fellows commenced to dance. They stamped
-upon the hard ground with bare feet until the sound
-became like the tramp of soldiers. Having worked
-themselves up to a proper pitch of excitement, the
-wild fellows threw their limbs about in the most
-extraordinary fashion. Some of them leaped high
-into the air, and the women sat and clapped their
-hands and beat them on the ground.</p>
-
-<p>The black men whirled their arms, and waved
-heavy sticks over their heads. Their faces became
-most repulsive. Most of them had thick, curly black
-hair, which hung down in shaggy locks. Their noses
-were big, coarse, and wide, and their cheek-bones
-high, while their mouths were of great size, and their
-lips thick.</p>
-
-<p>As Edgar watched them dancing in this strange
-fashion in the moonlight he thought it was the
-wildest scene he had ever looked upon.</p>
-
-<p>‘Do they never get tired?’ he asked, as the dance
-continued, and the efforts of the blacks did not relax.</p>
-
-<p>‘They have great powers of endurance,’ said Ben
-Brody. ‘You see the big fellow there, to the right?
-I’ve known him go ninety miles between sunset and
-sunrise without so much as a halt. They are
-treacherous fellows, some of them, but Yacka is a<span class="pagenum">[99]</span>
-cut above the others. He’s a strange fellow. He
-hails from South Australia, and the blacks around
-here seem afraid of him. Strange to say, he speaks
-English well, and is far better looking than the
-others. My own impression is that there’s a bit of
-white blood in his veins, although his skin is black.
-Eh, Yacka, come here!’ he shouted.</p>
-
-<p>The black, who was standing alone looking at the
-dancers, who were now slowing down, stepped quickly
-on to the veranda without an effort.</p>
-
-<p>‘This is Yacka,’ said Brody to Edgar, and then
-turning to the black, he said: ‘A new hand, only
-arrived to-day. You’ll be able to show him a thing
-or two about Yanda, I reckon.’</p>
-
-<p>Yacka nodded and, holding out his hand towards
-Edgar, said:</p>
-
-<p>‘He says true. I know much about this country.
-Much about other country far off. Ah, you shake
-my hand! Good fellow! Yacka your friend.’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar had taken the black’s proffered hand, giving
-it a hearty shake; this he did without a moment’s
-hesitation.</p>
-
-<p>‘You’ve made friends with Yacka,’ said Brody;
-‘that is the way he tests a man. I’ve known fellows
-come here and refuse to shake hands with Yacka.
-Not a blessed black in the whole tribe would help
-the man who declined Yacka’s hand. I dare say
-it’s quite as clean as a good many white men’s
-hands.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I like the look of him,’ said Edgar, ‘and how well<span class="pagenum">[100]</span>
-he talks! Have you ever tried to make him work as
-a hand on the station?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Bless you, he wouldn’t demean himself to work
-like these fellows, and if he did they’d buck against
-it,’ said Brody.</p>
-
-<p>‘Quite right, too,’ said Harry Noke; ‘we don’t
-want a lot of infernal blacks doing station work;
-they are good for nothing but thieving and every sort
-of iniquity.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Perhaps white men have driven them to it,’ said
-Edgar; ‘I dare say they managed very well before
-Australia was discovered by Captain Cook.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You cannot make these black fellows understand
-what civilization means,’ said Brody.</p>
-
-<p>‘Rum,’ grunted a quiet-looking man, who had
-scarcely spoken during the evening.</p>
-
-<p>‘When Jim Lee offers a remark, which you may
-have observed is seldom,’ said Brody, ‘it is generally
-to the point. Undoubtedly rum and civilization go
-hand in hand where the blacks are concerned. Apart
-from rum, however, the beggars are too infernally
-stupid to learn anything.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yacka seems fairly intelligent,’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘I make an exception of Yacka,’ said Ben. ‘He’s
-sharp enough, and the way he carves emu eggs and
-boomerangs is a caution. The ideas that chap can
-put on an emu egg beat creation. But he’s a
-thorough wild man, although he does talk English
-well, and has ideas above his fellows. You could no
-more get Yacka to conform to our idea of civilized<span class="pagenum">[101]</span>
-behaviour than you could train a monkey to keep
-out of mischief. Yacka is full of mischief, but it’s
-a humorous sort of mischief, and does not do much
-harm.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yacka’s the only useful black we have around
-here,’ said Will Henton. ‘He’s a splendid fag in the
-cricket field, and when he’s extra good we let him
-handle a bat. He shapes well, too, and I’m inclined
-to think Yacka might be developed into a decent
-cricketer. He rides well, and that’s more than the
-other fellows do; and when he’s handled my gun
-I’ve seen him make some fair shots. The rummy
-part of the business is that Yacka won’t be civilized,
-as Ben says, and you can’t get him to leave the
-camp.’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar Foster thought a good deal about Yacka
-that night, and resolved to try and make friends
-with him, and learn something of his past life, which
-he felt sure would be interesting.</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XI">CHAPTER XI.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">YACKA THE BLACK.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Edgar Foster, after six months’ experience on
-Yanda Station, liked the life very much. He was
-popular with the hands, and Ben Brody had taken to
-him in a manner that caused men to marvel. It was
-seldom Brody made a chum of anyone, but he had<span class="pagenum">[102]</span>
-done so of Edgar, who was young enough to be his
-son.</p>
-
-<p>It was an intense relief to Edgar when he received
-letters from his father and sister. They were letters
-such as might have been expected from them, and the
-way in which they referred to the terrible loss of the
-<em>Distant Shore</em> brought tears into Edgar’s eyes. His
-father enclosed him a draft, and said he was proud of
-his son, and knew he had risked his life to save
-Captain Manton’s child. Inquiries had been made in
-every direction, but no relations had been found to
-claim little Eva. Captain Manton had not saved
-much money, and what he had was in the hands of
-the shipping company to which the <em>Distant Shore</em>
-belonged.</p>
-
-<p>Robert Foster wrote that he had consulted the
-chairman of the company, and it had been arranged
-that if no relation claimed Eva she was to remain in
-charge of Wal Jessop and his wife, and a sum of
-money would be paid annually to them. In concluding
-his letter Robert Foster gave his son good
-advice, telling him to go on as he had commenced,
-and to brave dangers if by doing so he could help
-others.</p>
-
-<p>Doris Foster wrote Edgar a loving letter, in which
-she gave him the news that Will Brown had sailed for
-Australia, and also that she had heard Raymond
-Rakes had turned out badly, and been sent to
-sea:</p>
-
-<p>‘Will has promised to try and make a small fortune<span class="pagenum">[103]</span>
-in Australia,’ she wrote, ‘and when he has done so he
-is to return to England and ask me a certain question
-which I leave you to guess. Please do not tell him,
-if you see him, that under any circumstances the
-answer will be “Yes.” It might make him lazy if he
-knew the capture was certain. You are a dear,
-noble, brave brother, and we are very proud of you.
-I am posting you a <em>Graphic</em>. You will see therein a
-portrait of a certain young fellow who is styled “The
-<em>Distant Shore</em> Hero,” which is no more than he
-deserves. Give little Eva a lot of kisses from me.
-I long to see the child you saved so splendidly. I
-am sure Wal Jessop must be a grand man, and his
-wife a dear, good woman. Please do not marry a
-black lady, and come home as civilized as when you
-left.’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar read these letters again and again until Ben
-Brody said:</p>
-
-<p>‘You are a lucky beggar to have such interesting
-letters. Those I get are never worth reading twice.
-They’re mostly about sheep, and the price of wool,
-and you cannot knock much romance out of those
-articles.’</p>
-
-<p>Before he had been at Yanda a month, Edgar had
-shown them how he could bat, and also use his fists;
-and, much to Will Henton’s surprise, he had found
-his match with the gloves on.</p>
-
-<p>‘You’re a hard hitter,’ he said to Edgar; ‘no
-wonder you made Bully Rakes sing small.’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar related many tales about his schooldays, and<span class="pagenum">[104]</span>
-worked the hands up to a pitch of enthusiasm over
-the celebrated match with Fairfield.</p>
-
-<p>‘Blest if I don’t feel as though I’d seen it!’ said
-Ben Brody.</p>
-
-<p>‘Good yarn!’ exclaimed Jim Lee, the silent one.</p>
-
-<p>‘What a brute that Rakes must be,’ said Will
-Henton. ‘Fancy a fellow going against his own
-side. You say he’s gone to sea? I hope he won’t
-come over here; we want none of his sort.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I’d like to meet Will Brown,’ said Ben Brody.
-‘Suppose you ask him to come up here and try his
-luck? He’ll not make a fortune very quick, but it
-will keep him out of mischief.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I’ll write to his ship in Sydney when she arrives,
-and ask him,’ said Edgar; ‘I think it would just suit
-him.’</p>
-
-<p>‘We can always find room for an extra hand or
-two on Yanda,’ said Brody, with a wink, ‘provided
-they’re the right sort.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You’ll find Will all right,’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘If he comes up to your standard he’ll do,’ replied
-Brody.</p>
-
-<p>There was not much variety in the life at Yanda,
-but it was new to Edgar, and he found much to
-interest him. He had the usual experience with a
-buck-jumper, and felt the peculiar sensation of being
-hurled into the air, with no certainty as to where he
-would come down. This is how Edgar described his
-first throw from a buck-jumper to his father:</p>
-
-<p>‘You suddenly feel his back arch, and it nearly<span class="pagenum">[105]</span>
-cuts you in two. Then you discover he has all four
-legs off the ground at the same time. Finally you
-are shot into space, much in the same way as you
-would go if a gigantic catapult propelled you. The
-sensation is not pleasant, and the knowledge that all
-your mates are enjoying the undignified manner in
-which you are unseated adds to the general discomfiture.
-However, I am a fair rough-rider now,
-although there’s one horse&mdash;“Brody’s buck-jumper,”
-he’s called&mdash;I cannot tackle, and no other man on the
-place with the exception of Brody himself. There’s
-a history attached to this animal which you may hear
-some day. Brody once got him into a horse-box, I
-believe, and the passengers on the train sent a deputation
-to the guard at the first stopping-place to have
-the horse removed. Someone suggested the animal
-ought to be shot, but Brody’s wrath was so great when
-he heard this that no further mention was made of it.
-Anyhow, Brody’s buck-jumper had his own way, as he
-always has, for the remainder of the journey.’</p>
-
-<p>Yacka the black had taken to Edgar Foster from
-the moment he took his hand, and during the six
-months that had passed he was constantly about the
-homestead asking what he could do for him.</p>
-
-<p>‘Bless me if I don’t think you’ll civilize Yacka in
-time!’ said Brody. ‘I never knew him come round
-here so much before. It’s all that handshake
-did it.’</p>
-
-<p>‘He’s a good fellow, although he is black,’ said
-Edgar. ‘I’m very fond of Yacka, but I cannot quite<span class="pagenum">[106]</span>
-make him out. He seems to have something on his
-mind. I hope he has done nothing very dreadful.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You never know what these black fellows are up
-to,’ said Brody; ‘but I do not think Yacka is deceitful.
-Revengeful they all are, and if anyone harmed
-Yacka or others belonging to him, I believe he would
-make it particularly warm for him.’</p>
-
-<p>Yacka followed Edgar about with dog-like devotion,
-and never tired of doing odd jobs for him. Edgar
-watched the black carve wonderful scenes on emu
-eggs, and it was extraordinary the faithfulness with
-which he depicted birds and beasts on these brittle
-shells.</p>
-
-<p>After taking particular care to carve one egg,
-Yacka, with a look of fear in his eyes, handed it to
-Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘Why, it’s a cave surrounded by rocks and shrubs,’
-said Edgar. ‘Where did you see it? There is nothing
-at all like that about here.’</p>
-
-<p>‘No,’ said Yacka, ‘long way off. Tramp, tramp,
-for miles. Lonely desert where no white man ever
-been&mdash;wonderful place. Like to see it?’</p>
-
-<p>The black spoke eagerly, and Edgar saw there was
-something he had left hidden, which he did not care
-for him to know.</p>
-
-<p>‘It would be no good going such a long journey,
-Yacka,’ he replied, ‘because there are no people, and
-what is to be found when we get there? We might
-starve on the way, or die from want of water.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Plenty water,’ said Yacka. ‘I know the track;<span class="pagenum">[107]</span>
-no one else knows it. There!’ he exclaimed, as he
-smashed the emu egg he had been at so much trouble
-to carve, ‘no one find it now, not even you.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I should remember the place if I saw it,’ said
-Edgar. ‘You carve so well, and I am sure what you
-carved on that egg is true to Nature.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Come with Yacka, and I will show you much,’
-said the black. ‘Make you rich&mdash;richer than Master
-Fife, richer than your Queen; but you must go
-alone with Yacka.’</p>
-
-<p>The black spoke earnestly, and his eyes glistened.</p>
-
-<p>‘I don’t see much chance of making a fortune or
-finding riches in a desert,’ said Edgar. ‘Where is
-this wonderful cave that contains so much wealth?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Many miles,’ said Yacka; ‘over Great Desert in
-Northern Territory. It is not all sand. No white
-man has been there; but Yacka has, and knows
-there is grass and water, and food, plenty food.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Are you certain no white man has ever been
-there?’ asked Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka hesitated a few moments, and then said:</p>
-
-<p>‘No white <em>man</em>.’</p>
-
-<p>‘And no white woman?’ laughed Edgar, who
-noticed the stress Yacka laid on man.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka sprang to his feet, and waved his arms
-about wildly.</p>
-
-<p>‘Come and see!’ he cried. ‘Come to the White
-Spirit’s Cave! I am the son of Enooma!’</p>
-
-<p>The last word he said in a soft, liquid tone, far
-different from his usual rather harsh mode of speech;<span class="pagenum">[108]</span>
-and he lingered over the name with evident fondness.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar became interested, and the spirit of adventure
-began to stir within him.</p>
-
-<p>‘Who is Enooma?’ he asked, endeavouring to
-speak the word as Yacka pronounced it.</p>
-
-<p>‘The White Spirit of the Great Desert,’ said Yacka,
-in a solemn voice. ‘She rests in the cave in the land
-I came from. She is beautiful and white as clouds;
-and I am black as the thunder-makers&mdash;and her son.’</p>
-
-<p>‘How can that be?’ asked Edgar. ‘Yacka must be
-mistaken; he cannot be the son of Enooma the White
-Spirit. How can I trust him if he deceives me?’</p>
-
-<p>The black looked round, and, seeing no one about,
-said:</p>
-
-<p>‘Yacka speaks true, else how would he know the
-cave where no white man has been?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Suppose I promise to go with you to the cave,’ said
-Edgar, ‘how would it be possible for us to go alone?’</p>
-
-<p>‘We have guns,’ said Yacka, relapsing into ordinary
-speech, ‘and there is much to shoot where I go. We
-follow tracks through big white man’s country, and
-cross rivers. I came from there, and can return.
-Yacka knows a track once he has followed it.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Give me time to think it over,’ said Edgar. ‘I
-trust you, Yacka, but I have others to think about.
-I have a good sister, and a kind father, in far-away
-England, and there will be dangers to encounter on
-our journey.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes,’ assented Yacka, ‘dangers, but we shall not<span class="pagenum">[109]</span>
-die. The White Spirit will watch over us when she
-knows we are coming towards her. Enooma rests
-and waits for us. Speak no words to them,’ he
-added, and pointed towards the homestead.</p>
-
-<p>‘All you have told me I promise to hold sacred,’
-said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘It is good,’ said Yacka, and calmly commenced
-to carve a snake on one of the boomerangs, which he
-picked up from the ground where he had thrown
-them.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar Foster felt he was about to embark upon
-strange adventures. He knew Yacka was no
-ordinary black, and Ben Brody had said he believed
-Yacka had white blood in his veins. Who could this
-White Spirit Enooma be, whom Yacka called his
-mother? Could it be possible a white woman had
-penetrated to the unknown parts of the Northern
-Territory? If so, how had she reached there? and
-how could it be that Yacka the black was her son?
-Probably it was some superstition Yacka had inherited
-from his tribe.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar pondered over the story of riches Yacka
-had related. Gold was dug out of the earth in most
-unlikely places. Barren wastes had been found to
-teem with the precious metal. The possibilities of
-the country Edgar felt were not yet known, and in a
-new and unexplored part of the vast land he was
-now in what might not happen? He knew he could
-trust Yacka, but he would have preferred to take a
-mate with him. Will Brown would be just the one,<span class="pagenum">[110]</span>
-and if he could persuade Yacka to take Will along
-with them it would be glorious. He thought over
-the excuses he could make to Captain Fife and
-Ben Brody for leaving Yanda. If he stated he was
-prompted by a love of adventure they would believe
-him, and it would be the truth. There would be no
-difficulty in getting away, and no time for returning
-need be named.</p>
-
-<p>Eagerly Edgar awaited the arrival of Will Brown
-in order to give Yacka a chance of making friends
-with him.</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XII">CHAPTER XII.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">IN SEARCH OF ADVENTURES.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>In due course Will Brown arrived at Yanda, and
-he was only too glad to have the opportunity of
-meeting his chum, Edgar Foster, in the new country
-to which he had come. As for Edgar, it was with
-unbounded delight he welcomed Will Brown. They
-had much to talk about, and it was a source of much
-joy to Edgar that he could listen to one who had
-so recently seen those dear to him in the home he
-loved so well, on the banks of the Thames.</p>
-
-<p>When Edgar made known to Ben Brody his intention
-of leaving Yanda for a time in search of adventures,
-the manager evinced no surprise.</p>
-
-<p>‘I didn’t expect you would be here long,’ he said.
-‘Young ‘uns like to roam, and I don’t blame you.<span class="pagenum">[111]</span>
-I’ve had enough wandering about to last me a lifetime,
-and I’m settled for good here, so long as they
-will have me. I shall be sorry to lose you, and I
-wish you had chosen to remain. You have picked
-a good guide in Yacka. What that black chap
-knows is beyond credit. He’s never said where he
-came from, but if I’m a judge it is somewhere in the
-region of the MacDonnell Ranges. There are some
-powerful savage tribes over there, and I’d advise
-you to steer clear of them, that is, if you get so far;
-but you are a precious long way from there, you
-bet.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I do not know where we are going,’ said Edgar;
-‘but Yacka has made great promises, and if he fulfils
-them there will be something to talk about when we
-return.’</p>
-
-<p>Yacka, with some show of reluctance, agreed to
-Will Brown accompanying them. He yielded when
-Edgar said he would not go without Will, for the
-black was determined Edgar should undertake the
-journey.</p>
-
-<p>The night before their departure they had a great
-‘send off,’ all hands coming into the homestead for
-the occasion.</p>
-
-<p>The general opinion seemed to be that Edgar and
-Will were about to follow Yacka purely for the sake
-of adventure, and the good fellows thought all the
-better of them for their pluck and spirit.</p>
-
-<p>Ben Brody had given each of them a good horse,
-and they had the pick of the best guns on the<span class="pagenum">[112]</span>
-station. Will Henton gave them a revolver each,
-expressing the hope that they would clear the country
-of a few blacks.</p>
-
-<p>‘I hope we shall not have to use them for any
-such purpose,’ said Edgar; ‘but if it comes to a fight
-we shall be all there.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You are going on a fool’s errand,’ said Harry
-Noke; ‘much better remain where you are. I would
-not trust Yacka, or any other blackfellow. It’s like
-enough he’ll lead you into danger out of pure devilment.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You are wrong,’ said Jim Lee; ‘Yacka’s square.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Jim’s right,’ said Brody. ‘You’re riled, Harry,
-because you have not pluck enough to go with them.
-As it is the last night, we must have Yacka in and
-give him a drink.’</p>
-
-<p>Ben Brody went into the veranda and gave a
-peculiar whistle, which sounded shrilly on the still
-night air. In a few minutes Yacka appeared.</p>
-
-<p>‘That’s fetched him,’ said Will Henton; ‘Brody’s
-a wonder at all sorts of signals. I believe he’s a
-different call for every man on the place.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Have a drink, Yacka,’ said Ben Brody. ‘What’s
-it to be, rum or beer?’</p>
-
-<p>Yacka smacked his lips, and said, ‘Beer.’</p>
-
-<p>‘That’s better,’ said Jim Lee; ‘rum’s a curse.’</p>
-
-<p>Yacka drank the beer with evident relish.</p>
-
-<p>‘Like a square meal?’ said Brody.</p>
-
-<p>The black nodded, and Brody helped him plentifully
-to the remains of the feast.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[113]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘Where are you going to take these youngsters?’
-said Ben Brody.</p>
-
-<p>‘Long way,’ replied Yacka. ‘Bring them safe
-back.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I hope so,’ said Brody. ‘Going in search of the
-lost tribes?’</p>
-
-<p>Yacka grinned, showing his gleaming teeth.</p>
-
-<p>‘All tribes lost since the white men came,’ he
-replied.</p>
-
-<p>‘Guess you’re about right there,’ said Brody.
-‘Black and white cannot live side by side; one of
-them’s bound to go, and it’s the black. Now, if
-they were all like you, Yacka, we could get on well
-together. Bless me if I don’t believe you are half a
-white man!’</p>
-
-<p>A peculiar look came into Yacka’s eyes.</p>
-
-<p>‘Think so?’ he said. ‘Black skin, white man’s
-heart.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Bravo!’ shouted Brody. ‘You shall have another
-glass for that. Fill up, lads! Here’s to our mates,
-and a safe journey along with Yacka!’</p>
-
-<p>All hands were becoming hilarious, and began to
-sing ‘For they are jolly good fellows.’</p>
-
-<p>When the noise subsided, Brody said:</p>
-
-<p>Do you want a horse, Yacka?’</p>
-
-<p>The black shook his head, and slapped his legs.</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes, I know,’ said Brody; ‘your legs will carry
-you quite as far as any of our station nags. You’ll
-accept a gun, eh?’</p>
-
-<p>The black sprang to his feet, and said:</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[114]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘A gun for my own! Very good, Master Brody;
-I like a gun.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Then you shall have one,’ said Ben. ‘I know
-you can shoot.’</p>
-
-<p>Yacka went through a performance of shooting an
-imaginary object in such a realistic manner that
-everybody laughed.</p>
-
-<p>It was a merry night, and all slept soundly. In
-the morning Edgar and Will made a start from
-Yanda with Yacka, who was on foot, and the black
-looked the picture of a trained athlete.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka had discarded his ordinary loin-cloth, and
-wore instead a peculiar arrangement in which he
-could stow away a variety of articles. He declined
-to wear any other clothing, and his body shone in
-the sunlight, and the muscles stood out on his arms,
-chest, and lower limbs. His curly hair was sufficient
-protection to his head from the burning sun, and it
-was in much better condition than the shaggy locks
-of the blacks who were looking on. Yacka had
-evidently told the blacks he was leaving Yanda, and
-they looked as disconsolate as their expressionless
-faces would permit.</p>
-
-<p>As for Edgar and Will Brown, they were in
-high spirits, and, mounted on two very fair horses,
-thoroughly equipped for a journey, they looked a
-fine pair of young fellows.</p>
-
-<p>‘You’ll strike a station about sundown, I reckon,’
-said Ben Brody. ‘They’ll be glad to see you if you
-say where you hail from, although it makes very<span class="pagenum">[115]</span>
-little difference about that round here. Take care
-of yourselves, my lads, and I hope Yacka will bring
-you back to Yanda soon.’</p>
-
-<p>After hearty handshakes all round, the trio set
-off amidst cheers and the loud, peculiar cries of the
-blacks. Ben Brody watched them for a long time,
-and waved his hat in response to the salutes of
-Edgar and Will.</p>
-
-<p>‘Lads of mettle, both of ’em,’ said Brody. ‘Such
-a wild-goose chase as they are on would just have
-suited me in my young days. Good luck go with
-you, my lads! You’ll always have a warm corner in
-Ben Brody’s heart.’</p>
-
-<p>As the homestead they had left behind became
-fainter and fainter in the distance, Edgar and Will
-turned round in their saddles and waved a parting
-salute to Ben Brody, whose figure was just discernible
-on the veranda.</p>
-
-<p>As the morning wore on, the heat became intense,
-and in the afternoon it was so hot they decided to
-camp under the shade of some trees. Towards evening
-they went on again, and that night slept in the
-open, with their saddles for pillows and the bare
-ground for a bed. Had it not been for the constant
-singing and stinging of the mosquitoes, they would
-have had a pleasant night, as the air was soft and
-warm, and they needed no covering.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka stretched himself out near them, and slept
-like a dog&mdash;half awake and ready to spring to his feet
-at the slightest sound. At daybreak they made a<span class="pagenum">[116]</span>
-slight meal, and then proceeded on their journey.
-Yacka went ahead, and at such a pace that the horses
-often had to break into a canter to keep up with him.
-They arrived at Bardo Station that night, and met
-with a hospitable reception.</p>
-
-<p>Charles Brunt, the manager, was rather amused at
-the idea of a couple of lads going in search of adventure,
-with a blackfellow as guide and companion.
-He knew Yacka, and was of the same opinion as Ben
-Brody, that the black had white blood in his veins.</p>
-
-<p>‘This is a hospitable land, anyhow,’ said Edgar,
-when they had been away from Yanda for about a
-fortnight, and had managed, through Yacka’s guidance,
-to fall in with comfortable quarters almost
-every night.</p>
-
-<p>As they went on, however, Edgar saw they were
-gradually getting into a wilder country, and farther
-away from the beaten track. Yacka said, when
-questioned, he was taking a short cut, and that he
-knew the way.</p>
-
-<p>‘Where are you steering for?’ asked Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘South Australian border,’ said Yacka. ‘Then we
-work up to the MacDonnell Ranges, past Alice
-Springs. You’ll see wild country then, when we get
-through the ranges.’</p>
-
-<p>‘How long will it take us to reach the ranges?’
-asked Will.</p>
-
-<p>‘Long time yet,’ said Yacka. ‘Many miles’ tramp
-a day. Horses will knock up, but not Yacka, then
-you have to walk it.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[117]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘A pleasant prospect,’ said Edgar. ‘We may have
-to tramp hundreds of miles. However, we are in for
-it, and we may as well see all Yacka has to show
-us. I shall be sorely cut up if he has deceived
-us.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Do you think he would do so?’ asked Will.</p>
-
-<p>‘Not intentionally,’ replied Edgar; ‘but what may
-appear wonderful to him may be commonplace to
-us.’</p>
-
-<p>Having got out of the beaten track, they had to
-rely upon their guns for food. They had an ample
-supply of ammunition, preferring to load up their
-horses in this way to carrying provisions. Edgar was
-a good shot, and seldom missed his mark.</p>
-
-<p>‘We must be careful and not miss,’ he said, ‘for
-every shot is of importance.’</p>
-
-<p>One afternoon they had an exciting chase after
-kangaroos, and Edgar and Will thought it excellent
-sport. Yacka followed the hunt, and when he suddenly
-vanished, Edgar in a few minutes saw him
-ahead, waiting for the kangaroos to pass.</p>
-
-<p>‘By Jove! how Yacka can run!’ said Edgar.
-‘Look where he is now. He’ll get a kangaroo sure
-enough, without firing a shot.’</p>
-
-<p>They reined in their horses, and watched him.
-When the kangaroos found the chase was not so hot,
-they slackened their speed, and leapt along at a
-steadier pace. Yacka was concealed behind a huge
-tree, and as a large kangaroo went past he slipped
-quickly round and dealt it a terrific blow with a<span class="pagenum">[118]</span>
-heavy knobstick he carried in his hand. The kangaroo
-fell down stunned, and with a whoop Edgar
-and Will rode forward, in case any of the herd should
-make an attack on Yacka. When they pulled up,
-they found Yacka had cut the animal’s throat, and
-was contemplating it with satisfaction.</p>
-
-<p>Will, having dismounted, picked up the stick Yacka
-had struck the kangaroo with. It was smooth, hard
-wood, with a notched handle, and gradually swelling
-larger until, at the end, there was a sharp, smooth
-knob, which was so heavy it might have been weighted
-with iron.</p>
-
-<p>‘A formidable weapon,’ he said, holding it out to
-Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘That is a nulla-nulla,’ said Yacka. ‘Crack a man’s
-skull easily.’</p>
-
-<p>‘What is it weighted with?’ asked Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘Nothing,’ said Yacka. ‘Very hard, heavy wood,
-all smoothed down with sharp stone and rubbed with
-coarse sand. Never break it. Hard as iron.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Are they used in your tribal wars?’ asked
-Will.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka nodded and said:</p>
-
-<p>‘Terrible blows from them. Split a man’s head
-right open. See!’ He took the weapon from Edgar,
-and with one blow shattered the dead kangaroo’s
-skull. It split in two, and Yacka scooped out the
-brains. He then cut off the tail, and said, ‘Have
-good soup to-night. This fellow make better soup
-than ox-tail.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[119]</span></p>
-
-<p>They shook their heads sceptically; the tail did
-not look very inviting then.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka selected a spot to camp in near a small
-spring of water. He then proceeded to make a fire,
-collecting sundry dry pieces of wood and a kind of
-moss for the purpose. He filled the large ‘billy’ can
-he carried during the day slung across his back with
-sundry other articles, and, having skinned the kangaroo’s
-tail, cut it up into small pieces, and put it in
-the can.</p>
-
-<p>How he managed to make it so tasty Edgar could
-not imagine, but it was delicious, and they voted
-Yacka was right when he said it was better than ox-tail.</p>
-
-<p>‘Yacka’s a capital cook,’ said Will, ‘and the beauty
-of him is that he wants so little to cook with.’</p>
-
-<p>‘He’d rather surprise some of the modern cooks,’
-said Edgar. ‘They appear to contrive to do away
-with the genuine flavour of everything they cook, and
-Yacka makes a point of retaining that flavour.’</p>
-
-<p>How they did enjoy this wild life! and, so far,
-their powers of endurance had not been severely
-tested.</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XIII">CHAPTER XIII.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">BY THE LAGOON.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>They had been more than a month away from
-Yanda, and Edgar began to wonder where their<span class="pagenum">[120]</span>
-march would lead them. Yacka did not vouchsafe
-much information, but kept steadily on his way at a
-pace that astonished them. Mile after mile was
-traversed, and their guide showed no sign of weariness
-or flagging.</p>
-
-<p>One beautiful moonlight night they camped by
-the shore of a large lagoon, which reminded them
-of a small lake in their own country. It was a magnificent
-sight, this sheet of still water glistening
-in the moonlight, the trees which overhung it reflecting
-weird shadows on the surface.</p>
-
-<p>‘I had no idea there were such lakes as these,’ said
-Edgar. ‘There must be a lot of good shooting about
-here.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Plenty of ducks and herons,’ said Yacka. ‘I will
-get you some ducks without firing a shot.’</p>
-
-<p>They were interested in watching Yacka catch wild
-ducks. The black crept cautiously into the water,
-and then sat down amongst a lot of cover, which hid
-his head from view. Presently they heard a call
-such as the wild duck makes.</p>
-
-<p>‘That’s Yacka,’ said Edgar. ‘He can imitate the
-cries of all kinds of birds and animals. Look!
-there’s a flock of wild ducks coming over.’</p>
-
-<p>The birds flew right into the lagoon, and settled
-down on the water not far from Yacka. In a few
-minutes there was a flutter in the water, and the
-flock rose quickly and flew rapidly away, leaving
-three of their number struggling entangled in a fine-meshed
-net Yacka had thrown dexterously over them.<span class="pagenum">[121]</span>
-Yacka stood up, and, seizing the ducks one by one,
-quickly killed them, and brought them to the shore
-where Edgar and Will were sitting.</p>
-
-<p>‘Cleverly done,’ said Edgar. ‘If we run short of
-ammunition there is little fear of starving when Yacka
-can effect such captures.’</p>
-
-<p>The ducks were spitted and roasted, Yacka as
-usual acting as cook, and they were thoroughly
-enjoyed. Wild bees seemed plentiful, and Yacka
-went in search of honey, which he soon found in the
-hollow of a tree.</p>
-
-<p>So pleasant was it by the lagoon that they rested
-there for several days, enjoying bathing in the lukewarm
-water, and finding plenty of birds to supply
-their daily wants. Yacka captured a native bear, a
-curious little fellow with a woolly skin, and a sharp,
-inquiring face. When tucked up he looked for all
-the world like a big ball. Huge lizards were
-occasionally seen gliding about, and the shrill cries
-of parrots were heard overhead. At night the
-peculiar cry of the laughing jackass was heard. A
-flock of black swan passed by, but did not settle on
-the lagoon. They also saw pigeons, wild geese,
-plover, and quail, and a couple of pelicans.</p>
-
-<p>So interesting was the wild life of this lagoon that
-Edgar was loath to move on into less hospitable
-country, but he saw signs that Yacka was becoming
-impatient, so decided to resume their march. They
-left the camp by the lagoon with much regret, and
-cast many a wistful glance behind.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[122]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘It will be a long time before we strike such a
-good camping-ground again,’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘Wait until you reach Yacka’s country,’ said the
-black; ‘find plenty sport there. My tribe help you
-hunt and fish in big lakes and rivers.’</p>
-
-<p>‘To which tribe do you belong?’ asked Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘MacDonnell Ranges,’ said Yacka; ‘but we have
-gone miles and miles further north to the land of
-Enooma, the White Spirit, across sandy desert. My
-tribe very old and warlike. Their country goes far
-into the Northern Territory.’</p>
-
-<p>‘So your tribe is known as the MacDonnell
-Ranges blacks,’ said Edgar; ‘but you have a native
-name, I expect. What is it?’</p>
-
-<p>‘The Enooma,’ said Yacka. ‘We are the favoured
-tribe of the great White Spirit.’</p>
-
-<p>‘And you are the son of Enooma,’ said Edgar.
-‘Then we are safe with you.’</p>
-
-<p>‘No one will harm the friends of the son of
-Enooma,’ said Yacka.</p>
-
-<p>‘Why did you leave your own country?’ asked
-Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘To wander far and learn much. It was the wish
-of Enooma, and she must be obeyed. I have been
-in big cities&mdash;Sydney, Melbourne, Adelaide, and
-Brisbane, and have learned many things and seen
-much evil,’ said Yacka.</p>
-
-<p>‘And how did you get on to Yanda Station?’ said
-Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘From Queensland. I went to Adelaide first, and<span class="pagenum">[123]</span>
-then walked to the other big cities. From Brisbane
-I went on until I came to Yanda, and there I
-camped.’</p>
-
-<p>Yacka went on ahead, and Edgar said to Will:</p>
-
-<p>‘It will be worth all our travels if we can clear up
-this mystery about Yacka’s birth. He must have
-been taught by white people, or he would not speak
-as he does. It is getting more and more interesting.
-Who would have thought when we were at Redbank
-we should in so short a time be tramping over the
-wilds of Australia with only a black for our companion?’</p>
-
-<p>‘I wonder what they are up to at Redbank now?’
-said Will.</p>
-
-<p>‘The usual routine work,’ replied Edgar. ‘We
-had some jolly times there.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I wish I could make a fortune!’ said Will suddenly.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar laughed as he replied:</p>
-
-<p>‘It does not look much like it at present, but there
-is no telling what may happen. Yacka says he can
-make me rich, and if so you will have a share in the
-plunder. Why do you wish to make a fortune?
-You were not always such a mercenary fellow.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Because I love your sister, and I want to be in a
-position some day to ask her to be my wife. Now do
-you understand?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes,’ said Edgar, ‘and I wish you luck. Doris
-is a lovable girl, and I know you will try and make
-her happy. It is a long time to look ahead, but<span class="pagenum">[124]</span>
-there is nothing like having an object in life to make
-a man successful.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You know my object,’ said Will. ‘What is
-yours?’</p>
-
-<p>‘To earn a good name, and to make my father
-proud of his son,’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘Then you will certainly succeed,’ said Will, ‘even
-if you have not done so already.’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar laughed as he said:</p>
-
-<p>‘I have not done much at present to earn a name
-for myself. If ever I become a rich man, I will try
-and do good with my money. I have always found
-there is a lot of pleasure in helping other people.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You always manage to get on with people,’ said
-Will. ‘You have even made a staunch friend of
-Yacka. How did you manage it?’</p>
-
-<p>‘By treating him more like a human being than a
-dog,’ said Edgar. ‘Of course, Yacka is not like
-most of the natives. They are a dull, stupid lot,
-what I have seen of them so far, and it would be
-almost impossible to teach them anything. I believe
-Yacka could be taught just the same as a white man.’</p>
-
-<p>One night, as they were camping under the shade
-of some bushes, Edgar was awakened by something
-cool touching his face. He put out his hand and felt
-a cold, smooth substance, which he at once knew must
-be a snake. He sprang to his feet, clutching the
-snake and flinging it from him. The noise roused
-Will, and Yacka was quickly on the alert. It was
-too dark to see anything, but Yacka shifted their<span class="pagenum">[125]</span>
-camping-ground. In the morning Yacka came
-across a venomous yellow snake, which he killed and
-brought to Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘Yellow snake,’ he said; ‘dangerous! Deadly
-poison! Almost as bad as a death adder! Yacka
-skin him,’ which he at once proceeded to do.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar congratulated himself upon a lucky escape,
-for had the snake bitten him there would have been
-but little chance of his continuing the journey. For
-breakfast Yacka was busily engaged in roasting strips
-of flesh, but neither Edgar nor Will could think what
-animal he had killed to provide their meal.</p>
-
-<p>‘What have you got there?’ asked Will. ‘I hope
-you’re not toasting that snake.’</p>
-
-<p>Yacka shook his head and said:</p>
-
-<p>‘You try it first, then I will tell you what it is.
-Very good indeed!’ and he smacked his lips.</p>
-
-<p>They enjoyed the tasty morsels, and Yacka informed
-them it was the flesh of a species of iguana,
-one of the lizard tribe.</p>
-
-<p>Will shuddered as he said:</p>
-
-<p>‘I confess it tasted all right, but I do not think
-I should have eaten it had I known what it
-was.’</p>
-
-<p>They were about to resume their journey, when
-they heard someone ‘cooeying’ loudly, and the
-sound proclaimed the person was some distance
-away.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka had carefully avoided meeting wanderers in
-the country they had come through, and when he<span class="pagenum">[126]</span>
-heard the ‘cooey’ he held up his hand, and they
-stopped.</p>
-
-<p>‘Let us see who it is,’ said Edgar. ‘It will be a
-change to meet a stranger.’</p>
-
-<p>‘All right,’ said Yacka; ‘I know where that comes
-from. We are near the telegraph route. Send news
-from Adelaide right across the country to Port
-Darwin. It is men, perhaps, looking after the line.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Bravo!’ said Will. ‘We shall at least be able to
-hear some fresh news.’</p>
-
-<p>They proceeded in the direction of the sound, and
-in the course of a quarter of an hour came upon a
-camp, where four white men were sitting down smoking
-and chatting.</p>
-
-<p>‘Hallo! what have we got here?’ said one of the
-men, as he saw Yacka advancing in front of Edgar
-and Will.</p>
-
-<p>‘Glad to see you,’ said Edgar, stepping forward.
-‘We have not had any company but our own for such
-a long time that we are thankful to have fallen in
-with you.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You’re welcome,’ said the man. ‘Where do you
-hail from?’</p>
-
-<p>‘We have come from Yanda station, in the west of
-New South Wales.’</p>
-
-<p>The man stared at them in amazement.</p>
-
-<p>‘What, just as you are? You two youngsters,
-with this blackfellow!’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes,’ said Will. ‘My friend was going alone
-with Yacka, but as I wanted to be in it if there were<span class="pagenum">[127]</span>
-any adventures, they decided to take me along with
-them.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Well, upon my word,’ said the man, ‘you’re a
-couple of good plucked ’uns! Do you know where
-you are?’</p>
-
-<p>‘I have not the faintest idea,’ said Edgar, ‘but
-Yacka has.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You seem to have a good deal of confidence in
-this blackfellow,’ said the man, eyeing Yacka closely.</p>
-
-<p>‘We have,’ said Edgar. ‘He’s a fine fellow.’</p>
-
-<p>‘That’s more than I can say for some of his kind,’
-said the man. ‘It was only the other week one of
-our fellows was murdered beyond the Ranges by
-some of these blacks.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Revenge!’ said Yacka quietly. ‘How many of
-the black men had he killed?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Blest if the fellow can’t speak English as well as I
-can!’ said the man in astonishment. ‘Maybe it was
-revenge, but we don’t allow black men to kill white
-men without making an example of them.’ Turning
-to Edgar he said: ‘I like the look of you, young
-fellow, and your mate. My name’s Walter Hepburn,
-and I’m in the Government service, and
-stationed at Alice Springs, where the telegraph office
-is. We’ve been repairing on the line, and are on our
-way back to the Springs. If you care to come on
-with us, I have no doubt we can show you some fun.’</p>
-
-<p>‘How far are we from Alice Springs?’ asked
-Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘A couple of days will take us there.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[128]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘Then we shall be very pleased to go with you, and
-thank you heartily for your invitation. My name is
-Edgar Foster.’</p>
-
-<p>‘What! the young fellow who saved the skipper’s
-baby from the wreck of the <em>Distant Shore</em>?’ exclaimed
-Walter Hepburn.</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes,’ said Edgar sadly; ‘we were the only two
-saved.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Give me your hand, lad,’ said Walter Hepburn;
-‘I’m proud to shake it. Here, lads, give three cheers
-for Edgar Foster!’</p>
-
-<p>The men gave three ringing cheers, that echoed
-far and wide.</p>
-
-<p>It made Edgar’s heart beat fast to hear them in
-this wild country.</p>
-
-<p>Good deeds make themselves known and felt the
-wide world over, and their influence can make men
-better even in a wilderness.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka was pleased at the reception given to Edgar,
-and his black face was all smiling.</p>
-
-<p>‘That blackfellow’s uncommon fond of you, I
-reckon?’ said Walter Hepburn.</p>
-
-<p>‘He is,’ said Edgar. ‘Yacka planned this expedition
-for us, and we are in search of adventures, and
-want to see the country.’</p>
-
-<p>That night Edgar and Will enjoyed a hearty
-supper with their newly-made acquaintances; and
-Edgar had to relate how he was rescued, and how he
-saved Eva from the wreck of the <em>Distant Shore</em>.</p>
-
-<p>When Edgar mentioned to Walter Hepburn that<span class="pagenum">[129]</span>
-they were going far beyond the Ranges with Yacka,
-he looked serious.</p>
-
-<p>‘If you’ll take my advice, you will make for
-Adelaide from Alice Springs. It is over a thousand
-miles from there to Adelaide. If you go on north,
-to Port Darwin, that is over nine hundred miles.
-Where does Yacka, as you call him, want to take you
-on the other side of the Ranges?’</p>
-
-<p>‘That is his secret,’ said Edgar, ‘and I cannot tell
-you what he has told me. Before we started from
-Yanda I meant to go through with this business, and
-I’ll do it if I live.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I admire your pluck,’ said Walter Hepburn; ‘but
-what is the use of risking your life when there is no
-object to be gained?’</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XIV">CHAPTER XIV.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">ON THE OVERLAND LINE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>A couple of days after their meeting with the
-telegraph repairers the party arrived at Alice Springs&mdash;the
-most interesting of all the stations on the overland
-telegraph line. Alice Springs stands high above
-the sea-level, and there is magnificent and interesting
-scenery in the district, the valley in which it lies being
-of exceptional beauty.</p>
-
-<p>As Edgar looked at the scene mapped out before
-him, he could not help expressing astonishment at<span class="pagenum">[130]</span>
-what he saw. Alice Springs he had imagined as
-a bare, desolate spot, and here he saw the great
-MacDonnell Ranges lying to the north, the source of
-rivers, creeks, and springs, the valley stretching far
-away to east and west. The River Todd, running
-close by, lends a picturesque charm to the scene.</p>
-
-<p>There were numerous people about when the party
-arrived, as Alice Springs is the repeating station on
-the line, and consequently a considerable number of
-officers were employed. The buildings were not particularly
-enchanting, but they were useful and commodious.
-Several trees were scattered about, affording
-a comfortable shade, and the hot winds had not
-scorched up all vegetation.</p>
-
-<p>The officers employed at Alice Springs Station
-were a genial, jovial lot of fellows; and when Edgar
-and Will had been duly introduced by Walter Hepburn,
-they were at once made at home. After
-travelling so many miles, and living on the produce
-of their guns and Yacka’s ingenuity, it was a treat
-for them once more to come across civilization. They
-were feasted and made much of, and the inevitable
-race-meeting was got up in their honour.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar noticed there were a good many men about
-besides the officers employed on the station, and he
-did not like the look of some of them. They had
-a hang-dog expression on their faces, and a lazy,
-loafing way of idling about that spoke ill for the
-manner in which they managed to knock out a
-living.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[131]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘You have some queer customers about here,’ said
-Edgar to Walter Hepburn.</p>
-
-<p>‘You mean those fellows over yonder,’ he replied.</p>
-
-<p>‘I guess you’re about right&mdash;they are queer customers.
-They are out-and-out “spielers,” and you generally
-find them loafing about in the interior wherever
-there is a new settlement. They are always in
-fairly strong force around here, and when we have
-races they are only too ready to make wagers which
-they have no intention of paying. Some of our
-fellows are foolish enough to bet with them, and out
-of sheer despair at getting up a game of cards, I
-have known them play with these men. Needless to
-say, our fellows never win. These “spielers” know too
-much for them. In my opinion, they are worse than
-the blacks, and a greater danger to settlers. Horse-stealing
-and swindling they are always ready for;
-but they are cowards when fairly tackled, and soon
-seek fresh fields when a place becomes too hot to
-hold them.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Strange how such men can find occupation here,’
-said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘Well, you see, it’s this way,’ said Walter Hepburn.
-‘Settlers in a new country, where white men
-are scarce, and blacks are dangerous and hostile, are
-only too glad to give a white man a welcome. No
-questions are asked as to who or what the white man
-may be, but they take it for granted his company
-must be an improvement on their black, quarrelsome
-neighbours. I’ve known blackguards like those you<span class="pagenum">[132]</span>
-see over yonder stay at a place for a week, and then
-clear out with the best horses and anything else they
-could conveniently take away.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I saw a couple of them eyeing our horses over
-a short time back,’ said Will Brown, who came up
-and heard the conversation. ‘Yacka says we had
-better leave our horses behind when we go beyond
-the Ranges, and call for them as we return; that is,
-if they will care to have them here.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You can leave them with pleasure if you wish,’
-said Walter Hepburn, ‘and I’ll promise to look after
-them for you as well as I can. You will certainly not
-have much use for horses if you are going west after
-you cross the ranges. It is, so far as we know, very
-little else but desert between here and West Australia.
-As I told you before, I am afraid you are undertaking
-a great risk, and all to very little purpose. You may
-as well remain here a week or two, and then return
-south towards Adelaide. You’ll have had enough of
-it when you reach there, without going farther north.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I’ll consult Yacka, and hear what he has to say,’
-said Edgar, and walked towards the black, leaving
-Will with Walter Hepburn.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar explained what Hepburn had said, and
-Yacka replied:</p>
-
-<p>‘I will go with you to Adelaide, if you wish; but
-you will be sorry for it. We have come so far, let us
-go on. These men know nothing of Enooma’s
-country. They have been lost in the desert and
-never found the green land. Come with me, and I<span class="pagenum">[133]</span>
-will show you much. Yacka has said he will make
-you rich. Come and see if the son of Enooma speaks
-true.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You say we had better leave our horses here until
-we return,’ said Edgar. ‘How far have we to go
-beyond the ranges?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Long way,’ said Yacka, ‘but fine country. We
-soon leave the sand behind, and then you will see
-much better place than Yanda.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I will go with you,’ said Edgar, and Yacka was
-pleased. ‘We will leave here in a few days.’</p>
-
-<p>During the time they remained at Alice Springs
-there was plenty of amusement. Local races, and a
-cricket match filled in the time, and Edgar managed
-to impress it upon them that he could handle a bat.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka amused himself in various ways. He kept
-aloof from everyone, and sat looking on at the
-various games in a contemplative style that amused
-Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>The numerous ‘spielers’ about the place found
-time hang heavily on their hands, and two or three
-of them thought to pass a few hours away by teasing
-Yacka, and trying to work him into a frenzy. These
-vile wretches were adepts in the art of ill-using and
-insulting not only blacks, but white men, when they
-got the chance, and when there was but little danger
-connected with it.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka was quietly carving a stick, when three of
-these vagabonds came up to him. One jerked the
-stick out of his hand and flung it away, another<span class="pagenum">[134]</span>
-upset the log upon which he was sitting, and the
-third kicked him in the ribs as he lay on the floor.</p>
-
-<p>Then these three white men with black hearts got
-a surprise from the black man with a white heart.
-Yacka sprang to his feet with a yell. He seized the
-nearest man round the waist, lifted him off his feet,
-and flung him over his shoulder, as easily as only a
-practised wrestler could. The man fell with a heavy
-thud upon the ground and lay there. Yacka bounded
-upon the next man before he had recovered from his
-surprise, and would have treated him in a similar
-way. The noise, however, attracted the attention of
-the ‘spielers’ mates, who came running up, and Yacka
-was surrounded by enemies.</p>
-
-<p>The black’s eyes fairly blazed as he looked round
-at the cowardly crew hemming him in on every side.
-He could not see a loophole of escape, so he determined
-to fight for liberty. Yacka knew well enough
-if these men got him down he would probably be
-kicked to death.</p>
-
-<p>A blow on the back of his head warned him his
-persecutors meant business. Yacka could see no
-weapon handy, so he used his fists, and struck out
-right and left with tremendous effect. Three of the
-crew measured their full length on the ground in
-almost as many seconds. Yacka’s blows fell fast, but
-he could not guard himself at the rear as well as in
-the front. Blows fell upon his head and made him
-dizzy, and he knew he could not hold out much
-longer.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[135]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘There’s a row going on outside,’ said Walter
-Hepburn, as he got up from the table where they had
-just been refreshing themselves, and went to the
-door.</p>
-
-<p>‘Hang me if it is not that black chap of yours!
-The “spielers” are on to him. Come along, quick,
-or they’ll do for him!’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar and Will jumped up, and the three ran towards
-the scene of the encounter.</p>
-
-<p>They were only just in time. One of the gang of
-cowards attacking Yacka struck him a severe blow
-on the head with a heavy stick, and the black fell on
-to his knees. No sooner was he down than a brutal
-assault was made upon him. Edgar outstripped his
-companions and was first on the scene. He said
-nothing, but he began to knock the ‘spielers’ about
-in a manner that left no doubt as to his hitting
-powers.</p>
-
-<p>Will Brown and Walter Hepburn were not slow to
-follow his example, and although they were opposed
-to more than double their own number, the trio
-quickly drove the ‘spielers’ away, some of them
-much the worse for the encounter.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar knelt down beside Yacka, who was lying on
-the ground half stunned.</p>
-
-<p>‘The brutes!’ said Edgar. ‘They have mauled
-him badly. How do you feel, Yacka? Any bones
-broken?’</p>
-
-<p>The black smiled feebly and said:</p>
-
-<p>‘No bones broken, Master Edgar, but I have got<span class="pagenum">[136]</span>
-a bad head. I could have beaten the first three, but
-more came up and they got at me from behind.’
-Seeing Hepburn, he added significantly: ‘That is
-what causes revenge, and the killing of white men.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I’m not surprised,’ said Will. ‘You cannot expect
-a blackfellow to stand such brutal conduct as
-this.’</p>
-
-<p>‘No,’ said Hepburn, ‘but the worst of it is the
-innocent suffer for the guilty. These brutes get off
-scot-free, and some poor settler meets with his
-death.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yacka has never killed a man what you call a
-settler,’ said the black.</p>
-
-<p>‘No one supposes you have,’ said Edgar. ‘Can
-you walk?’</p>
-
-<p>Yacka managed to stand on his feet, but his head
-swam, and he felt dizzy.</p>
-
-<p>‘Bring him into my shanty,’ said Hepburn. ‘I
-can’t stand even a blackfellow being knocked about
-in this style.’</p>
-
-<p>The ‘spielers’ were hanging about as they led
-Yacka into Hepburn’s house. As he entered the
-door the black turned and shook his fist at them, and
-a cruel look came into his eyes.</p>
-
-<p>Hepburn saw it and whispered to Edgar:</p>
-
-<p>‘I would not give much for one of those fellows’
-chances of salvation if Yacka got him alone.’</p>
-
-<p>Had it been a white man the ‘spielers’ had set
-upon, they would have been hustled out of the place
-quickly enough, but a blackfellow more or less did<span class="pagenum">[137]</span>
-not seem to matter with the bulk of the men. The
-majority of them would have knocked a ‘spieler’
-down with the greatest of satisfaction, but even in
-such a case as the assault upon Yacka they were inclined
-to regard the black as the aggressor. This
-feeling naturally aroused Edgar’s indignation. He
-had not lived amongst savage blacks as most of these
-men had, and gone with his life in his hands every
-time he went a few miles up country. The blacks in
-many cases undoubtedly attacked peaceful settlers
-and murdered them in a treacherous manner. This
-naturally aroused a feeling of intense hatred against
-the original inhabitants of the country, and all blackfellows
-were treated alike. When the settlers treated
-the blacks kindly it was regarded by them as a sign
-of weakness, and an encouragement to attack them.
-Arguments such as these Hepburn used to convince
-Edgar the white men had good reason for hating the
-black.</p>
-
-<p>‘The Finke blacks,’ said Hepburn, ‘are a peaceable
-lot; but when you get into the Musgrave and
-MacDonnell Ranges, and farther north, it is necessary
-to be well armed if you wish to come back again.
-I have been there and know, and that is the main
-reason I have endeavoured to persuade you not to
-go with Yacka.’</p>
-
-<p>‘It would be cowardly on our part to desert Yacka
-now,’ said Edgar, ‘nor have we any inclination to do
-so. I would sooner trust a whole tribe of blacks
-than the brutal fellows who attacked him.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[138]</span></p>
-
-<p>Hepburn saw it was useless to argue more, so he
-said good-naturedly:</p>
-
-<p>‘If you are bent upon proceeding, you must let
-me supply you with more ammunition. You will
-want it, I am afraid, unless Yacka is well-known to
-the northern tribes.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You’re a brick!’ said Will enthusiastically, ‘and I
-for one will accept your gift.’</p>
-
-<p>‘It’s a good while since I heard that expression,’
-said Hepburn. ‘It reminds me of my school-days.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Where were you put in training?’ asked Edgar
-with a smile.</p>
-
-<p>‘At a grand old school, which I dare say you
-have heard of,’ said Hepburn. ‘I was educated at
-Redbank.’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar and Will gave a whoop that startled Hepburn,
-and before he could realize what had happened,
-he felt both his arms being worked up and down in
-a rapid style that took his breath away.</p>
-
-<p>‘Hold on, lads!’ he gasped; ‘you’ll have my arms
-off. What the deuce is the matter with you?’</p>
-
-<p>‘This is the most extraordinary thing I ever heard
-of,’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘I see nothing very extraordinary in my having
-been educated at Redbank,’ said Hepburn, ‘except
-the fact that I might have done the school more
-credit, considering the training I received.’</p>
-
-<p>‘We are Redbank boys,’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>It was Hepburn’s turn now, and the pumping
-process recommenced. They almost danced for joy,<span class="pagenum">[139]</span>
-and Yacka, who was lying on the camp-bed, thought
-they had gone suddenly mad.</p>
-
-<p>‘Bless my soul! it is remarkable after all,’ said
-Hepburn. ‘To think we Redbank fellows should
-all meet in this outlandish spot! The world is very
-small.’</p>
-
-<p>What a night they made of it, and they were still
-talking over the glories of Redbank when the morning
-light made the lamp grow dim.</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XV">CHAPTER XV.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">THROUGH THE RANGES.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Edgar Foster learned that Walter Hepburn had
-gone to Redbank a term or two after his father left
-the school. Hepburn was therefore well acquainted
-with the prowess of Edgar’s father in the cricket-field.
-It seemed very strange that they should all
-meet at Alice Springs, and it was a date to be noted
-as a red-letter day when the discovery was made.
-Had Walter Hepburn been free to leave his post,
-he would, after finding out they were Redbank boys,
-have joined them in their travels farther north.
-School ties bind men fast together, especially when
-such a good feeling existed as always did amongst
-Redbank lads.</p>
-
-<p>The time came for parting, and when Yacka was
-sufficiently recovered they left the station amidst<span class="pagenum">[140]</span>
-general regret, and a universally expressed wish to
-see them safe back again.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka was quite himself as soon as all traces of
-civilization were left behind. Once in the ranges he
-revelled in the mountain air, and appeared familiar
-with every pathway. In one place they had a
-difficult task to perform. Yacka led them up to a
-gigantic cleft in the rocks, which towered high above
-them on either side. Between these high, rocky
-walls flowed a river, and up it Yacka said they must
-swim.</p>
-
-<p>‘It will save a big climb over the rocks,’ he said,
-‘and I can take your clothes on my head.’</p>
-
-<p>There was nothing for it but to strip, and Edgar
-and Will were not averse to a good swim.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka tied their clothes in a bundle, and placing
-the guns on the top, put them all on his head, far
-out of the reach of the water. He had tied the
-bundle under his chin with a strap, and it was
-marvellous to watch how he swam up the river with
-such a load on his head.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar and Will plunged in after him, and found
-the water very cold; but the exertion of swimming
-kept the circulation of their blood up.</p>
-
-<p>‘By Jove! it was a cold bath,’ said Will, as he
-stood drying himself in the sun. ‘It must be the
-rocks make it like iced-water.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Very refreshing on a hot day,’ said Edgar. ‘They
-would give a trifle to have such a cool bathing-place
-at Yanda.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[141]</span></p>
-
-<p>As they proceeded they came across a number of
-watercourses and hills and valleys. They climbed
-to the top of high rocks, and descended again into
-level lands. At sundown they were tired out, and
-could hardly eat the supper Yacka prepared for
-them. No sooner had they finished their meal than
-they were sound asleep. But Yacka did not sleep;
-he stood looking down at them with his big eyes, and
-seemed to be in deep thought. The moonlight
-showed his black form standing over the two sleepers,
-and his attitude was one of dejection.</p>
-
-<p>‘How white they are,’ he muttered, ‘and Yacka
-so black! but they are not as white as Enooma,
-and Yacka is her son.’</p>
-
-<p>He sat down, and commenced to reason in his
-own way as to why he should be black, and the two
-sleepers white. He could find no satisfactory solution
-to the problem. Yacka knew naught of the
-white man’s God, but he had a wonderful amount
-of superstition in his nature, and a firm belief that
-the White Spirit watched over him. Yacka had no
-fear of death; he would have laughed at such a
-thought, and yet he did not understand what death
-really meant. Had the blackfellow been able to
-express what he really thought about death, it would
-have been to the effect that it was merely the White
-Spirit’s way of rewarding him for his work here by
-carrying him off to a country where he would be
-happy for ever. Yacka slept but little that night,
-but he was awake early, and ready to start again.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[142]</span></p>
-
-<p>The ranges were passed, and they were now in
-more open country. On the lowlands were numerous
-bushes, mulga on the hills, and gum and tea tree in
-the creeks. Plains of salt-bush could be seen, but
-on to the west they descried grass-land.</p>
-
-<p>For several days they tramped on, living on the
-simplest fare, and yet feeling strong and well, and fit
-for almost any exertion.</p>
-
-<p>‘Where are all the blacks we heard so much about?’
-said Edgar. ‘We have met none yet.’</p>
-
-<p>‘We shall be in the Enooma country by sunset
-to-morrow,’ said Yacka; ‘then you will see men of
-my tribe.’</p>
-
-<p>Yacka spoke truly. The next night they came
-across a blacks’ camp. To Edgar’s surprise there
-were between two and three hundred of them. As
-they approached Yacka made a peculiar sound like
-the shrill cry of a parrot, only with quite a different
-note, which roused the blacks, and several rushed
-forward to meet them.</p>
-
-<p>When they saw Yacka the effect was astonishing.
-At first they looked at him in amazement, then an
-old man cried aloud, ‘Yacka! Yacka! Enooma!
-Enooma!’ and the whole of the blacks, surrounding
-him, knelt before him.</p>
-
-<p>There was a proud look on Yacka’s face as he
-motioned them to rise. Then he spoke rapidly in
-the native tongue, and pointed to Edgar and
-Will.</p>
-
-<p>The blacks gave vent to warlike cries, and, shaking<span class="pagenum">[143]</span>
-their wooden spears high in the air, drove them into
-the ground with terrific force.</p>
-
-<p>‘That means they will kill any man who does you
-harm,’ said Yacka. ‘You are safe here, and the whole
-tribe will protect you.’</p>
-
-<p>They moved towards the camp, and at their
-approach the blacks stood up and awaited their
-coming with eager and excited looks.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka was known to them, and was evidently an
-important man with the tribe. Edgar fancied they
-regarded him with something akin to fear, and said to
-Will:</p>
-
-<p>‘We were right to trust Yacka, for these blacks
-stand in awe of him, and we shall be safe with
-them.’</p>
-
-<p>‘They are a savage-looking lot,’ said Will, ‘and I
-should not care to have come amongst them alone.
-If these are the men who molest the settlers, I am not
-surprised at the white men hating them.’</p>
-
-<p>The blacks were tall, powerful men, of a far different
-stamp to those in the west of New South Wales.
-Yacka was small beside some of them, and many
-were six feet high and over. They were all armed
-with native weapons, and were well prepared for any
-encounter. As they were in such strong force, Edgar
-came to the conclusion they must be on the war-path,
-and questioned Yacka.</p>
-
-<p>‘They are always armed,’ said Yacka. ‘The Curracoo
-tribe are their deadly enemies, and when they
-meet they fight.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[144]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘I never heard of that tribe,’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘The Enooma and the Curracoo are not known
-except in this part of Australia,’ said Yacka. ‘They
-are tribes of the MacDonnell and Musgrave blacks.
-They fight savagely. The Curracoo wish to seize the
-white spirit of the Enooma, and think to capture her;
-but they know nothing of our country, nor of the caves
-we are going to.’</p>
-
-<p>The blacks regarded Edgar and Will with much
-curiosity, and from the manner in which many of
-them pointed at their own bodies and then at Edgar’s,
-he thought they could not have seen many white men.
-It was a strange sensation for the two friends to lie
-awake in the midst of a camp of over two hundred
-savage blacks, and wonder what was about to
-happen.</p>
-
-<p>Early in the morning they were aroused by loud
-warlike cries, and Yacka hurried up to them and
-said:</p>
-
-<p>‘Follow me; the Curracoo are at hand, and there
-will be a fight.’</p>
-
-<p>‘And if the Enooma are beaten, what will become
-of us?’ said Will.</p>
-
-<p>‘The Enooma will win,’ said Yacka. ‘If beaten,
-Yacka can save you.’</p>
-
-<p>He led them to a small hill not far distant from the
-camp, and bade them remain until his return.</p>
-
-<p>‘You can see the fight,’ he said, ‘and there is no
-danger.’</p>
-
-<p>‘This is a lively situation,’ said Edgar. ‘With all<span class="pagenum">[145]</span>
-due respect to Yacka, if his tribe is defeated, the Curracoo
-will make short work of us.’</p>
-
-<p>‘There they are!’ said Will, pointing excitedly to a
-dark mass moving across the open country.</p>
-
-<p>‘It seems to me there are some hundreds of them,’
-said Edgar; ‘far more than the Enooma. This is a
-poor look-out, Will. We must be prepared to fight
-for our lives.’</p>
-
-<p>As they stood on the rising ground they had a
-splendid view of the plain below, and were soon
-absorbed in the scene before them. The two bodies
-of blacks were approaching nearer and nearer, and
-neither tribe shirked an encounter. They could see
-Yacka standing some distance apart, and evidently
-directing the movements of the Enooma.</p>
-
-<p>‘Yacka has learned something in the big cities,’
-said Edgar; ‘look where he has sent about fifty men
-round that clump of trees, where they are hidden from
-the enemy. They intend to make an attack on the
-rear that will prove successful.’</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly, and without a moment’s warning, the
-whole scene changed. On the plain, that a moment
-before had contained two bodies of blacks advancing
-towards each other, there was now a confused mass of
-figures, uttering terrible cries and fighting like furies.
-The sound of blows could be heard above the din, and
-the grass was dotted with the forms of fallen blacks.
-They were at too close quarters for spears, and were
-using heavy nulla-nullas, and warding off the blows
-with wooden shields.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[146]</span></p>
-
-<p>They saw Yacka quietly surveying the scene, and
-wondered why he did not join in.</p>
-
-<p>‘He is waiting for a favourable opportunity,’ said
-Edgar. ‘Those men behind the trees have not moved
-yet.’</p>
-
-<p>The cries of the fighting blacks became more and
-more wild and furious. They looked like fiends
-dancing about in a frenzy, and dealing blows on
-every hand. One huge fellow, a chief of the
-Enooma, did terrible execution with an enormous
-weapon which he whirled about like a battle-axe, and
-Edgar and Will watched him with a fascination
-that deadened all sense of their own danger if the
-tribe suffered defeat.</p>
-
-<p>‘Look at him!’ said Edgar. ‘He’s mowing them
-down like grass. No one can stand in his way. His
-wrist play is splendid&mdash;it reminds me of club exercise
-at school.’</p>
-
-<p>‘It’s a trifle more exciting than that,’ said Will.
-‘What strength the fellow has! He could fell an ox
-with one of those terrible blows. Nothing can stop
-him.’</p>
-
-<p>As though to give the lie to his words, a black,
-nearly as big as the Enooma chief, barred his way,
-and a desperate combat took place. Both men had
-wooden shields with which they dexterously warded
-off the blows. They were evenly matched, although
-the Enooma black was a shade taller than his opponent.
-Both were mad with rage and thirst for blood,
-and it was a duel to the death.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[147]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘He’s down!’ shouted Edgar, as the Enooma chief
-slipped; but it was only a feint, as the black,
-dodging a blow aimed at his head by his opponent,
-suddenly raised himself. The Curracoo overbalanced
-himself with the force of the blow, and fell forward.
-As he stumbled along, the Enooma, raising his huge
-club on high, brought it down with tremendous force
-on the back of the Curracoo’s head. Where they
-stood they could hear the blow, and Edgar shuddered
-as he saw the black’s head split open, and he fell dead
-on the ground.</p>
-
-<p>Seeing their champion killed, the Curracoo wavered;
-and, seizing this favourable opportunity, Yacka, uttering
-a loud war-yell, sprang forward and called upon
-the men in ambush to follow him. In a few minutes
-the Enooma blacks were furiously attacking the Curracoos
-in the rear. Unaccustomed to these tactics,
-the Curracoos were terrified, and at once tried to run
-away from the danger. This, however, was impossible;
-they were hemmed in on all sides, and by
-merciless foes who knew not the meaning of the
-word ‘quarter.’ It was a fearful sight to see these
-blacks felled to the ground by the heavy blows rained
-upon them on all sides. The Enooma were bent
-upon slaughter, and killed their enemies without
-mercy. The plain had every appearance of a battle-field,
-and in some places half a dozen blacks were
-piled in a heap, dead.</p>
-
-<p>At a signal from Yacka the Enooma ceased fighting,
-and, surrounding the blacks still left alive, held them<span class="pagenum">[148]</span>
-prisoners. These men were disarmed and marched
-off towards the camp. A few of the Curracoos could
-be seen flying from the scene of the battle which had
-proved so fatal to them, but comparatively few of
-them escaped.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka came to Edgar and Will, and they saw he
-was almost covered with blood, and his club was dripping
-dark-red drops. The black’s eyes shone with
-the light of battle and thirst for blood. All the
-savage nature of this strange being was roused, and
-the cruelty in him was uppermost. He shook the
-blood-stained club over his head, and said:</p>
-
-<p>‘Victory to the Enooma. There has been a
-terrible slaughter. Come and see. Yacka will show
-you how the Enooma strike their enemies.’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar and Will descended from the hill where they
-had witnessed the fight, and followed Yacka on to the
-field of battle.</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XVI">CHAPTER XVI.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">AFTER THE FIGHT.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>It was indeed a terrible sight the two friends gazed
-upon. On the ground where the fight had furiously
-raged lay scores of dead blacks in all attitudes, just
-as they had fallen. It made them shudder to look at
-the scene. The terrific nature of the blows dealt was
-apparent, for most of the dead had their skulls fractured,<span class="pagenum">[149]</span>
-and their features were ghastly and distorted.
-Their weapons lay near them, and Edgar picked up
-the club which the powerful black who fought the
-Enooma chief had used. It was a great weight, and
-fully three feet long, and capable of dealing a fearful
-blow, even in a weak man’s hands. The end was
-covered with blood and hair, showing that the Curracoo
-had killed many enemies before he was slain.</p>
-
-<p>‘You will bury these men?’ asked Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘The Enooma must have burial,’ said Yacka; ‘the
-Curracoo are not fit to be hidden away;’ and he struck
-a fallen black, who still showed signs of life, over the
-head with his club.</p>
-
-<p>‘That was a cowardly thing to do,’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘They are not fit to live,’ said Yacka, and went on.</p>
-
-<p>‘What a brute he is, after all!’ said Will, in a low
-voice. ‘He is no better than the others.’</p>
-
-<p>‘He is a savage at heart,’ said Edgar, ‘and we
-must make allowances for him.’</p>
-
-<p>‘If he kills defenceless men like that,’ said Will, ‘I
-would not give much for our lives if he felt disposed
-to turn upon us.’</p>
-
-<p>‘He will not do that,’ said Edgar. ‘We are his
-friends, these men his enemies. Had the Curracoo
-won, they would have treated the Enooma in the
-same way. This savage warfare is the same the
-world over, I expect. It is a horrible sight.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Over a hundred killed,’ said Yacka, with a savage
-smile; ‘and we have many prisoners.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Shall you kill the prisoners?’ asked Edgar.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[150]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘Yes; and leave them as a warning to the tribe.’</p>
-
-<p>‘How will they be put to death?’ asked Edgar,
-who had read of the tortures inflicted by savages in
-Africa and elsewhere.</p>
-
-<p>‘That will be decided,’ said Yacka. ‘The Enooma
-know how to kill their enemies.’</p>
-
-<p>After a gruesome tramp over the battle-field, they
-returned to the camp. The victorious Enooma were
-already commencing to celebrate their triumph.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar saw a group of prisoners, about forty or
-fifty in number, bound with thongs made of some
-kind of reed or long grass. They all looked terror-stricken,
-and evidently knew what was in store for
-them.</p>
-
-<p>‘Poor wretches!’ said Will. ‘It would be a kindness
-to shoot them.’</p>
-
-<p>‘We must not interfere,’ said Edgar. ‘It would
-be risking our lives to do so. Even Yacka would not
-stand that.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You saw a dance at Yanda,’ said Yacka. ‘You
-will see a genuine war dance soon.’</p>
-
-<p>Towards night the big men of the tribe assembled
-round Yacka, and all squatted on the ground.</p>
-
-<p>‘They are deciding the fate of the prisoners,’ said
-Will. ‘I hope it will not be very awful.’</p>
-
-<p>The consultation did not last long, and Yacka came
-towards them. He seemed pleased at the prospect
-before him, and laughed harshly.</p>
-
-<p>‘It is good,’ he said. ‘All die a dog’s death.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Will they be hanged?’ asked Will.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[151]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘Some,’ said Yacka. ‘Wait and see.’</p>
-
-<p>There were many trees near the camp, and they
-had big white branches a good height from the
-ground. Ten of the Curracoos were brought
-forward and thrown down under the trees. They
-were then raised feet first, and bound with their
-heads downwards round the trunks of the trees.
-Others were drawn up, feet foremost, over the
-branches, and left hanging with their heads touching
-the feet of the others.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar protested to Yacka, but he took no notice.
-The black was looking at the fearful scene with
-savage delight. There was no mercy to be got out
-of Yacka, so Edgar did not speak to him again.</p>
-
-<p>Other blacks were brought to these trees, cast
-down on their faces, and spears were driven through
-their backs, pinning them to the ground in such a
-manner that they could not get free. Their cries
-were fearful, and made the place seem like a hell
-upon earth. Some of the cruelties were too fearful
-to relate, and yet Yacka watched it all with fiendish
-glee. When the last prisoner had been tortured and
-left to die a lingering death, Yacka was satisfied.</p>
-
-<p>‘We cannot trust you after what we have seen,’
-said Edgar. ‘We shall go back. Guide us to Alice
-Springs; if not, we must risk it, and go alone.’</p>
-
-<p>Yacka was dumfounded. He could not understand
-the reason of their distrust in him. He had
-acted according to the customs of his tribe, and
-knew, had the Curracoo won, the Enooma would<span class="pagenum">[152]</span>
-have been treated in a similar way. It was the
-fortune of war. The Enooma had gained the victory;
-why should the white men mistrust him because the
-tribe had taken their just revenge?</p>
-
-<p>‘Yacka is your friend,’ said the black. ‘You have
-come to no harm. We make war in our own way.
-You kill many men with big guns. I have seen them
-fired. They kill many at one shot. It is more
-terrible than our wars.’</p>
-
-<p>‘We do not torture prisoners,’ said Edgar. ‘You
-are no better than these savages.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I am the son of Enooma,’ said Yacka; ‘therefore
-I am the head of them. The head guides the
-body. I am the chief, the king, and I am above
-them all.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You are as cruel as they are,’ said Edgar. ‘If
-you are the King of the Enooma, why did you not
-kill these men at once, not torture them?’</p>
-
-<p>‘It is the will of Enooma,’ said Yacka, ‘and she
-must be obeyed.’</p>
-
-<p>‘The White Spirit would never allow men to be
-tortured,’ said Edgar. ‘There is no White Spirit
-over the Enooma; it is a black spirit, and full of
-evil.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You saved Yacka’s life,’ said the black, ‘and he is
-grateful. If my tribe know you call Enooma a black
-spirit, Yacka could not save you. Follow me. It is
-not far. Yacka will lead you back when you have
-looked upon the White Spirit, and seen the gold and
-beautiful stones.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[153]</span></p>
-
-<p>The agonized groans of the tortured blacks sounded
-terrible, and Edgar said:</p>
-
-<p>‘Kill these men, and we will go with you.’</p>
-
-<p>Yacka hesitated, and Edgar, noticing it, said:</p>
-
-<p>‘I took your hand in friendship; now it is stained
-in blood. Kill these men, and I will forgive you, and
-the White Spirit will be glad.’</p>
-
-<p>‘It shall be,’ said Yacka, and moved away towards
-the camp.</p>
-
-<p>How he prevailed upon the tribe he did not say,
-but the tortured men were killed, and their groans
-ceased, much to Edgar’s relief.</p>
-
-<p>After this experience, there was no telling what
-might happen if another encounter took place with a
-hostile tribe, and the Enooma were defeated. Yacka,
-however, had no intention of proceeding alone, and
-Edgar and Will found the tribe was to accompany
-them. Marching many miles a day in the company
-of a tribe of warlike blacks was a novel experience.
-Edgar had many opportunities of noting how they
-lived and their habits. He soon learned that the
-Enooma were excellent marksmen, and could throw
-a spear with as great accuracy as he could shoot.
-They used their boomerangs dexterously.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka was an adept at throwing this peculiar
-weapon, which is almost in the shape of a half
-crescent, and is made of very hard wood, smooth and
-shaved down to a sharp edge on the inside curve.
-Yacka could throw his boomerang high into the air,
-until it appeared a mere speck, and it came down in<span class="pagenum">[154]</span>
-a series of curves until it fell at his feet. No matter
-how far he threw the boomerang, it invariably returned
-to him.</p>
-
-<p>The first time Edgar attempted throwing a
-boomerang he was rather astonished. Instead of
-going high into the air, it gave a few curves, then
-flew rapidly backwards, and Edgar had to duck his
-head quickly to avoid a blow.</p>
-
-<p>‘It is not so easy as it looks,’ he said to Will.
-‘Have a try?’</p>
-
-<p>Will took the weapon and tried, with no better
-result; in fact, he came off worse than Edgar, for he
-got a severe blow on the shin. The blacks were
-amused at the white men’s clumsy attempts to throw
-the boomerang, and their grins of satisfaction exasperated
-Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘They imagine we can do nothing in this line,’ he
-said to Will. ‘We must undeceive them, or they
-will have a very poor opinion of us. We have not
-many shots to spare; but it may be as well to show
-them how deadly a gun is.’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar explained to Yacka that it was not fair the
-blacks should have it all their own way.</p>
-
-<p>‘Throw your boomerang, and I’ll engage to hit it
-in the air,’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka did not care to risk his own boomerang,
-which was carved in a fantastic manner, so he took
-another, and, after telling the blacks what Edgar
-was about to do, he flung it into the air.</p>
-
-<p>As it came circling down Edgar fired and hit it,<span class="pagenum">[155]</span>
-but it did not split with the shot; the marks, however,
-were plainly visible, and the blacks were not
-only terrified at the noise, but amazed at the result.
-It was Will’s turn next, and he elected to try his luck
-with the revolver.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka fastened one of the blacks’ loin-cloths to a
-tree, doubling it into a small space. These cloths
-were made of thick skin, probably kangaroo, and
-when doubled it offered strong resistance to a
-bullet.</p>
-
-<p>Will fired at twenty paces. The bullet passed
-through the skin and flattened against the tree. On
-seeing this, the blacks regarded the revolver with
-much interest, but would not handle it.</p>
-
-<p>The Enooma blacks were athletic fellows, and
-could run, jump, and wrestle in a manner that surprised
-Edgar, who knew a good deal about such
-sports.</p>
-
-<p>In his Redbank days Edgar had run his hundred
-yards in even time, and he was in splendid condition
-now.</p>
-
-<p>One of the Enooma, called Ouwana, they noticed
-was a fine runner, and Will suggested Edgar should
-try his speed against him.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka, as usual, arranged matters.</p>
-
-<p>Ouwana was a tall, lithe-limbed black, about
-twenty years old, and with a less repulsive cast of
-countenance than many of his tribe. He was quite
-willing to run Edgar, and Will measured out the
-distance as near as he could stride it.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[156]</span></p>
-
-<p>Yacka acted as starter, the signal being a loud
-clap of the hands, and Will was judge. The blacks
-grew quite excited over the race.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka’s hands met with a crack like a pistol, and,
-trained as he had been to start smartly, Edgar gained
-a slight advantage. He ran his best, but before he
-had gone fifty yards it was a hopeless case, as
-Ouwana passed him like a flash, and simply won
-hands down.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar was amazed, not so much at being beaten,
-as by the easy way in which it was done.</p>
-
-<p>‘He’s a champion,’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘He would be good enough to win one of those
-big handicaps we saw advertised in the Sydney
-paper before we left Yanda. How much was the
-prize money?’</p>
-
-<p>‘About six hundred pounds, I think,’ said Will;
-‘I wish we had Ouwana there.’</p>
-
-<p>‘So do I,’ said Edgar; ‘it would be rare fun to see
-the black fellow “down” the cracks.’</p>
-
-<p>The days passed quickly, and Edgar and Will
-had no thought of time. They did not even know
-what month it was, and were dead out of their
-reckoning as regards the days of the week.</p>
-
-<p>What surprised them most was the fertile nature of
-the country. They had passed across a vast sandy
-plain, and taken some days to do it, but ever since
-they left it behind they had been tramping over what
-Edgar knew would not only be excellent sheep
-country, but would also carry cattle. Grass was<span class="pagenum">[157]</span>
-plentiful&mdash;not brown, dry grass, but green and juicy&mdash;proving
-there had either been recent rain, or there
-was plenty of moisture in the earth.</p>
-
-<p>It was not a flat, dull, and uninteresting country,
-for there were hills and valleys, and trees and shrubs,
-and beautiful wild flowers and blossoming trees were
-found in many places. Wild berries and fruits they
-found, and running streams of water, which seemed
-to find their source in the many caves with which the
-mountains were honeycombed. In some of these
-streams, which at times were sufficiently large to be
-called rivers, crocodiles were found, both large and
-small. The larger crocodile was voracious, and it
-was not safe to bathe when any of them showed their
-ugly heads, but the smaller species was harmless, and
-never ventured to attack them.</p>
-
-<p>The Enooma blacks were fond of the water, and
-often risked their lives bathing and swimming where
-crocodiles were to be seen.</p>
-
-<p>Ouwana was especially venturesome, and often
-speared a crocodile in the water.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka said he had seen Ouwana fight a crocodile,
-with a shortened spear like a dagger, for the mere
-excitement of the sport.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar managed to further earn the goodwill of
-the blacks by saving Ouwana’s life.</p>
-
-<p>The black dived into the stream, and was swimming
-in the centre, when a huge crocodile appeared
-close beside him. The hideous creature opened its
-monster jaws, showing great ugly teeth, and in<span class="pagenum">[158]</span>
-another moment would have ended Ouwana’s career.
-Edgar luckily had his gun with him, and, taking a
-steady aim with the barrel used for ball, fired. The
-crocodile sank like a stone.</p>
-
-<p>Ouwana was unaware of his danger, and at first
-thought Edgar had fired at him. This roused all the
-ferociousness in the black’s nature, and it would have
-gone hard with Edgar had Yacka not come up and
-explained.</p>
-
-<p>When Ouwana found out what Edgar had done he
-showed his repentance for doubting him, and his
-thankfulness for his delivery from a fearful death, by
-kneeling down and putting both arms round Edgar’s
-legs. He then looked up into his face with such
-sorrowful eyes that Edgar patted his woolly head,
-much as he would have done that of a big dog.</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XVII">CHAPTER XVII.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">WONDROUS CAVERNS.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>‘Look!’ said Yacka, pointing to a range of hills in
-the distance. ‘There you will find the cave of the
-White Spirit, and your journey will be ended.’</p>
-
-<p>Gazing in the direction the black indicated, they
-saw hill upon hill towering one above the other like a
-number of huge pyramids. It was a strange sight in
-this wild country, where it was doubtful if ever a
-white man had set foot before.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[159]</span></p>
-
-<p>They were all eagerness to continue the journey,
-but Yacka said this could not be. Certain forms and
-ceremonies were to be gone through before he could
-venture with them into the hills and caves where
-Enooma, the White Spirit, lay at rest. Only the head
-of the tribe was permitted to enter the cave, and so
-superstitious were the blacks upon this point, that
-they believed it meant certain death to anyone of
-their number who disobeyed. Consequently Yacka
-would have no difficulty in showing Edgar and Will
-what the cave contained, as he alone could enter.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka had stated to the tribe that the white men
-were come to see Enooma, who was of the same
-race, and therefore they must be permitted to enter
-the cave.</p>
-
-<p>At the foot of the nearest hill&mdash;it could almost be
-called a mountain&mdash;they halted, and the blacks commenced
-a wild, weird chant which sounded like the
-wail of lost spirits. They prostrated themselves upon
-the ground, and made signs with their spears.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka stepped on ahead, and beckoned to Edgar
-and Will to follow, which they did without hesitation.
-The other blacks came on at a respectful distance,
-and seemed afraid that something was about to
-happen. In the side of the hill they were approaching,
-Edgar saw a large cleft in the rock wide enough
-to admit half a dozen people to pass in abreast.
-These hills were all solid rock, not merely mounds
-of earth, and were bare in many places, while in
-fissures grew trees, and wild creepers hung down in<span class="pagenum">[160]</span>
-great profusion. Orchids were growing of exceptional
-beauty, and Edgar, as he looked at them,
-thought of the price they would bring in the old
-country. As they entered the cleft in the rock the
-blacks remained behind, and squatted down on the
-ground.</p>
-
-<p>‘They guard the entrance,’ said Yacka. ‘When
-no one is here this opening in the rock closes up, and
-no one can find the cave of Enooma.’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar wondered how Yacka knew the cleft closed
-up if no one was there to see such a strange thing
-happen.</p>
-
-<p>‘How can you tell that,’ he said, ‘if you have never
-seen it?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Rest and listen,’ said Yacka: ‘You never believe
-I speak truth because I am black. Once the
-Enooma were defeated by the Curracoo, and fled
-before them to these hills. They were so hard-pressed
-that they had to rush through the cleft in the
-rock, and when the last of the tribe passed in the
-cleft closed and shut the Curracoo out. This is true,
-for men of the tribe have told me, and they do not
-lie to the chief.’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar believed this to be another superstition of
-the blacks, but he could not resist looking behind
-him towards the cleft they had entered by. With a
-loud cry he sprang to his feet, for behind them there
-was a solid rock, and he could see nothing of the
-blacks they had left. Will looked, and turned pale
-as he saw they were shut in.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[161]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘How is this?’ said Edgar. ‘What has happened?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Enooma has closed her gate,’ said Yacka. ‘She
-knows of the approach of her son and the white men,
-and she wishes to be undisturbed.’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar walked back to where he imagined the cleft
-in the rock by which they entered had been, but he
-could see nothing but a solid mass in front of him.
-He felt the rock and it was hard and firm, and must
-have been there for ages. How had this strange
-thing happened? Yacka must have suddenly turned
-as they walked along, and the opening become
-hidden, but as they entered the black appeared to
-have gone straight on.</p>
-
-<p>‘I give it up,’ said Edgar. ‘We seem to be
-blocked in here, and shall have to trust to Yacka to
-get us out. It makes a fellow feel queer when such
-strange things happen, but I have no doubt there is
-an explanation of it if we can find it out.’</p>
-
-<p>The place they were now standing in was a narrow
-defile between rocks towering up perpendicularly to
-a considerable height. These rocks were bare and
-smooth, and not a plant or fern could be seen
-growing on the sides. Before them was the mouth
-of a cave, and inside seemed dark as pitch. Yacka
-walked to the mouth of the cave, and they followed
-him. When they became accustomed to the gloom,
-they saw a faint glimmer of light, about the size of a
-bull’s-eye lantern glass, in the far distance. So far
-as Edgar could make out, the sides of the cave were<span class="pagenum">[162]</span>
-rocks, but smoothed in a similar way to those on
-either side of the defile they had left. The floor of
-the cave was hard and even, in some places so
-smooth that it became slippery and dangerous.
-Yacka did not speak, but kept moving slowly
-forward, and they could see the dim outline of his
-figure.</p>
-
-<p>‘It must have been the action of water for ages
-that has made the floor so smooth,’ said Edgar.
-‘How cold it is after the heat we have had! Reminds
-me of a petrifying cave. I believe if we
-remained here long enough we should be turned into
-stone.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I have no desire to be turned into a petrified
-mummy at present,’ said Will laughing; ‘but you’re
-right about the cold&mdash;I am chilled to the bone.’</p>
-
-<p>‘How much more of this is there, Yacka?’ said
-Edgar, speaking loud enough for the black, who was
-some way in front, to hear him.</p>
-
-<p>The sound of his voice echoed through the passage,
-and gradually died away in the distance.</p>
-
-<p>‘Wait,’ said Yacka. ‘Be careful here.’</p>
-
-<p>They had need of the warning, for they were now
-treading upon something soft and slimy, and the
-sensation was not pleasant. They slipped about and
-made but little progress, and were glad when the
-ground felt hard and dry again.</p>
-
-<p>The round ball of light at the end was gradually
-widening, and they could now see more plainly the
-nature of the passage they were traversing. Looking<span class="pagenum">[163]</span>
-up to the roof Edgar saw thousands of glittering
-stars, which flashed and twinkled even with the faint
-light from the opening.</p>
-
-<p>‘Look, Will,’ he said; ‘how lovely this roof would
-be if there was more light! They might be diamonds,
-they sparkle so.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Wish they were,’ replied Will. ‘A few diamonds
-would help a fellow along&mdash;you know in what direction
-I mean.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yacka has promised to make us rich. I wonder
-if he will let us take what we like if there is anything
-to take?’</p>
-
-<p>It was a mass of various-coloured stalactites on the
-roof that had attracted Edgar’s attention, and as they
-got more light in the passage they were seen in all
-their beauty. The sides were also covered with
-curiously-twisted and gnarled designs. As they
-neared the opening they saw the sun was shining
-brightly, and that they were about to enter an open
-space. They were not, however, prepared for the
-sight that burst upon their astonished gaze as they
-stepped out of the darkness into the full light of the
-sun. Yacka watched them with a delighted expression
-in his eyes, and had evidently anticipated the
-surprise he was about to give them.</p>
-
-<p>They were so charmed with the scene that they sat
-down and looked upon it without saying a word.
-The spot they were in was like a large basin hollowed
-out of the solid rocks. The sides sloped down gradually,
-and were hollowed out at the base. Had there<span class="pagenum">[164]</span>
-been tiers of seats round, it would have resembled in
-shape a vast amphitheatre. There was, however,
-something far more picturesque than bare seats round
-this wonderful circle. The whole of the basin was
-covered with a kind of green moss, which looked like
-velvet as the sun shone upon it.</p>
-
-<p>This velvet bed was studded with a profusion of
-flowers of all colours, shapes, and sizes. Brilliant
-orchids selected the most shady nooks to fix their
-abode in. Huge white convolvulus spread over projections
-and clumps; lilies of great height filled in spaces
-where water lodged, and gently trickled down into a
-pool in the hollow of the basin. Great nest ferns surrounded
-the water, their fronds, over six feet long,
-spreading out like large fans. The miniata had its
-large carmine blossoms showing to perfection, the
-colour being dazzling. Pandanus and screw palms
-also grew amongst the giant ferns and lilies. Floating
-on the water in the basin were gigantic water-lilies.</p>
-
-<p>So scooped out was this basin, that there was an
-ample shade for the numerous ferns and lilies that do
-not flourish with the full light of the sun upon them.
-Surrounded by such lovely flowers and ferns, and with
-a cool pool of water to make everything refreshing, it
-is small wonder, after their recent experiences, that
-Edgar and Will fancied themselves in an enchanted
-spot. How it all came here no one could fathom.
-Nature fixes upon strange spots in which to work at
-her best. All they knew and cared about was that<span class="pagenum">[165]</span>
-in an unexplored part of Australia they had come
-upon such a wonderful scene.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka assured them this was a mere nothing when
-compared with the cave of Enooma.</p>
-
-<p>The place they were now in he described as the
-bathing-place of Enooma, and said the waters from
-the caves did not run into this place.</p>
-
-<p>‘You can drink this water,’ said Yacka, ‘but not
-that in the caves. It is bitter, and will turn the
-tongue hard, and you will have no taste.’</p>
-
-<p>It always struck Edgar as curious that, no matter
-where they happened to be, Yacka could invariably
-procure them a good meal. Even in this spot, where
-it did not seem likely they would be able to find much
-to relieve their hunger, Yacka got berries and roots,
-some water from the pool, and made quite a pleasant,
-and what proved to be a strengthening, drink. He
-also gave them a root which he said would appease
-hunger for a time whenever tasted.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka would not allow them to linger here, but
-walked round the basin.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar saw no outlet except the one by which they
-had entered. At the far side Yacka pulled aside the
-dense masses of ferns, and they saw an opening large
-enough to admit of a man crawling through. Yacka
-went first, and they followed on their hands and
-knees.</p>
-
-<p>This passage was about fifty yards in length, and
-at the other end was an open cave, which was lighted
-by a hole in the roof, naturally formed. Gliding down<span class="pagenum">[166]</span>
-the walls were glistening drops of water, and the floor
-was very uneven, and covered with masses of rock
-that must at some remote period have become
-detached from the roof. Some of the tracery on the
-walls Edgar looked at with wonder. It was of a rich
-cream colour, and almost like the texture of a cashmere
-shawl.</p>
-
-<p>All sorts of shapes and figures could be seen caused
-by the action of the water, which must have taken
-thousands of years to perform its work, and would
-take thousands more years to complete it. Hanging
-from the roof were large pendants like icicles, and the
-water ran slowly down them and dripped off at the
-end. The hollow underneath caused by these drips
-showed the extreme age of the cave.</p>
-
-<p>Leaning against the side of the cave Edgar saw
-close to him what at first looked like a bunch of
-grapes; but when he observed it closely he found it
-was a peculiar formation in the rock.</p>
-
-<p>‘That is one of the secrets,’ said Yacka. ‘It is a
-guide to the inner cave we must enter. Watch.’</p>
-
-<p>Yacka pushed the bunch of grapes, and a large
-slab of rock moved slowly round, and through the
-opening they saw another large cave beyond.</p>
-
-<p>‘Enter and wait,’ said Yacka.</p>
-
-<p>‘Are you coming?’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘I will fetch you,’ said Yacka; ‘but I must enter the
-White Spirit’s cave before you, or harm may befall.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I don’t half like it,’ said Edgar. ‘We are not
-afraid, but you had better go on with us.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[167]</span></p>
-
-<p>Yacka said: ‘You must remain alone.’</p>
-
-<p>‘All right,’ said Edgar, sitting down on a projection
-from the rock; ‘but make haste back.’</p>
-
-<p>Yacka went away, and when they looked round they
-found the rock had swung back into its place, and they
-were imprisoned in the cave.</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XVIII">CHAPTER XVIII.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">THE WHITE SPIRIT.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>It was not a pleasant sensation to find themselves
-alone, shut up in a cave, only a faint glimmer of
-light being visible, and from which there appeared to
-be no means of escape. There was a peculiar clammy
-dampness about the atmosphere, and a strange vault-like
-smell. It might have been an old tomb, so weird
-was everything surrounding them.</p>
-
-<p>‘The stone must have swung back into its place,’
-said Edgar. ‘Yacka will open it when he returns.’</p>
-
-<p>‘All the same, I don’t like it,’ said Will. ‘Suppose
-he could not move the stone again. If anything
-happened to him, we have very little chance of getting
-out.’</p>
-
-<p>‘There is no occasion for alarm at present,’ said
-Edgar. ‘I trust Yacka, and he will soon return. To
-pass away the time we may as well examine the cave.<span class="pagenum">[168]</span>
-It is evidently only one of many. The whole of
-these rocks and hills are honeycombed.’</p>
-
-<p>They stepped cautiously, and felt the sides of the
-cave, finding them smooth and even.</p>
-
-<p>‘Here is another of these peculiar formations like
-a bunch of grapes,’ said Edgar. ‘Perhaps there is
-another stone that swings round. We can try at any
-rate.’</p>
-
-<p>He pushed the hard knob, as he had seen Yacka do,
-and cried out excitedly:</p>
-
-<p>‘It moves, Will; come and help me! Push hard!
-I can feel it giving way.’</p>
-
-<p>Slowly the huge stone moved, and there was an
-opening wide enough for them to pass through.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar went through first, but came back quickly
-when Will called out the opening was closing up
-again and the stone swinging back into its place.
-Edgar had just time to step back into the cave when
-the stone swung to.</p>
-
-<p>‘That is the way the other must have closed up,’
-said Edgar. ‘It made no noise. Let us have
-another try, the cave on the other side is much
-larger than this.’</p>
-
-<p>‘If we get through,’ said Will, ‘the stone will
-swing back, and we shall be worse off than before.
-Yacka will not be able to find us when he returns.’</p>
-
-<p>‘He will follow us,’ said Edgar. ‘He must know
-of this cave and the way to enter it.’</p>
-
-<p>‘If you mean going on, I will follow you,’ said
-Will.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[169]</span></p>
-
-<p>They moved the stone again, and this time they
-both stepped quickly through before it swung
-back.</p>
-
-<p>The cave they entered was, as Edgar said, much
-larger than the one they had just left. It was lighted
-by the same dim light, but they could not see from
-whence it came.</p>
-
-<p>‘Here is another knob,’ said Will. ‘They must
-have been made by the blacks. Perhaps we are on
-the way to the cave of Enooma. I wonder what
-Yacka will think if we reach it before him.’</p>
-
-<p>‘He will think we have been guided there by the
-White Spirit,’ said Edgar, ‘and will regard us with
-superstitious awe. It would be a good thing if we
-could come across the cave he spoke of without his
-help.’</p>
-
-<p>The stone turned in a similar way to the others,
-but this time they found themselves in a long passage,
-like an old mining tunnel in a rock.</p>
-
-<p>They walked cautiously along, but there was more
-light here than in the cave they had left. Edgar
-kicked a loose stone and it rolled some distance in
-front and then vanished, and they heard a splash.
-The stone had fallen into a deep hole, and as they
-peered down they saw the water rolling slowly along
-at a considerable depth.</p>
-
-<p>‘It must be an underground river,’ said Edgar.
-‘We have had a narrow escape.’</p>
-
-<p>They shuddered to think what would have befallen
-them had they not been warned by the stone.<span class="pagenum">[170]</span>
-Round one side of the opening was a narrow pathway,
-and along this they passed safely to the opposite
-side, looking well ahead in case there should be more
-of these death traps.</p>
-
-<p>The passage wound through the rock in a tortuous
-manner, and after they had gone a considerable distance,
-they sat down to rest and wonder where it
-would lead them. Will wished they had remained in
-the cave and waited for Yacka’s return, and Edgar
-began to think he had ventured upon a foolhardy
-journey.</p>
-
-<p>‘We are in for it now,’ he said, ‘and shall have to
-go on, for we cannot find our way back, and even if
-we did, we could not push the stones round from this
-side. It looks very much like the workings of an old
-mine, but there can have been no mining done here,
-because the blacks know nothing of such work.
-What’s that?’</p>
-
-<p>They listened intently and heard a faint sound in
-the distance like someone in pain and wailing aloud.</p>
-
-<p>‘Come along,’ said Edgar, ‘there is someone ahead
-of us.’</p>
-
-<p>They walked on as fast as they were able, and
-presently came to the end of the passage. Here they
-found another stone blocking the exit, but it had
-been partly pushed aside as though someone had just
-entered, and it had not swung back into its place.
-Edgar passed through, and as he did so held up his
-hand to caution Will not to make a noise.</p>
-
-<p>It was a strange, weird sight they saw. They had<span class="pagenum">[171]</span>
-entered another large cave, but it was of a totally
-different formation to those they had seen. At the
-far end of the cave was a beautiful crystal wall nearly
-thirty feet high. The stalagmites were short and
-thick, and the stalactitic formations extremely long,
-many being over a hundred feet in length. Massive
-deposits could be seen on all sides heaped up in the
-most curious manner. Many of them were of a
-wondrous salmon colour, others were deep red, and
-brown, and several glittered with a dull blood-red
-glow.</p>
-
-<p>They were awed by this grand, majestic freak of
-Nature. To the left was another passage, full of
-magnificent columns of stalactites and stalagmites,
-all pure white and diamond-like in brilliance; they
-seemed to be coated with sparkling and lustrous
-gems. These columns rose from floor to roof like
-huge pillars in some vast cathedral. They were of
-different formations, but all about the same height.
-All the colours of the rainbow sparkled in the various
-pillars, and the effect was dazzling.</p>
-
-<p>Passing down this magnificent column passage, untouched
-by the art of man, and marvelling at its
-strange beauty, they came to a beautiful shawl-like
-formation of the purest white, which hung suspended
-from the roof between two massive pillars until it
-reached within a yard of the floor. This curtain was
-of the most delicate pattern, the tracery being very
-fine, in some places almost as fine as a spider’s web.
-There were designs on it of flowers and leaves unlike<span class="pagenum">[172]</span>
-any they had ever seen in reality. It was evident
-this curtain shut off some chamber beyond from the
-passage of columns they had just passed through.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar was about to speak, when they again heard
-the wail that had before startled them.</p>
-
-<p>This time it sounded nearer, on the other side of
-the curtain, and Edgar stooped down in order to pass
-underneath. Will followed him, and both clutched
-their revolvers.</p>
-
-<p>They were now in a richly-stocked chamber of
-large size, the colours on the rock and the roof being
-of a dazzling white, like alabaster. In a recess at
-the end was a white recumbent figure, resting on a
-huge salmon-coloured slab, from which hung down
-like drapery a yellow-tinted curtain of stone, with
-red-veined tracery running through it in all manner
-of intricate shapes and ways.</p>
-
-<p>Before this stone figure, resting upon its hard bed,
-knelt the black figure of Yacka, standing out with
-extraordinary distinctness from his white surroundings.
-Yacka prostrated himself before the white
-figure, and from time to time gave a low, yet piercing,
-wailing cry.</p>
-
-<p>They stood looking upon the strange scene in
-silence, and neither felt inclined to break it.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka suddenly seemed to be aware that someone
-was present, for he rose to his feet and, turning round,
-faced them.</p>
-
-<p>He did not seem at all surprised to see them, and
-beckoned to them to advance.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[173]</span></p>
-
-<p>When they reached the stone upon which Yacka
-stood, the black said:</p>
-
-<p>‘Kneel, kneel. This is the White Spirit of the
-Enooma. This is Enooma, and this is her cave.
-She dwells here. She has lived here from the beginning,
-and Yacka is her son. Kneel before the White
-Spirit.’</p>
-
-<p>To humour him they knelt. There was something
-solemn about the proceedings&mdash;something it was
-difficult to understand. As they knelt, Yacka wailed
-again, and the peculiar cry echoed through the white,
-vaulted chamber.</p>
-
-<p>‘I knew you would come,’ said Yacka. ‘Enooma
-told me you would find your way. She whispered to
-me that you were of her race, and her people.’ The
-black’s voice had a sad tone in it. ‘She has found
-her white sons, and the poor black must know her no
-more; Yacka is no longer the only son of Enooma.
-He has brought you to her, and she claims you as
-her own. You are of her race and her people.
-Rise and look upon the face of Enooma, the White
-Spirit, and say did Yacka speak false when he brought
-you here.’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar and Will rose to their feet, and, standing on
-a large slab which Yacka pointed out to them, they
-looked down upon the figure before them.</p>
-
-<p>To Edgar it looked like the figure of a very beautiful
-woman carved in alabaster. She lay on her back,
-with her hands hidden beneath the folds of a fine
-piece of stone lacework. The lower part of the<span class="pagenum">[174]</span>
-figure had a similar covering, so that the actual part
-of a woman visible to them was the face only. But
-the lace covering of the body was of such fine work
-that the figure could almost be seen underneath.</p>
-
-<p>The face of Enooma wore a calm and peaceful
-expression, such as is invariably found upon the
-carved monuments of the dead, and bearing but
-little sign of the mind that worked within before
-death.</p>
-
-<p>‘Can this be the image of a being that once lived
-here?’ said Edgar to Will.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka stood some distance away, and could not
-hear them.</p>
-
-<p>‘Impossible,’ said Will. ‘No white woman has
-ever been here.’</p>
-
-<p>‘It may not have been a white woman,’ said Edgar.
-‘Carved as this is, one could not tell whether the
-original was black or white. It is an alabaster figure,
-or looks like it.’ He touched the figure on the face with
-his hand, and drew it back suddenly. ‘It feels quite
-hot,’ he said.</p>
-
-<p>‘Probably so intensely cold that you imagined for
-the moment it burned you,’ said Will.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar touched the face again, but, strange to say,
-could not keep his hand upon it.</p>
-
-<p>‘You try,’ he said; and Will put his hand out.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka saw the motion, and called out:</p>
-
-<p>‘Touch her not! Only one must touch her.’</p>
-
-<p>Will smiled as he said:</p>
-
-<p>‘I will do her no harm, Yacka.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[175]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘At your own risk,’ said the black, ‘touch her,
-but do not blame me; I warned you.’</p>
-
-<p>Will put out his hand again, and then a strange
-thing happened. Before he touched the face his feet
-slipped, and he fell off the slab with such force that,
-his head coming into violent contact with the stone,
-he was stunned.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar jumped down and held up his head, and in
-a few moments Will recovered his senses.</p>
-
-<p>‘I warned you,’ said Yacka.</p>
-
-<p>‘It was a pure accident,’ said Will.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar made no remark, but he thought it a strange
-coincidence.</p>
-
-<p>A peculiar rumbling sound was heard, and Yacka
-listened intently. In a moment there was a terrific
-crash. The rock upon which they stood shook, and
-the sides of the cave seemed to rock.</p>
-
-<p>The slab upon which rested the White Spirit of
-Enooma rocked to and fro, and the figure seemed to
-move.</p>
-
-<p>Crash followed crash, and roar upon roar. The
-forces of Nature seemed to have suddenly burst
-loose, and a general upheaval was taking place. So
-violent became the oscillation, that they were compelled
-to lie down on the floor of the cave.</p>
-
-<p>‘It is Enooma’s welcome to her own people,’ said
-Yacka, who was not in the least afraid.</p>
-
-<p>‘It is an earthquake,’ said Edgar in an awestruck
-voice.</p>
-
-<p>‘What is an earthquake?’ said Yacka.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[176]</span></p>
-
-<p>Edgar made no reply. He could not. For the
-first time he felt a strange fear creep over him. With
-a trembling hand he pointed to the white figure of
-Enooma.</p>
-
-<p>They looked with wondering eyes, and on Yacka’s
-face was an expression of absolute terror. The slab on
-which Enooma rested cracked and split, and the white
-figure disappeared from view.</p>
-
-<p>With a terrible cry of rage Yacka sprang to his
-feet, and looked down the opening into which the
-White Spirit of Enooma had disappeared.</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XIX">CHAPTER XIX.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">THE FORCES OF NATURE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>As Yacka stood on the height above them, his black
-figure seemed to grow and expand until he looked a
-giant in stature. His rage was terrible, and his
-whole frame shook with wrath. Shock followed
-quickly upon shock, but Yacka maintained his foothold,
-despite the violent concussions that rocked the
-cave.</p>
-
-<p>A huge piece of rock crashed down at Edgar’s
-feet, the broken portions flying in all directions.
-They at once looked round for some place to hide
-in, and some protection from the falling stones.
-Crawling along on their hands and knees, they crept<span class="pagenum">[177]</span>
-under a portion of the slab upon which the white
-figure had rested, and which had fallen upon two
-large rocks that upheld it. Under this they had a
-safe shelter, providing the ground held firm. Above
-the roar and din of falling rocks they could now
-hear the peals of thunder, which sounded like salvos
-of artillery. A crack in the roof of the cavern
-admitted the lightning, which darted in and out
-incessantly.</p>
-
-<p>From where they were hidden they could see
-Yacka, who still stood a solitary black figure amidst
-this chaos. The black was lost to all sense of danger,
-even to the nature of the surroundings. One thought
-alone absorbed him&mdash;the sudden vanishing of the
-white figure of Enooma. He peered into the depths
-below him, but could see nothing; he waved his
-hands wildly, and uttered loud cries.</p>
-
-<p>Watching him intently, Edgar and Will were
-afraid every moment he would jump into the fissure,
-or be hurled into it by a sudden shock. After a few
-moments’ pause in this battle of the forces of Nature,
-another shock was felt. They heard the same dull,
-rumbling sound, and felt the vibration of the earth
-beneath them. The movement increased in force,
-until they were rocked to and fro, and had to cling
-to the edge of the slab for support. Another rush
-of fallen rocks and stones took place, and after a
-terrific and prolonged peal of thunder a dead silence
-reigned. After the deafening noise the sudden silence
-could almost be felt; the change was marvellous.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[178]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘It is all over,’ said Edgar. ‘Thank God, we are
-alive!’</p>
-
-<p>They crept out of their hiding-place and looked
-for Yacka, but he was nowhere to be seen. Hastily
-they scrambled on to the fallen slabs, and looked
-down into the dark hole where the figure of Enooma
-had fallen.</p>
-
-<p>‘Yacka, Yacka!’ shouted Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>There was no answer, except a loud echo of his
-voice. Again Edgar shouted, and this time there
-was a faint response.</p>
-
-<p>‘He has fallen down,’ said Will. ‘How are we to
-reach him? He may be fatally injured.’</p>
-
-<p>They looked round for some means of descending
-in safety, and after peering down the hole for some
-time Edgar said:</p>
-
-<p>‘There is a light at the bottom, and now I can
-see better; the rocks seem to be piled up in heaps.
-We may be able to descend by slipping from one to
-the other. It is our only chance, and we must
-try it.’</p>
-
-<p>They prepared for their perilous descent; they
-had no rope, and nothing out of which a support of
-any kind could be made.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar knelt down, and Will caught hold of one
-hand as he glided over the edge.</p>
-
-<p>‘All right,’ said Edgar, ‘I have a foothold here.’</p>
-
-<p>Will followed, and the same operation was repeated,
-and Edgar again found a firm footing lower down.
-He stood still, and helped Will to follow him. It<span class="pagenum">[179]</span>
-was slow work, but by degrees they neared the
-bottom.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar looked down from the ledge upon which
-he was standing, and saw Yacka lying near the foot
-of the rock.</p>
-
-<p>‘Are you badly hurt?’ he called out.</p>
-
-<p>‘Not much hurt,’ replied Yacka. ‘My leg pains,
-but is not broken.’</p>
-
-<p>‘It is a big drop from here,’ said Edgar, ‘but it
-does not look a dangerous place to fall on. I’ll
-chance it.’</p>
-
-<p>He let himself down to his full length, and then
-dropped.</p>
-
-<p>‘It is quite safe,’ he shouted to Will.</p>
-
-<p>Will followed, and they found they were on a
-bed of moss and ferns that had flourished in the
-darkness, and had been kept green by the dampness.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka was not much hurt. He had slipped, and
-fallen a considerable distance, and his descent had
-been checked by a projection in the rock. From
-this he had gradually descended, much in the same
-way as Will and Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘Where are we?’ said Edgar. ‘This cavern must
-have been in its present state a long time.’</p>
-
-<p>‘It has,’ said Yacka. ‘This is the place I was to
-show you. The White Spirit of Enooma guarded the
-entrance. The place where she rested formed the
-opening. She fell down here, and is gone; Enooma
-will be seen no more. When her treasure is gone<span class="pagenum">[180]</span>
-there will be no need for her to guard it. Her task
-is ended, and she will watch no more.’</p>
-
-<p>‘If the figure fell on the moss and ferns it would
-not be much injured,’ said Edgar; ‘we will search
-for Enooma while you rest here.’</p>
-
-<p>‘It is not good for Yacka to remain; he will search
-with you,’ said the black.</p>
-
-<p>‘She must be near here,’ said Will. ‘See, there is
-the opening down which she fell.’</p>
-
-<p>They searched in every direction, but could find
-no trace of the figure. Edgar felt they were treading
-on some soft substance like sand, and, stooping
-down, felt it with his hands. It was like powder,
-quite white and fine.</p>
-
-<p>‘The figure must have crumbled away,’ said
-Edgar. ‘Look at this powder’; and he handed
-some to Will.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka looked at it curiously, and said:</p>
-
-<p>‘Enooma has gone; the White Spirit has left her
-cave, and has shown no sign.’</p>
-
-<p>‘This is a sign,’ said Edgar. ‘Your white lady
-has crumbled to dust. The figure must have been
-one of Nature’s freaks, and having become decayed
-and rotten with age, has been ground to powder by
-the fall.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I should like to know how the figure came where
-we found it,’ said Will.</p>
-
-<p>‘It was placed there by the Enooma years and
-years ago,’ said Yacka. ‘It was a pure block of
-white stone then, and no figure on it. The White<span class="pagenum">[181]</span>
-Spirit formed the figure, and Yacka is the son of
-Enooma.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Was Enooma, your mother, a white woman?’
-said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘I knew no mother,’ said Yacka. ‘She left me
-before I could speak. The tribe knew she was white,
-and her spirit lived in these caves. Now the spirit
-is gone, and the Enooma will seek a new country.
-It is good; we have lived here too long. We
-shall go north, and be near the sea; that will give
-strength to the Enooma, and make them strong big
-men.’</p>
-
-<p>‘How are we to get out of this place,’ said Will.</p>
-
-<p>‘Easy way out,’ said Yacka; ‘but hard way in.’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar thought this strange, but waited to see what
-Yacka meant.</p>
-
-<p>‘Come,’ said Yacka, limping along. ‘I will show
-you the riches of Enooma.’</p>
-
-<p>He led them along a dark passage into another
-cave, and here the light streamed in from a cleft in
-the rock. Gold glittered in heaps on the floor. There
-were nuggets of gold almost solid, and some as large
-as a goose egg. They were scattered about in
-reckless profusion. There were diamonds of small
-size, uncut, and great rubies of pigeon-blood colour.
-It was a cave of riches, and Edgar and Will feasted
-their eyes on it in amazement. They held the rubies
-in their hands, and gloated over their wondrous
-colour. They handled the gold and felt its weight,
-and were bewildered with the nature of the discovery.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[182]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘How did all this come here?’ said Edgar. ‘To
-whom does it belong?’</p>
-
-<p>‘It is mine,’ said Yacka. ‘I am the son of
-Enooma, and the tribe collected it. None of them
-know its value. They do not wish for gold or stones.
-All they wish for is to live a savage life, and to have
-a country of their own. They cannot be taught what
-such things as these mean. Yacka has been in great
-cities and knows. He has seen the white man kill
-for love of gold; he has seen the women of the white
-men sell themselves for these,’ and he held up some
-rubies and diamonds. ‘It is better for the Enooma
-to remain as they are. Gold would make them fight
-amongst themselves, now they fight their enemies.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You may be right,’ said Edgar. ‘All the same, I
-should like a few samples of your wealth, Yacka.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Take what you will,’ said Yacka. ‘It is far to
-carry it. Do not take too much, or you will not
-reach Yanda again. Water is more precious than
-gold sometimes.’</p>
-
-<p>‘May we return and take away more?’ asked
-Will.</p>
-
-<p>‘If you can find the place,’ said the black; ‘but
-Yacka will show you no more.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Then I am afraid we shall not have much chance,’
-said Will. ‘It is a pity all this wealth should be
-wasted.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Others may find it, and take their share,’ said
-Yacka. ‘It is not good for one man to have too
-much.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[183]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘We can carry enough away with us,’ said Edgar,
-‘to give us a start in life, anyhow. Perhaps Yacka is
-right. It is not good for a man to have too much.
-Will you help us, Yacka?’</p>
-
-<p>‘To carry gold for you?’ said the black.</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes,’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘I will carry some, and stones for you, but I will
-not use any,’ Yacka said.</p>
-
-<p>‘You’re a strange being,’ said Edgar; ‘but the
-black man lives not as the white man.’</p>
-
-<p>‘No,’ said Yacka; ‘he does not slay his friend for
-gold.’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar dropped the subject. Whatever the cruel,
-cowardly conduct of the blacks might be, he knew
-enough about the pursuit of wealth to refrain from
-arguing with Yacka.</p>
-
-<p>‘The tribe will be waiting for us,’ said Yacka. ‘We
-must return.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Perhaps the earthquake has frightened them
-away,’ said Will.</p>
-
-<p>‘They would not feel it so much as we did, being
-underground,’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘It was no earthquake,’ said Yacka. ‘It was the
-White Spirit welcoming you.’</p>
-
-<p>‘A strange welcome,’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘Had it been an earthquake you would have been
-killed,’ said Yacka. ‘I have seen what an earthquake
-does. It swallows up mountains and trees,
-and heaves up other mountains in their place. All
-the plains of Australia were formed by earthquakes,<span class="pagenum">[184]</span>
-and the mountains were thrown up to make that part
-smooth.’</p>
-
-<p>‘How long will it take us to return to the tribe?’
-said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘Not long,’ replied Yacka. ‘We will go now. We
-can return for the gold.’</p>
-
-<p>‘We had better take some now,’ said practical Will.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar was nothing loath, and they filled what
-pockets they had left in their torn clothes with gold,
-rubies, and diamonds.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka watched them and said:</p>
-
-<p>‘I will return for more. You need not come again.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You mean you do not wish us to return,’ said
-Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘That is it,’ said Yacka. ‘I will return alone.’</p>
-
-<p>To this they agreed, acknowledging that Yacka
-had the right to do as he pleased, as it was undoubtedly
-his find. They were not long in getting
-out of this strange labyrinth of caves and passages,
-and Edgar wondered why they had not come in this
-way. Before they reached the exit Yacka said they
-must be blindfolded. To this at first they protested,
-but as Yacka was firm, and they were in his power,
-they consented.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka led Will by the hand, Edgar holding Will’s
-other hand. They tramped in this way for a considerable
-time, and then Yacka removed the covering
-from their eyes.</p>
-
-<p>They were on the grassy plain once more, but the
-whole scene had been changed by the wondrous<span class="pagenum">[185]</span>
-forces of Nature. Huge masses of rock were strewn
-about, and trees were felled and torn up by the roots.
-Where they had entered the mountains there was no
-other means of passing through. The blacks had
-retreated before the terrible storm, and were encamped
-a long way off. They could just see the
-camp fires in the distance. Several dead blacks lay
-around, evidently killed by falling rocks, but Yacka
-took very little notice of them. Death ended all for
-these men, and, being dead, Yacka thought no more
-of them.</p>
-
-<p>When Edgar looked round to see where they had
-come out of the caves, there was no opening anywhere.
-Yacka smiled as he said:</p>
-
-<p>‘You will never find the entrance. It is known
-only to me, and once I lost it and never found it
-again.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Then that is the reason we went in the other
-way,’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes,’ said Yacka. ‘Now I have the way out, I
-can find the way in again.’</p>
-
-<p>They marched towards the camp, and the Enooma
-rushed to meet them, uttering loud cries of delight.
-They had never expected to see them return alive
-after such a terrific earthquake. These blacks were
-strange people. Terrified as they had recently been,
-they had in a very few hours forgotten their experiences.
-The sudden changes in this climate had
-made them familiar with the working of the forces of
-Nature, which are truly marvellous.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[186]</span></p>
-
-<p>In the stillness of the night, as Edgar and Will sat
-side by side, they returned thanks for their merciful
-escape. It was an experience they would never
-forget, and now that it was over both felt untold
-gold would not tempt them to brave it again.</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XX">CHAPTER XX.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">THE RETURN TO YANDA.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Before they were awake next morning Yacka, true
-to his promise, went to the cave and returned with
-some of the finest rubies and purest lumps of gold.
-He roused Edgar and Will, and showed them what
-he had done.</p>
-
-<p>‘It is as much as we can carry,’ he said, and they
-agreed with him.</p>
-
-<p>The gold was heavy, and they had a long tramp
-before them.</p>
-
-<p>Without further delay they collected their treasure,
-and made it secure in a strong skin loin-cloth, which
-was fastened by dried strips of leather, so that none
-of the stones could fall out.</p>
-
-<p>‘This is like putting all our eggs in one basket,’
-said Edgar. ‘I think we had better carry the best
-of the rubies about us.’</p>
-
-<p>This was done, and the bag again fastened
-securely.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[187]</span></p>
-
-<p>The Enooma accompanied them, and left them
-about a couple of days’ journey from the ranges.</p>
-
-<p>At this point Edgar and Will bade them farewell,
-and Yacka promised to return and travel with them
-further north. The black had explained to them all
-that had taken place in the caves, and they did not
-care to remain longer in that district.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka led them safely through the <a id="Ref_187" href="#BRef_187">MacDonnell</a>
-Ranges, and they reached Alice Springs, where they
-had a hearty welcome.</p>
-
-<p>‘We never expected to see you alive again,’ said
-Walter Hepburn. ‘You have been away close upon
-six months, and we thought you were gone for good.
-I hope you are satisfied with your experiences.’</p>
-
-<p>‘We are,’ said Edgar. ‘We have seen many
-strange and wonderful sights.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You must tell me about your adventures to-night,’
-said Hepburn. ‘I have kept your horses safe, and
-they will be ready for the journey.’</p>
-
-<p>It was a relief to Edgar and Will to obtain fresh
-clothes, for those they wore were almost in rags.</p>
-
-<p>The night of their arrival they related to Walter
-Hepburn all that had befallen them, and he was
-amazed. He could hardly credit the account Edgar
-gave of the wealth found in the cave of Enooma; but
-when he saw the precious stones and gold spread out
-before him, he was completely overwhelmed.</p>
-
-<p>‘This is pure gold,’ he said, as he handled a large
-lump of the precious metal. ‘And these rubies are
-exceedingly rich in colour, and worth a heap of<span class="pagenum">[188]</span>
-money. We have found rubies in the creeks here,
-but nothing to be compared to these. Of course, you
-will return with a properly equipped expedition, and
-carry the bulk of it away?’</p>
-
-<p>‘I am afraid that will be out of the question,’ said
-Edgar. ‘Yacka will not guide us there again, and I
-am sure we could not find the place.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yacka must be forced to act as guide,’ said Hepburn.
-‘Such a treasure as you have discovered
-cannot be allowed to remain buried.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I shall not be the one to use force against Yacka,’
-said Edgar. ‘The black has acted honestly by us,
-and we must do the same by him.’</p>
-
-<p>‘If you fellows do not have another try to find the
-place I shall,’ said Hepburn.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar laughed as he said:</p>
-
-<p>‘You are welcome to do so. For my part I have
-had enough of it, and am glad to have got back
-again with a whole skin.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You must be careful not to let anyone know about
-here what you have with you. There are some
-desperate characters, and a mere hint as to the wealth
-you have, and your lives would not be safe,’ said
-Hepburn.</p>
-
-<p>‘We have told no one but yourself,’ said Edgar;
-‘and we know we can trust you. You are an old
-Redbank boy.’</p>
-
-<p>After some persuasion Walter Hepburn agreed to
-accept a couple of fine rubies and a heavy nugget in
-return for the keep of the horses, and as a remembrance<span class="pagenum">[189]</span>
-of their visit. As well as he was able
-Edgar described the country they had traversed
-and the appearance of the place where the caves
-were.</p>
-
-<p>‘Even if you reach there safely,’ said Edgar, ‘you
-will not be able to find the entrance. We could see
-nothing of it, and even Yacka lost the run of it once.’</p>
-
-<p>‘It is worth the risk,’ said Hepburn. ‘I wish I
-had gone with you. I am used to these wilds, and
-once I had been over the ground I am sure I could
-find my way back.’</p>
-
-<p>They did not remain long at Alice Springs, as they
-were eager to return to Yanda and learn how their
-friends had got on during their absence.</p>
-
-<p>The return journey passed in much the same way
-as their ride to Alice Springs from Yanda.</p>
-
-<p>They had a plentiful supply of ammunition, which
-Walter Hepburn had given them, and consequently
-were not afraid to shoot when in need of provisions.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar noticed Yacka was restless, and did not
-seem at his ease during their journey, and he questioned
-him as to the reason.</p>
-
-<p>‘I have a fear we are being followed,’ said Yacka.
-‘I have seen no one, but still I fear it. Did anyone
-know you had gold and stones at Alice Springs?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Only Walter Hepburn,’ said Edgar. ‘We were
-careful not to tell anyone else.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You showed him the stones?’ asked Yacka.</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes,’ said Edgar; ‘we spread them out on the
-table in his house, but no one else was there.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[190]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘But there are windows,’ said Yacka, ‘and someone
-may have looked in. It was foolish.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I think you are wrong about anyone following us,’
-said Will. ‘They would have attacked us before
-now.’</p>
-
-<p>Yacka explained that he had not slept at night
-since they left the Springs. He had watched and
-waited and heard strange sounds. He felt sure they
-were being followed, but at some distance.</p>
-
-<p>‘You must have a sleep to-night, anyhow,’ said
-Edgar, ‘or you will knock up. We can keep watch
-in turns.’</p>
-
-<p>Yacka assented, for he felt much in need of sleep.</p>
-
-<p>They camped on a level patch of ground, where
-there was not much surrounding shelter, and where
-they felt secure against any surprise.</p>
-
-<p>Worn out from want of sleep, Yacka stretched
-himself on the ground, and quickly fell into a deep
-slumber.</p>
-
-<p>‘He’s dead tired,’ said Edgar. ‘I have never seen
-him drop off into such a sound sleep. He generally
-has an eye open, and his ears catch every sound.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Are you going to take first watch?’ said Will.</p>
-
-<p>‘If you like,’ said Edgar. ‘I will rouse you when
-I become drowsy.’</p>
-
-<p>Will soon followed Yacka into the land of dreams,
-and Edgar, leaning his back against the trunk of a
-tree, watched them. The treasure was close to him,
-and the sight of it brought back to him the scenes
-they had witnessed. From these experiences his<span class="pagenum">[191]</span>
-thoughts wandered to Wal Jessop and Eva, and he
-wondered how they had gone on during his absence.
-He was anxious to see them again, and when he
-reached Yanda meant to take a trip to Sydney as
-early as possible.</p>
-
-<p>Then he thought of home, and his father and sister,
-and hoped to have letters from them at Yanda. They
-would be anxious to hear how his exploit had turned
-out, and what a glowing account he would give them!
-Lost in these pleasant reflections, he did not hear the
-stealthy tread of two men behind the tree.</p>
-
-<p>These men kept well in the shadow of the trunk of
-the tree against which Edgar sat, all unconscious of
-their approach. They were desperate-looking fellows,
-dressed in bush fashion, and had evidently ridden
-after Edgar and his companions from Alice Springs.
-Cautiously they approached, avoiding the loose twigs
-on the ground, and halting to listen intently at every
-few yards. Each man had a revolver in his hand,
-and a knife in his belt.</p>
-
-<p>The taller of the two motioned to the knife at his
-side, and pointed to Edgar. The other nodded, and
-drew out his formidable blade. He then crept, knife
-in hand, towards Edgar, and his companion made
-towards Will.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar, who began to feel drowsy, rose to his feet
-and leaned on his shoulder against the tree, his back
-still to the man stealing up, knife in hand. Edgar
-little knew the peril he was in, and dreaded nothing.</p>
-
-<p>Nearer and nearer drew the man with his murderous<span class="pagenum">[192]</span>
-weapon. He was now close to the tree, and had his
-knife uplifted ready to strike.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly a laughing jackass, perched in the
-branches above Edgar’s head, gave his mocking
-laugh. The sound startled him, and he turned round;
-as he did so he saw the man, and the knife he had
-in his uplifted hand flashed in the faint moonlight.</p>
-
-<p>He shouted, ‘Yacka! Yacka! Will! Will!’ and
-sprang backwards.</p>
-
-<p>The man rushed upon him just as Will opened his
-eyes in a half-drowsy way, and dimly realized that a
-man was pointing his revolver at him.</p>
-
-<p>‘Move, and I fire!’ said the man to Yacka, as he
-saw the black spring to his feet.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka dared not move; he knew it would be
-instant death to Will.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile Edgar grappled with his assailant, and
-a desperate struggle was going on.</p>
-
-<p>The man covering Will called out to his mate and
-Edgar:</p>
-
-<p>‘Drop struggling, or I fire!’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar glanced at him, and saw the danger Will
-was in.</p>
-
-<p>‘Hands off!’ he said, and the man ceased to
-struggle with him.</p>
-
-<p>Unfortunately, neither Edgar or Will had their
-revolvers handy, and their guns were against the
-trunk of the tree&mdash;the revolvers being luckily hidden
-from sight in the long rank grass.</p>
-
-<p>‘We want that bag,’ said the tall man, still covering<span class="pagenum">[193]</span>
-Will. ‘Let my mate get the bag and your guns, and
-then you can go.’</p>
-
-<p>In a moment it flashed across Edgar that if the
-men took the bag and the guns there would still be
-the revolvers, and that gave them a chance before the
-thieves reached their horses. He was not, however,
-too eager, and said:</p>
-
-<p>‘You are a cowardly pair to rob us like this.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You are three to one,’ said the man with a grin.
-‘Nothing very cowardly about that. Will you “ante
-up” the “boodle”?’</p>
-
-<p>‘How do we know you will not fire on us? We
-shall be unarmed,’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘We want the plunder, not your lives,’ said the
-man. ‘Come, be quick. We have no time to
-waste.’</p>
-
-<p>The man was evidently impatient, and Edgar
-thought: ‘Perhaps they are afraid of someone following
-them from the Springs.’ Aloud he said:</p>
-
-<p>‘We agree. Take the bag and our guns and go.’</p>
-
-<p>The man who had attacked Edgar picked up the
-bag and the two guns. It was an anxious moment
-for Edgar. The revolvers were lying near the tree,
-and the man might kick them as he went along.
-With a sigh of relief, Edgar saw the man had not discovered
-them. Yacka was on the alert, but saw no
-chance of making a move without injuring Will, and
-Edgar was in the same fix. The tall man ‘bailed’
-them up until his companion returned with their
-horses.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[194]</span></p>
-
-<p>Having fixed the bag firmly in front of the saddle
-the man mounted, placing the guns also in front of
-him. He then led the other horse up to the man
-covering Will, and levelled his revolver at him while
-his mate mounted.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka stood at the other side of the horses, and for
-a brief moment the man covering Will could not see
-him, and the taller man was mounting with his back
-to Yacka. In an instant Yacka bounded between the
-man with the revolver and Will, and jerked the
-horse’s bridle, which caused the animal to suddenly
-back. The man fired, but the movement of the horse
-spoilt his aim and the shot did no harm.</p>
-
-<p>Seeing how matters stood, Edgar ran for the
-revolvers, and reached them before the thieves could
-realize what had happened.</p>
-
-<p>A desperate fight now took place. The mounted
-men, whose horses plunged at the sound of firing,
-aimed at Will and Edgar, and the former felt a sharp
-pain in his left arm.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka still hung on to the horse’s bridle, and the
-man on it fired point-blank at him, the bullet
-grazing his head.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar approached this man, and when close to
-him fired. The shot told, and the man’s right arm
-fell to his side, his revolver dropping on to the
-ground.</p>
-
-<p>‘Winged!’ shouted Edgar. ‘Hold on, Yacka!’</p>
-
-<p>But Yacka had let go of the horse and pulled the
-man out of the saddle. The horse, finding itself free,<span class="pagenum">[195]</span>
-galloped off, with the bag still fast to the front of the
-saddle.</p>
-
-<p>The other man, seeing how matters were going,
-and knowing the loose horse had the bag still fast to
-the saddle, turned tail and galloped after it.</p>
-
-<p>‘The horses&mdash;the horses! Quick, Will!’ said
-Edgar. ‘We must be after them.’</p>
-
-<p>Will brought up the horses, and they were quickly
-in the saddle.</p>
-
-<p>‘You keep guard over this fellow, Yacka,’ said
-Edgar. ‘Don’t let him go.’</p>
-
-<p>For answer Yacka smiled savagely, and gripped
-the man by the throat so hard that his eyes started
-from his head.</p>
-
-<p>‘He’s in safe hands,’ said Edgar. ‘Come along,
-Will, or we shall lose our treasure after all.’</p>
-
-<p>They rode away after the other man and the runaway
-horse as fast as their nags could carry them.</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXI">CHAPTER XXI.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">AN EXCITING CHASE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>It proved an exciting chase they had commenced.
-The thief knew he need expect no mercy if caught,
-and rode desperately. He knew the country better
-than Edgar and Will, which gave him a decided
-advantage; moreover, he had a good horse, probably
-stolen, and knew how to ride.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[196]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘He is gaining on us,’ said Edgar. ‘I am afraid
-we shall lose him. There is no chance of hitting
-either man or horse from this distance.’</p>
-
-<p>Mile after mile was traversed, and still the chase
-went on. The riderless horse stuck close to his
-companion, but when he began to flag the man took
-hold of the bridle and urged him on. Edgar took
-no heed where they were going, nor did Will. They
-were too excited to take much notice of the country
-they passed through. At last the fugitive turned his
-horse to the left, and plunged into a much more
-difficult country to travel. The undergrowth became
-denser and tangled, and it was with difficulty the
-horses could be forced to go through it. It was not
-long before they lost sight of the man they were in
-pursuit of.</p>
-
-<p>‘Where can he have got to?’ said Will. ‘He
-would never hide here with two of us after him.’</p>
-
-<p>‘We must ride on,’ replied Edgar. ‘It is easy to
-miss a man and come across his track again in a very
-short time.’</p>
-
-<p>They rode on at a slow pace, and presently came
-to a narrow opening in the scrub. Here they
-halted and found recent tracks of horses, so they
-determined to follow in this direction. The tracks
-led them in a roundabout way, and presently they
-came to the conclusion the man had doubled
-back.</p>
-
-<p>‘He must be heading for our camp again,’ said
-Edgar. ‘Strange he should do this unless he fancies<span class="pagenum">[197]</span>
-we are put off the scent, and he is riding back to
-rescue his mate.’</p>
-
-<p>‘If that is his game,’ said Will, ‘we must follow
-him hard. He might shoot Yacka before we arrive.’</p>
-
-<p>It was, however, difficult for them to find their
-way. They were not experienced bushmen, and had
-failed to notice certain signs by which they would
-know they were on the right track. They saw no
-signs of the man, nor could they now observe in
-which direction the horses had gone. To ride on
-and trust to chance was their only hope. It was
-quite light now, and this aided them. As time
-passed they became anxious, and wondered what
-would become of Yacka if they did not arrive on the
-scene in time, for they had not the least doubt now
-that their man was heading for the camp to rescue
-his mate.</p>
-
-<p>‘This chase he has led us has been a blind,’ said
-Edgar. ‘If we had taken ordinary precautions we
-ought to have found out he was doubling back.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Only a bushman would have found that out,’ said
-Will. ‘I do not see how we can blame ourselves.’</p>
-
-<p>‘We have had enough experience the last few
-months to have found that out,’ said Edgar. ‘By
-Jove! there he is, I believe.’</p>
-
-<p>There was a horseman in front of them, but they
-could not see the second horse. They rode on faster
-now, but did not gain much ground. A rise in the
-land hid the man from view, and soon after he disappeared
-they heard a shot. This made them ride<span class="pagenum">[198]</span>
-all the faster, and they quickly reached the top of
-the rise, and had a good view of the plain beyond.</p>
-
-<p>‘He fired that shot to warn his mate,’ said Will.
-‘We cannot be far from the camp now.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I’ll fire,’ said Edgar; ‘and if Yacka hears the
-two shots he will probably divine we are in
-pursuit.’</p>
-
-<p>He fired a shot from his revolver as they rode on.</p>
-
-<p>‘There’s the place we camped at,’ said Edgar,
-pointing to two or three tall trees: ‘but I see nothing
-of Yacka or the other men.’</p>
-
-<p>They rode up to the place, and found the camp
-deserted. There was blood upon the ground and
-signs of a struggle, but they imagined this must
-have been caused by Yacka dragging the wounded
-man along. Edgar called out ‘Yacka!’ and gave
-a loud ‘cooee,’ and after waiting a few moments they
-heard a faint response. They rode in the direction
-of the sound, and, rounding a clump of trees on a
-mound, came upon a strange sight.</p>
-
-<p>Stretched on the ground was one of the robbers,
-the man they supposed they had left with Yacka.
-This man had been strangled, and was dead. Near
-him sat Yacka with a strange expression on his face.
-When the black saw them he gave a faint moan, and
-pressed his hand to his side.</p>
-
-<p>‘Good God! he’s shot!’ said Edgar, dismounting
-and running to the black. He found blood streaming
-from a deep wound in his side evidently inflicted
-with a knife. ‘How did this happen?’ asked Edgar,<span class="pagenum">[199]</span>
-as he endeavoured to stanch the flow of blood with
-a neckerchief he had rapidly pulled off.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka pointed to the dead man, and Will, who
-had come up, exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p>‘This is not the fellow we left with Yacka. It is
-the man we have been chasing all this time.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Where is the other man?’ asked Edgar, who could
-hardly believe his eyes.</p>
-
-<p>‘I killed him,’ said Yacka faintly.</p>
-
-<p>‘Where is he?’ asked Will.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka pointed to some bushes, and Will went
-across and found the body of the man they had left
-with Yacka. This man had also been strangled.</p>
-
-<p>They managed to stop the flow of blood from the
-deep wound in Yacka’s side, but it was some hours
-before he had sufficiently recovered strength to relate
-what had happened.</p>
-
-<p>When Yacka heard the shot fired, he at once
-thought the man’s mate had doubled back to rescue
-him, and had given Edgar and Will the slip. He
-knew how easily it could be done by an old hand,
-and his surmise was confirmed by the expression on
-the man’s face when he heard the shot. In a moment
-Yacka had made up his mind how to act. He had
-no gun, for he found that all three had been taken,
-instead of only those belonging to Edgar and Will.
-He seized his prisoner by the throat, and strangled
-him. Then he propped the dead man up with his
-back to a tree, and tied him to it with one of the
-tethering ropes. He hid himself behind the tree and<span class="pagenum">[200]</span>
-waited, and in a short time the other robber came
-on to the scene. When this man saw his mate bound
-to the tree, he dismounted and came towards him,
-evidently thinking Yacka had made him fast, that he
-had fallen asleep, and Yacka had gone away.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka awaited his coming, crouching down behind
-the tree. No sooner did the man see his mate was
-dead than he realized that a trap had been set for
-him, and ran back to the horses. Yacka was quickly
-after him, and before the man could reach the horses
-had caught him up. Finding Yacka at such close
-quarters, the man drew his knife instead of his revolver,
-no doubt thinking it would be more effective.
-A desperate struggle ensued, which Yacka described
-graphically.</p>
-
-<p>‘We rolled over and over,’ said Yacka. ‘I had no
-knife, and he was a powerful man. I caught him by
-the throat, and he lost the grip of his knife. I clung
-to him with both hands, and he managed to get his
-knife and stuck it in my side. I did not let go my
-hold. I became fainter and fainter, but clung to his
-throat. Then I fell across him, and when I came to
-my senses again, which could not have been long, he
-was dead. It was their lives or mine, and they were
-not fit to live.’</p>
-
-<p>As they listened to Yacka’s story of this terrible
-struggle and awful end of the thieves, they wondered
-if many men would have had the courage to act as
-he had done.</p>
-
-<p>‘The horses will not have gone far,’ said Yacka.<span class="pagenum">[201]</span>
-‘They were dead tired, I could see, when the man
-dismounted.’</p>
-
-<p>While Will attended to Yacka, Edgar went in
-search of the two stray horses, and found them about
-a couple of miles away, quietly cropping the scanty
-herbage. He secured them without trouble, and was
-glad to see their precious treasure was safe, and also
-their guns.</p>
-
-<p>They had to remain in this spot for a week before
-Yacka was fit to be removed, and during that time
-they buried the bodies of the robbers as well as they
-were able with the primitive means at hand.</p>
-
-<p>Their progress was slow, because Yacka could not
-ride far, and had to be helped off one of the horses at
-different times to rest. It was lucky for them they
-had the two captured horses in addition to their own.
-Yacka guided them, and seemed to take a delight in
-hiding from them how far they were from Yanda.</p>
-
-<p>‘Surely we must be somewhere near Yanda by this
-time,’ said Edgar. ‘I almost fancy I can recognise
-the country.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You ought to,’ said Yacka, ‘for we are on Yanda
-Station now, and we shall reach the homestead to-night.’</p>
-
-<p>They could not suppress their feelings, and gave a
-loud hurrah.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka had spoken correctly, for towards sundown
-the familiar homestead came in sight.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka wished them to gallop on and leave him,
-but this they declined to do, saying he had done so<span class="pagenum">[202]</span>
-much for them, it was only making a small return to
-remain with him.</p>
-
-<p>As they neared the homestead they noticed several
-figures moving about, evidently in an excited way, on
-the veranda.</p>
-
-<p>‘There’s Ben Brody!’ said Edgar eagerly. ‘He
-has recognised us. What a time we shall have to-night!’</p>
-
-<p>Ben Brody was standing leaning against the door-post
-when he saw something moving across the plain
-in front of him. He went inside for his glasses, and,
-after looking through them for several minutes, he
-gave a loud shout.</p>
-
-<p>It was such an unusual thing for Ben Brody to
-shout, except when issuing orders, or expressing his
-feelings to some unfortunate new-chum, that the
-hands about the place fancied the homestead must
-have caught fire. Several of them rushed round to
-the front, and found Ben Brody executing a kind of
-war-dance on the veranda.</p>
-
-<p>‘What’s up now?’ asked Will Henton. ‘Something
-stinging you?’</p>
-
-<p>‘No, you fool,’ roared Brody. ‘Do you think I’m
-as tender as you? It’s them lads coming back!’</p>
-
-<p>‘Not Foster and Brown?’ asked Will.</p>
-
-<p>‘That’s just it, you bet,’ said Brody.</p>
-
-<p>Off ran Will Henton, and in a few moments
-Harry Noke, Jim Lee, and two or three more came
-round.</p>
-
-<p>‘Give me the glasses,’ said Noke.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[203]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘No need for that,’ said Jim Lee. ‘I can spot ’em
-from here.’</p>
-
-<p>‘We must go and meet them,’ said Will Henton.</p>
-
-<p>‘Right you are,’ said Brody. ‘Boys, we’ll have a
-terrible night of it.’</p>
-
-<p>They mounted their horses, and in less time than it
-takes to write it down were galloping towards the
-home-comers.</p>
-
-<p>The scene was one to be remembered. They
-sprang from their horses, and pulled Edgar and Will
-out of their saddles, and shook them by the hands,
-cheered and hallooed until the plain rang with their
-hearty shouts. Yacka stood quietly looking on, and
-when they had almost wrung Edgar’s and Will’s
-hands off they tackled him.</p>
-
-<p>‘Don’t handle Yacka as roughly as you have
-handled us,’ laughed Edgar; ‘he’s got a bad wound.’</p>
-
-<p>Then came a string of questions as to how Yacka
-received his wound, and who had given it him. Such
-a rain of questions was showered at them that at last
-Ben Brody said:</p>
-
-<p>‘Give them breathing-time, lads. We shall hear
-all about their adventures later on. We’re right glad
-to see you back again safe and sound.’</p>
-
-<p>A general chorus of assent followed this remark.</p>
-
-<p>‘Expect you have not come back loaded with
-wealth?’ said Will Henton.</p>
-
-<p>‘Wait and see,’ said Edgar. ‘I rather fancy we
-have a surprise in store for you.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Have you had a good time?’ said Ben Brody.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[204]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘It has been a wonderful time, and we have seen
-many strange things, and gone through a good deal
-of hard work. I’m heartily glad to see Yanda again,
-but I would not have missed our experiences for the
-world.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Same here,’ said Will Brown, ‘but I never wish
-to go through such a time again.’</p>
-
-<p>Yacka rode quietly behind, a lonely black figure,
-the pain in his face showing how he still suffered. He
-was glad to see this hearty welcome, but it made him
-feel lonely. He had no friends such as these men at
-Yanda were. He was a wanderer, an outcast, a black,
-a despised native of the country these white men had
-taken from his people. But Yacka was, through all
-this, white enough at heart to know it was all for the
-best. His people could never become like these
-people, and the country in the hands of blacks, he
-knew, would still have been wild and desolate.</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXII">CHAPTER XXII.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">TIME FLIES.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>The hands at Yanda marvelled greatly at the tale
-Edgar told of their adventures, and they marvelled
-still more when the treasure they brought with them
-was shown.</p>
-
-<p>‘And to think that black fellow knew all about it,
-and kept the secret so long,’ said Ben Brody. ‘I can<span class="pagenum">[205]</span>
-hardly believe it is true. You must have travelled
-thousands of miles. All I can say is you deserve
-what you have got.’</p>
-
-<p>After staying a few weeks at Yanda, where he received
-letters from home, and from Wal Jessop, Edgar
-decided to go to Sydney and see Eva again. Will
-Brown remained at Yanda, in order to gain more
-experience of station life.</p>
-
-<p>When Edgar arrived in Sydney, he at once went to
-Watson’s Bay. Wal Jessop did not know Edgar had
-left Yanda. Eva had constantly inquired for Edgar
-during his absence, and been comforted by the assurance
-he would return to her.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar walked up the steep path to the cottage,
-intending to give the inmates a surprise, but Eva,
-who was looking out of the window, recognised him,
-and gave a joyful cry that brought Mrs. Jessop to
-her. Together they rushed out to greet Edgar, and
-he soon had little Eva crowing delightedly in his
-arms, Mrs. Jessop looking on, her motherly face
-beaming with satisfaction.</p>
-
-<p>‘How you have grown, Eva!’ said Edgar, holding
-her up in his arms to have a better look at her. ‘You
-have had a good home, and Mrs. Jessop has taken
-great care of you.’</p>
-
-<p>Eva began to prattle in her pretty childish way,
-and asked Edgar numerous questions, some of which
-he found a difficulty in answering.</p>
-
-<p>When Wal Jessop returned home and found Edgar
-installed in the cottage he was delighted. He had<span class="pagenum">[206]</span>
-been longing to see him again, and to hear all about
-his adventures. These Edgar had to relate over and
-over again, and little Eva, too, was interested in
-hearing about Yacka and the blacks, and the White
-Spirit in the wonderful cave. When she saw the
-precious stones and gold Edgar brought with him, she
-clapped her hands with joy, and wanted to play with
-all the pretty things.</p>
-
-<p>‘You’ll not be short of money for a time with such
-rubies as these to sell,’ said Wal Jessop, as he took
-some of the stones in his hand. ‘They are the finest
-I ever saw. You’ll get more for them in London than
-you will here.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I shall keep the bulk of them,’ said Edgar; ‘but
-we must dispose of some of them, Wal, in order to
-keep things going.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Captain Fife will be able to do that for you,’ said
-Wal. ‘He knows the best market for such things.
-What a wonderful chap that black must be! There
-are not many like him here.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You will see him before long,’ said Edgar. ‘He
-has promised to come to Sydney when his wound
-has quite healed.’</p>
-
-<p>‘A knife-thrust like that will take some time to
-get well,’ said Wal. ‘I wonder if he will ever take
-you back again to find more of the treasure?’</p>
-
-<p>‘I shall not go,’ said Edgar; ‘but I have no
-doubt there will be search made for it, even if Yacka
-declines to lead the way.’</p>
-
-<p>The evening of Edgar’s arrival at the cottage he<span class="pagenum">[207]</span>
-had a walk on the cliffs with Wal Jessop, and again
-looked down upon the terrible rocks where the
-<em>Distant Shore</em> was dashed to pieces, and himself and
-Eva were so miraculously saved. As he looked into
-the depths below, the scene came vividly to mind
-again, and he could not resist grasping Wal Jessop
-by the hand, while the tears stood in his eyes.</p>
-
-<p>Wal Jessop knew what he meant better than if he
-had spoken, and returned the pressure of his hand.
-They walked back to the cottage, and once more
-talked over the scenes of that awful night.</p>
-
-<p>When Edgar saw Captain Fife that gentleman
-received him cordially, and promised to dispose of
-some of the rubies to the best advantage.</p>
-
-<p>‘They are wonderfully good stones,’ said Captain
-Fife, ‘and there will be no difficulty in obtaining a
-stiff price for them. By the way, what are you
-going to do with yourself now? Are you returning
-to the station, or would you prefer to remain in
-Sydney?’</p>
-
-<p>‘If I can obtain a suitable billet,’ said Edgar, ‘I
-should like to remain here.’</p>
-
-<p>Captain Fife had been on the look-out for a private
-secretary for some time, and he offered Edgar the
-post, which he willingly accepted, thinking himself
-fortunate, as indeed he was, to gain such a position.</p>
-
-<p>Time flies quickly, and when Edgar Foster had
-been private secretary to Captain Fife for over two
-years, he had become quite at home in Sydney, and
-was recognised as one of the best of good fellows.<span class="pagenum">[208]</span>
-Edgar was fond of sports of all kinds, and he liked
-fun as well as any young fellow of his age, but he
-shunned the fast sets in the city, and one of his
-constant companions was Wal Jessop. Two or three
-times a week he went to Wal’s cottage to see Eva,
-who was rapidly growing into a very pretty girl. He
-heard regularly from home, and also had news from
-Yanda&mdash;for Will Brown was still there. Yacka had
-tried Sydney life, but quickly tired of it, and returned
-to the West.</p>
-
-<p>Two or three expeditions had been fitted out to
-try and find the Cave of Enooma, as it was called, for
-the adventures of Edgar Foster and Will Brown had
-been related in the <cite>Sydney Mail</cite>, and naturally there
-was a desire to obtain the wealth stated to be there.
-These expeditions had, however, been failures, and
-nothing came of them. Yacka refused to lead anyone
-into the Enooma country, and Edgar and Will,
-when approached upon the subject, expressed their
-inability to do so. When the second expedition
-failed in its object, people said the discovery was a
-myth, but others knew better, and Edgar only smiled
-when he heard disparaging remarks made.</p>
-
-<p>Although Edgar stuck well to his work during the
-time he had been with Captain Fife, he found ample
-opportunity to indulge in his favourite pastime,
-cricket, and, much to his delight, had been selected
-captain of the South Sydney team. In this capacity
-he not only proved himself a good all-round cricketer,
-but a splendid leader, and no one, it was generally<span class="pagenum">[209]</span>
-acknowledged, placed his men to more advantage in
-the field. He was selected to play for New South
-Wales against Victoria, but, like many a good
-cricketer before him, he failed at his first attempt.
-There was, however, no doubt about his ability, and
-he now stood an excellent chance of being selected
-as one of the next Australian eleven. This is the
-height of every cricketer’s ambition in the colonies,
-and Edgar felt anxious as to whether his performances
-during the season would warrant the selection
-committee including him in the team. So far he had
-done fairly well. There remained one inter-Colonial
-match to play against South Australia, and Edgar
-knew upon this match would depend the final decision
-as to his being a member of the Australian
-eleven.</p>
-
-<p>He had practised steadily, and felt confident, and
-was encouraged by Wal Jessop and Captain Fife.
-Will Brown wrote from Yanda, saying they were
-coming down in force to see him play, and Ben
-Brody added a postscript to the effect that the honour
-of the Yanda boys was in Edgar’s hands.</p>
-
-<p>When the eventful day arrived Edgar’s feelings
-can be imagined. The match took place on the
-Association ground at Sydney, and the South Australians
-placed a formidable team on the field.
-Several men on either side were on their best mettle
-and playing for a place in the Australian eleven.</p>
-
-<p>Ben Brody appeared on the ground resplendent in
-a new cabbage-tree hat, which he had bought in<span class="pagenum">[210]</span>
-honour of the occasion. He was as anxious as anyone
-to see Edgar successful. Will Brown vowed if
-Edgar Foster went home with the team, he should go
-by the same boat. Will Henton, Harry Noke, and
-Jim Lee all came up from Yanda for the match, and
-consequently there was a family party on the ground.
-In Wal Jessop Ben Brody found a man after his own
-heart, and they got on well together.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar felt encouraged by their presence to do his
-best, and something seemed to tell him he would
-succeed.</p>
-
-<p>The New South Wales captain won the toss and
-elected to bat. This gave Edgar a chance to sit and
-chat with his friends. He hardly knew how popular
-he had become in Sydney, owing to his numerous
-adventures and his sterling character, until he saw
-the number of people who were only too proud to
-recognise him.</p>
-
-<p>‘You must be a favourite with the ladies,’ said
-Ben Brody. ‘All the pretty girls are smiling at you.
-Lucky dog!’</p>
-
-<p>It was true Edgar knew several nice girls, but he
-had not yet found one he preferred to any of the
-others. He thought there was time enough for that
-in another five or six years.</p>
-
-<p>The home team commenced badly, and lost two
-wickets for thirty runs. At the fall of the fourth
-wicket Edgar Foster went in, and his appearance on
-the ground, from the pavilion, was the signal for a
-loud outburst of applause. As he walked to the<span class="pagenum">[211]</span>
-crease Edgar vowed he would do his utmost to merit
-this reception. He was cool and collected, and had
-seldom felt so confident. He commenced well by
-making a couple of boundary hits in his first over.
-His partner, Frank Highdale, was well set, and the
-pair looked like making a big stand.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar roused the spectators by hitting a ball into
-the pavilion, and Highdale had completely mastered
-the bowling. Runs came rapidly, and the South
-Australian captain seemed puzzled to know how to
-effect a separation.</p>
-
-<p>Although Highdale had been batting some time
-before Edgar came in, the latter was first to reach
-the coveted fifty. When this number of runs appeared
-to Edgar’s name on the scoring-board, Ben
-Brody, to use his own expression, ‘broke loose.’ He
-cheered in the most frantic manner, and waved his
-huge hat in delight.</p>
-
-<p>The New South Wales eleven were at the wickets
-all day, and when stumps were drawn Edgar Foster
-was ‘not out, one hundred and nine’! He was congratulated
-on all sides, and Captain Fife said, as he
-shook hands with him:</p>
-
-<p>‘Your place in the team is assured. I shall cable
-to your father as soon as the selection is made. He
-will be mighty proud of his son.’</p>
-
-<p>On the renewal of the match next day, Edgar
-added another fifty to his score, and was clean
-bowled, after making one hundred and fifty-nine, a
-magnificent innings.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[212]</span></p>
-
-<p>The match ended in a win for the home colony by
-two hundred runs. In the second innings Edgar
-Foster placed fifty-six to his credit; he also bowled
-well during the match, and came out with a very
-good average.</p>
-
-<p>Consequently, it was no surprise when he found
-his name amongst the favoured thirteen cricketers
-picked to make up the Australian team. He received
-a cablegram from his father congratulating
-him, and this gave him more pleasure than anything
-else.</p>
-
-<p>As usual, there was some grumbling about the
-composition of the team, but no one had anything to
-say about Edgar Foster’s inclusion.</p>
-
-<p>‘We are to go home in the <em>Cuzco</em>,’ said Edgar
-to Will Brown; ‘so you had better book your
-passage.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You bet!’ said Will; ‘and who do you think is
-going home for a trip with us?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Don’t know,’ said Edgar. ‘I wish we could take
-Yacka. He would create a sensation there.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yacka is far happier camping out at Yanda,’ said
-Will. ‘Ben Brody is going home with us. He says
-he has never had a holiday since he was a lad, over
-forty years ago, and he thinks it is about time he
-took one now.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I am glad,’ said Edgar. ‘Ben Brody is a real
-good sort; he’s a rough diamond, but I like him
-better than if he were polished.’</p>
-
-<p>The hands on Yanda were in high glee about<span class="pagenum">[213]</span>
-Ben leaving them for a time. They fancied the
-mutton diet would be knocked off, but Ben said he
-should leave strict injunctions behind about that.</p>
-
-<p>The time passed quickly, and the morning the
-<em>Cuzco</em> was to leave Circular Quay a large crowd of
-people assembled to see the New South Wales
-members of the team leave for London. There
-was so much hand-shaking, and so many parting
-good-byes, that Edgar felt sure some of them would
-be left behind.</p>
-
-<p>Wal Jessop and his wife brought Eva down to see
-Edgar off, and the child did not like to see him leave
-her in the big steamer.</p>
-
-<p>‘I will come back for you, Eva,’ said Edgar; ‘I
-promise you I will come back. Be a good girl while
-I am away, and I will bring you back the best doll I
-can find in London.’</p>
-
-<p>‘With brown hair, and blue eyes?’ said Eva.</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes,’ said Edgar. ‘It shall have bonny blue
-eyes, and bright brown hair like yours, Eva.’</p>
-
-<p>He took her in his arms, and kissed her over and
-over again, and then handed her to Mrs. Jessop.
-Just as the gangway was about to be raised they
-saw a tall figure flying up it with long strides. It
-was Ben Brody.</p>
-
-<p>‘You nearly missed us,’ said Edgar, laughing.
-‘Where have you been? I thought I saw you on
-board some time back.’</p>
-
-<p>‘So I was,’ said Ben, gasping for breath; ‘but I
-left my ‘bacca behind in a box at the hotel, and I’d<span class="pagenum">[214]</span>
-sooner have gone back to Yanda than been on board
-without my usual brand.’</p>
-
-<p>The <em>Cuzco</em> had now cast off, and as she left the
-wharf Edgar singled out Eva, hoisted high on Wal
-Jessop’s shoulder, and waved her a hearty farewell.</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXIII">CHAPTER XXIII.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">AN EVENTFUL NIGHT.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>An Australian team bound for England always has
-a good time on board the steamer, and the eleven
-of which Edgar was a member was no exception to
-the rule. At Melbourne and Adelaide they were
-joined by the members of the team hailing from
-Victoria and South Australia.</p>
-
-<p>On arriving at Colombo they went ashore to play
-a match against a team selected from the leading
-local cricketers. Being out of practice they did not
-play up to their usual form, and the Colombo team
-nearly defeated them, and were much elated in consequence.</p>
-
-<p>At this time the mail steamers did not pass
-through the Suez Canal at night-time, and the <em>Cuzco</em>
-anchored off Ismailia. A run ashore to pass away
-the time was only natural, and Edgar, accompanied
-by Will Brown and other members of the team,
-made up a party. This night ashore at Ismailia<span class="pagenum">[215]</span>
-was destined to effect a change in Edgar’s future
-life.</p>
-
-<p>The population of Ismailia is a mixture of different
-nationalities, some of them being of a rather desperate
-and fierce nature. An Egyptian wedding-party
-passed through one of the streets; it was a curious
-sight to unaccustomed eyes. The men, swathed in
-long white garments, with turbans on their heads,
-and sandals on their feet, carried long poles, at the
-ends of which lanterns were fixed. Their brown
-arms and faces shone in the reflected light, and
-offered a strong contrast to the colour of their
-garments. Fierce eyes gleamed from under dark,
-bushy eyebrows, and as the men marched, uttering
-a wild chant in peculiar tones, the effect was somewhat
-weird. The bridegroom, who was being escorted
-to his bride, was a tall, powerful young fellow, of a
-better caste than his friends.</p>
-
-<p>All went well until the procession approached the
-bride’s house, when a party of young fellows from
-the <em>Cuzco</em>, who had been revelling not wisely but too
-well, barred the road. It was a foolhardy thing to
-do. To stop such a procession was exceedingly
-dangerous, and could only be construed as an insult
-by the natives, who are not slow to avenge any slight
-put upon them.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar and those with him saw the danger, and
-shouted to the obstructionists to move out of the
-way. It was, however, too late, and the warning
-would probably not have been heeded in any case.<span class="pagenum">[216]</span>
-Seeing how matters stood, the Egyptians grew
-furious. Knives flashed in the light, and a rush was
-made at the foolish young fellows, who so recklessly
-hindered the procession.</p>
-
-<p>‘Come on,’ shouted Edgar, ‘or there will be
-murder done!’</p>
-
-<p>He rushed forward, followed by his companions,
-but they found it impossible to render much assistance,
-owing to the confusion. Edgar became separated
-from the others, and was drawing back from the
-crowd, when he heard a cry for help, followed by a
-woman’s shriek.</p>
-
-<p>Rushing in the direction of the sound, he saw a
-girl of about eighteen struggling in the grasp of a
-powerful Egyptian. He recognised her as Miss
-Muriel Wylde, a passenger on the <em>Cuzco</em>, with whom
-he had had pleasant chats on deck. In a moment
-Edgar had the ruffian by the throat, and forced him
-to loose his hold. No sooner, however, was the girl
-free, than another man seized her and attempted to
-carry her off. She struggled violently, and shouted
-again for help. Edgar had his work cut out with
-the man he first tackled. He was unarmed, and
-had to rely upon his fists. The furious Egyptian
-rushed upon him with an uplifted knife in his hand.
-Edgar did not flinch, but caught the fellow by the
-wrist, and the knife flew from his grasp. Then,
-with his left fist, he dealt the man a savage blow
-between the eyes that well-nigh stunned him.</p>
-
-<p>Turning to see what had become of Miss Wylde,<span class="pagenum">[217]</span>
-Edgar saw that she had fainted, and her captor was
-hurrying away with her. Edgar gave chase, and
-quickly came up with him. The Egyptian dropped
-his burden, and turned on Edgar, aiming a terrific
-blow at him with his knife. Edgar sprang backwards,
-and the man over-reached himself. Before
-he recovered, Edgar had him on the ground, and
-stunned him by knocking his head on the hard
-road.</p>
-
-<p>He then sprang to his feet, and went to the
-assistance of Miss Wylde, who had luckily been
-thrown on the soft sand by the side of the road, and
-found she had recovered from her faint.</p>
-
-<p>‘Can you walk?’ said Edgar; ‘are you much
-hurt?’</p>
-
-<p>She was trembling and alarmed, and could hardly
-answer him.</p>
-
-<p>‘We must make our way to the quay,’ he said,
-‘and get a boat back to the ship as quickly as
-possible. These fellows are frantic at being interfered
-with, and are in a dangerous state. Lean on
-me, and try and walk.’</p>
-
-<p>She put her hand on his shoulder, and Edgar
-supported her by placing his arm round her waist.</p>
-
-<p>They had not gone many yards before Edgar
-heard loud shouting behind them. It was evident
-some of the Egyptians were coming that way, and
-they must be avoided if possible. A few paces
-straight ahead Edgar saw a high wall, and what
-looked like a doorway. He lifted his companion off<span class="pagenum">[218]</span>
-her feet, and ran as fast as he could towards the
-archway.</p>
-
-<p>On reaching it he knocked loudly. The door was
-opened by an old native woman, who peered curiously
-into his face.</p>
-
-<p>Without saying a word Edgar stepped inside, and
-closed the door behind him.</p>
-
-<p>‘What do you here?’ asked the old woman, in
-broken English. ‘Are you from the ship?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes,’ said Edgar, not knowing what else to say,
-or what excuse to give for his conduct.</p>
-
-<p>The old woman’s eyes gleamed, and her wrinkled,
-parchment-like skin seemed to crumple up and
-almost crack. Her mouth expanded in what she
-no doubt meant for a smile, but Edgar thought it a
-diabolical grin, and Muriel Wylde shrank back.</p>
-
-<p>‘Money&mdash;gold!’ said the woman hoarsely, her
-skinny hands extended like a couple of claws. ‘Gold,
-and you shall hear your fortune. The oldest Egyptian
-in Ismailia can speak truth.’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar felt relieved; had the old woman guessed
-they were fugitives she might not have been so
-friendly. He looked at his companion, and said:</p>
-
-<p>‘We shall be glad to hear our fortunes from you,
-mother. That is what we came for,’ and he took a
-sovereign out of his pocket.</p>
-
-<p>The old Egyptian’s eyes fastened upon it, and her
-hand was stretched out.</p>
-
-<p>‘Give me your hand,’ she said to Miss Wylde.</p>
-
-<p>The girl put out her open hand reluctantly, and<span class="pagenum">[219]</span>
-the Egyptian gazed at it so attentively that she
-appeared to have forgotten the coin.</p>
-
-<p>‘You have been in trouble, and he has saved you,’
-croaked the woman.</p>
-
-<p>The girl started, and the Egyptian smiled at this
-corroborative evidence. She had hazarded a guess
-at the situation, and hit the mark.</p>
-
-<p>She then proceeded to give an account of what
-would follow this adventure, and caused Muriel
-Wylde to blush, and wish she was safely on board
-again.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar’s future was soon told, in the usual strain.
-He was the hero of the story, and would be rewarded
-in due time by the hand of the lady he had
-rescued.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar gave the fortune-teller the sovereign, and
-asked her to direct them to the quay. She cautiously
-opened the door, and peered out into the darkness,
-listening attentively. She beckoned them to step
-out, and then pointed in the direction in which they
-should go.</p>
-
-<p>They walked for some distance, and then reached
-the part of the town where the cafés were still open,
-and men and women were drinking coffee, seated
-round tables under the verandas and trees.</p>
-
-<p>They sat down at one of the tables and rested,
-refreshing themselves with some excellent coffee.</p>
-
-<p>‘We must hurry back to the ship,’ said Edgar.
-‘Your party may have returned, and if so your
-mother will be very anxious.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[220]</span></p>
-
-<p>She was eager to go, and they rose from the table.
-As they walked away a tall Egyptian followed them.
-It was one of the men Edgar had knocked down.
-They were not out of danger yet.</p>
-
-<p>A long avenue led down to the quay, where the
-boats were generally waiting to sail or row passengers
-back to the ship.</p>
-
-<p>The Egyptian followed them, keeping within the
-shadow of the trees, his bare feet making no sound.</p>
-
-<p>Muriel Wylde was still weak from the effect of the
-shock she had received, and Edgar had to support
-her. He seemed nothing loath to do so, and his
-companion felt a sense of pleasurable security with
-his strong arm round her waist.</p>
-
-<p>On reaching the quay Edgar called out to a boatman,
-who came slowly towards them in his tiny craft.</p>
-
-<p>He explained that he wanted to be taken to the
-<em>Cuzco</em>, and the boatman agreed.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar handed his companion down into the boat,
-and as she stepped on to the seat she looked up and
-gave a cry of alarm. Behind Edgar stood the tall
-Egyptian, who had crept stealthily up, and was about
-to stab Edgar in the back. At her cry Edgar looked
-round, and, seeing no other way of escape, he sprang
-into the water. The Egyptian sprang after him, and
-grasped Edgar by the arm. A terrible struggle
-then took place, and in the water the Egyptian
-proved the more powerful.</p>
-
-<p>The man in the boat made no movement until
-Muriel Wylde seized a round pole, and tried to hit<span class="pagenum">[221]</span>
-Edgar’s assailant on the head. The boatman then
-took the part of his countryman, and attempted to
-seize the pole and wrench it out of Muriel’s hands.
-The girl, however, was now thoroughly roused.
-Edgar had rescued her, and she must do the same
-for him, for he was in deadly peril. The Egyptian
-dragged Edgar down and got his head under the
-water, with the evident intention of drowning him.</p>
-
-<p>A struggle commenced in the boat, but by a lucky
-stroke Muriel managed to hit the boatman in the
-chest, and he fell overboard. The Egyptian was not
-far from the boat, and Muriel, raising the pole,
-brought it down heavily on his head, causing him to
-loose his hold of Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>Half suffocated, Edgar came to the surface, and
-struck out feebly for the boat.</p>
-
-<p>Muriel leaned over the side and grasped him by
-the arm. Pulling with all her strength, she managed
-to give him sufficient assistance to help him to
-scramble into the boat.</p>
-
-<p>The two Egyptians in the water were on either
-side of the boat, and were trying to upset it, and
-Muriel kept them from clambering in by hitting at
-them with the pole.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar was well-nigh exhausted, but he managed
-to set the sail, and, as the breeze was blowing from
-the shore, the boat soon made headway and left the
-Egyptians behind. Finding pursuit hopeless, they
-swam ashore, and stood there gesticulating furiously.</p>
-
-<p>Muriel, turning round to look at Edgar, saw he<span class="pagenum">[222]</span>
-was unconscious. She was accustomed to sailing-boats,
-and, having placed her jacket under Edgar’s
-head, she steered with one hand and guided the sail
-with the other. The boat sped along in the direction
-of the <em>Cuzco</em>, whose lights were seen shining in
-the distance.</p>
-
-<p>Muriel Wylde sat watching Edgar, and when she
-thought over their night’s adventures, she was thankful
-they had escaped with life. Edgar was a handsome
-young fellow, and Muriel Wylde felt her heart beat
-fast as she looked at him. They had been good
-friends on board during the voyage, and Edgar’s
-mates had chaffed him about ‘pretty Miss Wylde.’
-Her mother had noticed her daughter’s partiality for
-Edgar’s society, and did not discourage it, as she had
-taken a fancy to the young fellow.</p>
-
-<p>Before they reached the steamer, Muriel Wylde
-left the stern of the boat for a moment to attend to
-Edgar. As she bent over him, he opened his eyes
-and looked into her face, which was very near to his
-own. Their eyes met, and they suddenly felt that
-something had been revealed to each of them.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar took Muriel Wylde’s hands, and drew her
-towards him. She did not resist, and when he kissed
-her she was not surprised or startled. It seemed a
-fitting climax to the dangers they had passed
-through.</p>
-
-<p>So lost were they in each other, although neither
-spoke, they did not notice they were close to the
-<em>Cuzco</em>. A loud ‘Ahoy!’ from the deck roused them,<span class="pagenum">[223]</span>
-and in a few minutes they were alongside the steamer,
-and friendly hands were assisting them up the gangway.</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXIV">CHAPTER XXIV.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">HOME AGAIN.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Their adventures at Ismailia formed the subject of
-conversation for several days between Edgar and
-Muriel Wylde. With her mother’s consent, Muriel
-accepted Edgar’s offer of marriage, and when the
-engagement became known on board they were regarded
-with romantic interest by the passengers.
-The remainder of the voyage proved uneventful.
-Muriel Wylde and her mother left the steamer at
-Naples, and proceeded overland to London, but
-Edgar remained on board with the team.</p>
-
-<p>On arriving at Tilbury, the eleven received a hearty
-welcome from a large number of influential cricketers
-and lovers of the game. To Edgar, all this was as
-nothing to the joy he felt at meeting his father and
-Doris again.</p>
-
-<p>Elm Lodge looked much the same as when he
-went away, and the old home was so peaceful that
-Edgar began to wonder how he had ever made up
-his mind to leave it. He had much to relate to his
-father and sister, and, needless to say, Will Brown
-entertained Doris in a manner agreeable to that
-young lady.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[224]</span></p>
-
-<p>The wreck of the <em>Distant Shore</em> was described
-again, and Robert Foster noticed with pride how
-modestly Edgar spoke of the part he took in saving
-Eva.</p>
-
-<p>‘Poor Manton!’ said Robert Foster. ‘I am sorry
-he was drowned, for a better seaman could not be
-found. I should like to meet Wal Jessop, and we
-must try and have little Eva over here, for we cannot
-spare you again, Edgar, now we have got you at
-home.’</p>
-
-<p>‘It would be splendid if Wal could be induced to
-bring Eva and his wife home,’ said Edgar. ‘I must
-write and ask him. You have to meet Ben Brody,
-who came over with us, and I am sure you will be
-amused at him. He is a character, and a rough-and-ready
-customer, but a genuine good fellow.’</p>
-
-<p>When Edgar spoke of his engagement to Muriel
-Wylde, his father was pleased he had found a girl
-after his own heart, for his son’s happiness always
-held a foremost place with him.</p>
-
-<p>‘And what about the Australian eleven?’ said
-Robert Foster. ‘Are they a strong team? It is
-rather too bad of you to play against the old country.
-It places me in an awkward position. Of course,
-I am patriotic enough to wish to see England victorious,
-and yet I shall be highly delighted to see
-you pile up a big score.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I shall do my best,’ said Edgar; ‘and every
-member of the team will try hard to win the matches.
-I think we stand an excellent chance, and you will<span class="pagenum">[225]</span>
-have to put your best eleven in the field to beat us in
-the test matches.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Your men generally play well, and with constant
-practice they know each other’s play thoroughly, but
-we have some splendid cricketers now, and they will
-take a lot of beating,’ said his father.</p>
-
-<p>‘All the more credit to us, then, if we win,’ said
-Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>The members of an Australian eleven have plenty
-of hard work to go through when in England, and
-Edgar could not remain idle at home. He went to
-Mitcham to practise on the famous common, and his
-father accompanied him to see how the men shaped.
-To two or three of the older members of the team,
-who had been in England before, Robert Foster was
-well known, and his appearance with Edgar was
-hailed with delight.</p>
-
-<p>William Murch, the captain of the Australians,
-shook hands heartily with Robert Foster, and said
-with a smile:</p>
-
-<p>‘We have had you against us on many occasions,
-but I think we can cry quits now we have your son
-on our side.’</p>
-
-<p>‘How does Edgar shape?’ asked Robert Foster.</p>
-
-<p>‘I consider him one of our best bats, and expect
-great things of him. He has a happy knack of
-making a big score when it is most wanted. He is a
-smart fielder and a good change bowler. In fact, I
-cannot pay him a higher compliment than to say he
-is as good a man as his father,’ said Murch.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[226]</span></p>
-
-<p>Edgar was now at the nets, and making the balls
-fly about merrily.</p>
-
-<p>‘He does not seem very stiff after the voyage,’ said
-Robert Foster. ‘His wrist play is good, but his style
-could be improved a bit. I must give him a wrinkle
-or two.’</p>
-
-<p>‘That will be going over to the enemy’s camp,’
-said Murch, with a laugh; ‘but we shall be glad of
-such a valuable coach.’</p>
-
-<p>‘By Jove! so it will,’ said Robert Foster. ‘But
-I cannot resist the temptation, all the same. We
-cricketers, I am glad to say, are always ready to help
-each other, and I have had many a good wrinkle
-given me by Australians.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Ah! it is a game that stands ahead of all other
-games,’ said Murch enthusiastically. ‘It is a genuine
-sport, and a manly sport. It not only gives pleasure
-to the players, but to thousands of people in all
-parts of the world. Lovers of cricket, no matter
-where you go, are always willing to help each
-other.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You are right,’ said Robert Foster. ‘Cricket will
-never take a back seat to any other game.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Look out!’ said Murch, as he dodged a ball hit
-by Edgar. ‘Your son is evidently bent upon letting
-us know he is at the nets.’</p>
-
-<p>When he had finished his turn with the bat Edgar
-joined his father and Murch.</p>
-
-<p>‘How do you think I shape?’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘Very well,’ replied his father, ‘but your style is<span class="pagenum">[227]</span>
-rather faulty. I think I can give you a hint as to
-what I mean when we reach home.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Now then, Will, it’s your turn,’ said Edgar, and
-Will Murch went to the nets with his bat under his
-arm.</p>
-
-<p>‘You have seen him play before?’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘Many times,’ said his father. ‘He is a splendid
-bat, and I should think he will make a good captain.
-Is he popular with the team?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Very,’ said Edgar. ‘I believe every one of us
-thinks he is the best man that could have been
-selected.’</p>
-
-<p>‘That is the proper feeling to start with,’ said
-Robert Foster. ‘If you have no confidence in your
-captain, defeat is almost certain.’</p>
-
-<p>When Robert Foster had seen the Australians at
-practice on several occasions, he came to the conclusion
-it was the strongest team that had yet come
-to England.</p>
-
-<p>‘The test matches will be a treat,’ he said. ‘If
-honours are divided in the first two matches, what
-tremendous excitement there will be over the
-final!’</p>
-
-<p>‘Which I hope we shall win,’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>Doris Foster was quite as interested as her father
-in the probable result of the tour. Although Will
-Brown had not returned from Australia with enough
-wealth to warrant him in setting up an establishment
-of his own, Doris thought she would not be
-risking much in accepting him as her lover. With<span class="pagenum">[228]</span>
-Robert Foster’s sanction they became engaged, and
-the family circle at Elm Lodge increased.</p>
-
-<p>Ben Brody came to Elm Lodge, and soon made
-himself at home. Robert Foster discovered that men
-of Brody’s stamp are to be trusted, and although he
-might have been out of place amidst the sham and
-humbug of a society drawing-room, Ben Brody was
-in his element at Elm Lodge.</p>
-
-<p>His quaint remarks caused roars of laughter, and
-he drew some amusing pictures of station life in which
-Edgar and Will Brown were conspicuous figures.</p>
-
-<p>‘I’ll tell you what it is,’ he said to Edgar one day
-as they sat on the lawn enjoying the fragrant weed,
-‘this beats Yanda hollow. What a trump your dad
-is! Talk about colonial hospitality, it is a mere trifle
-to the way in which I have been treated here. I
-have lived on the fat of the land, while those poor
-beggars at Yanda have been stifling their ill-feelings
-with the usual mutton. Then there’s your sister&mdash;but
-she ought to have a whole vocabulary to herself
-and not be mixed up with such matters. Will
-Brown’s a lucky fellow, and so for the matter of that
-are you. Girls like Miss Muriel Wylde are not
-found every day. I wonder if you will ever return to
-Australia.’</p>
-
-<p>‘That remains to be seen,’ said Edgar. ‘After the
-tour will be time enough to think about that.’</p>
-
-<p>The opening match of the tour was played at Sheffield
-Park against Lord Sheffield’s eleven. Ever
-ready to assist in promoting honest manly games,<span class="pagenum">[229]</span>
-H.R.H. the Prince of Wales honoured them with his
-presence. Will Murch was introduced to his Royal
-Highness, and was naturally much elated. The
-match resulted in a win for the Australians, but
-Edgar did not ‘come off’ on this occasion.</p>
-
-<p>As the weeks rolled by and the tour progressed, it
-was easy to see the Australian eleven was a fine
-team. So far they had only been twice beaten&mdash;once
-by an M.C.C. eleven, and in the first match
-against England.</p>
-
-<p>Their second struggle with the cracks of the home
-team had resulted in a win for the Australians.
-Edgar played well in these matches, but had done
-nothing particularly wonderful. Against several of
-the county elevens he had made good scores. He
-astonished W. G. at Gloucester by the way he
-knocked the champion’s bowling about, and the hero
-of a hundred fights warmly congratulated him on his
-performance.</p>
-
-<p>‘I always thought W. G. was a jealous man,’ said
-Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘Not a bit of it,’ said Robert Foster. ‘He’s one
-of the first to recognise merit in a cricketer. I’ll tell
-you what he is jealous about.’</p>
-
-<p>‘And that is?’ asked Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘The honour of the game, and the honour of his
-side when he captains a team,’ said Robert Foster.</p>
-
-<p>The final test match was to be played at Lord’s,
-and the greatest interest was manifested in the
-result. Throughout England enthusiastic cricketers<span class="pagenum">[230]</span>
-waxed eloquent over the forthcoming struggle. In
-Australia every item of news was eagerly read and
-discussed. It might safely be said that millions of
-people anxiously awaited the result of this great match.
-The picking of the England eleven was a difficult
-task, but at last it was done, and Robert Foster could
-not find a fault with the team.</p>
-
-<p>‘They ought to beat you, Edgar,’ he said. ‘It is
-the best team that could have been selected. Grace
-has had a large finger in that pie, and no fault can
-be found with it. I cannot pick out a weak spot.’</p>
-
-<p>‘They have not won yet,’ said Edgar; ‘and all
-our men are in splendid trim. Murch is sanguine,
-and he’s not given to over-estimate our chances.
-Lord’s has been our unlucky ground, but that is no
-reason why we should not prove successful.’</p>
-
-<p>‘What a sight it will be!’ said Robert Foster. ‘I
-hope you will pile up a big score.’</p>
-
-<p>‘So do I,’ replied Edgar. ‘This is my chance,
-and I shall do my best.’</p>
-
-<p>The great match was to commence on Monday,
-and on the Sunday quite a party of cricketers
-assembled at Elm Lodge. Will Murch, Bannman,
-Black, Royle of the Australians, and two of the
-English team enjoyed Robert Foster’s hospitality
-and listened to the yarns spun by Ben Brody.</p>
-
-<p>Muriel Wylde and her mother were in London for
-the match, and came to spend the day at Elm
-Lodge. Muriel and Doris were great friends, and
-found much to talk about. It was an eventful<span class="pagenum">[231]</span>
-Sunday, this day before the great match, which
-formed almost the sole topic of conversation. Many
-were the surmises as to who would make the big
-scores, and which bowler would secure the best
-average.</p>
-
-<p>‘We count upon you this time,’ said Murch to
-Edgar. ‘It is your turn to knock up a big score
-against England.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I mean to try,’ said Edgar, ‘and I feel very fit.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Muriel will be terribly disappointed if you make
-less than a hundred,’ said Doris.</p>
-
-<p>‘That is rather a large order,’ laughed Edgar, ‘but
-I must do my best to execute it.’</p>
-
-<p>Late hours were not kept that night. Robert
-Foster packed them off in good time.</p>
-
-<p>‘You shall have a night of it when the match is
-over,’ he said to Will Murch. ‘Win or lose, you must
-come here to celebrate the event. Remember I am
-equally interested in both sides.’</p>
-
-<p>As Edgar bade Muriel good-night, she said:</p>
-
-<p>‘I am quite anxious about you, Edgar. I feel sure
-you will succeed. I shall be terribly excited during
-the first over, but when you are firmly set and
-making a score, it will be glorious.’</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[232]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXV">CHAPTER XXV.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">THE SCENE AT LORD’S.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>An enormous crowd assembled on the famous
-cricket-ground at Lord’s to witness the final battle
-between England and Australia. The record attendance
-was registered for the opening day of a match,
-and it was with difficulty that the crowd could be
-kept within bounds. It reminded old race-goers of
-a Derby Day to see so many vehicles driving in the
-direction of the ground. Although the sky was dull
-and threatening, this did not damp the ardour of the
-spectators. The members’ pavilion was thronged,
-and also the reserved stands and enclosure. A dense
-mass of people filled every available standing and
-sitting place in the cheaper portion of the ground.
-No sooner were the doors opened than a rush commenced
-for the best seats, which were secured by
-those who had been patiently waiting from an early
-hour in the morning.</p>
-
-<p>Outside the high walls it was more like a fair than
-anything else. Itinerant vendors of a variety of
-eatables did a good trade, and evaded the attentions
-of the police with remarkable skill. No sooner did
-the man in blue move a coster on than he ‘bobbed
-up serenely’ in a different place. Portraits of the
-cricketers were hawked about, though the celebrities
-depicted would have had some difficulty in recognising<span class="pagenum">[233]</span>
-their own faces. The excitement over the
-match was tremendous. The bus-drivers discussed
-the chances of success with the passengers nearest to
-them, and many of the cabmen wore the English
-colours on their whips. Morning editions of the
-evening papers met with a ready sale, and every
-scrap of news anent the great match was pounced
-upon with avidity.</p>
-
-<p>Before noon a few drops of rain fell, and with the
-gathering clouds the faces of the people became
-sombre, and their looks gloomy. A heavy shower
-would make a good deal of difference, and none knew
-it better than the members of the teams.</p>
-
-<p>Robert Foster stood inside the pavilion, with his
-son and Will Murch, anxiously scanning the clouds
-for a sign of a break. They had not long to wait.
-The blue sky became visible, and the sun chased the
-dulness away and shed its brilliant rays on the scene.</p>
-
-<p>And what a sight it was as they looked from the
-pavilion over the ground! A dense mass of people
-lined the enclosure, and even pressed over the boundary
-line in some parts of the ground. To the
-left of the pavilion the enclosure was gay with the
-costumes of the ladies, and they seemed as eager
-for the game to commence as any of the male
-sex.</p>
-
-<p>Doris Foster accompanied Muriel Wylde and her
-mother, and they were escorted by Will Brown and
-Ben Brody, who felt slightly uncomfortable in a hard
-hat and a pair of gloves&mdash;not to mention a new suit,<span class="pagenum">[234]</span>
-made by a fashionable tailor. They occupied seats
-in the first enclosure, and had an excellent view of the
-ground.</p>
-
-<p>The mere mention of Lord’s conjures up wonderful
-feats in the cricket field, and recalls memories of men
-who played on its green sward. A glance round the
-pavilion shows the members have not been unmindful
-of their doughty champions of the game. It gives
-the history of cricket, its rise and progress, in a
-pictorial form, to look at the various prints, paintings,
-and engravings hanging on the walls. The ‘tall hat’
-period is well represented, and young cricketers may
-well be forgiven for smiling at the costumes of the
-men who made the game what it is. The smile, however,
-was not at the men&mdash;there was nothing but
-praise for them. Old stagers waxed eloquent over
-the doings of the cricketers of their younger days.
-They vowed there were as good men then as now,
-although they had to confess the game had improved&mdash;and
-consequently the players also.</p>
-
-<p>A gray-headed veteran came up to Robert Foster
-and said:</p>
-
-<p>‘We had big crowds in our day, but nothing like
-this,’ and he waved his hand in a comprehensive
-sweep round the circle of faces.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar was introduced to the veteran, who said:</p>
-
-<p>‘I remember the first time I saw your father play.
-He was about your age then, and he <em>was</em> a bat. I’ll
-never forget it. It was on this very ground&mdash;Surrey
-against Middlesex. He won the match, my boy. I’d<span class="pagenum">[235]</span>
-sooner you were for us than against us to-day, if you
-can play as well as your father did then.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I recollect that match,’ said Robert; ‘but you
-give me too much credit when you say I won it for
-the team.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Not a bit of it,’ replied the veteran. ‘Ask any
-man who saw it, and I’ll guarantee he tells the
-same story. Is it not recorded in the annals of
-cricket?’</p>
-
-<p>‘We’ve lost the toss,’ said Edgar. ‘The usual luck
-at Lord’s.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I expect they will bat,’ said Robert Foster.</p>
-
-<p>‘I doubt it,’ said Edgar. ‘The ground is a bit
-tricky and in favour of the bowlers. Grace has gone
-to have a good look at the wicket. He knows there
-are no chances to be thrown away.’</p>
-
-<p>The tall figure of the English captain, with his
-black, bushy beard, stood out boldly against the background
-of people. It was in the days when Grace
-was at his best, and Dr. E. M. was another of
-the valiant brothers who took the field; Shaw and
-Morley, the famous Notts bowlers, were in their
-prime, and Daft had not yet retired from the field&mdash;when
-such grand men as A. P. Lucas, A. G. Steel,
-A. Lyttelton and Lord Harris were seen at nearly
-every big match. It was an anxious moment for
-everyone as Grace consulted with two of his team as
-to whether they should bat.</p>
-
-<p>At last the decision came. The Englishmen were
-to bat, and a mighty cheer went up from the crowd.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[236]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘The pitch is all right, or Grace would not have
-gone in,’ said Robert Foster.</p>
-
-<p>‘Perhaps he thinks it will wear all right for their
-innings, and leave us with the ground cut up,’ said
-Murch.</p>
-
-<p>People settled down in their places, and made
-themselves as comfortable as possible. As the Australians
-filed on the ground, headed by Murch, cheer
-after cheer was given them&mdash;for the ‘Kangaroo boys’
-had become very popular.</p>
-
-<p>The commencement of a great match is always
-fraught with intense excitement. How will the game
-go? Will there be a stand for the first wicket?</p>
-
-<p>The brothers Grace, W. G. and E. M., came out to
-face the bowling, and again the cheers broke out from
-all parts of the ground. Two good men and good
-bats were going to open the game for the honour of
-Old England against the attack of her young country’s
-sons.</p>
-
-<p>The English captain went through the preliminaries
-usual with him. He calmly surveyed the field,
-noting with keen eyes how each man was placed.
-He took his block, and then patted the ground in a
-fatherly way with his bat, as though requesting the
-pitch to behave well to him. Then he put his bat
-under his arm and leisurely fastened his glove.
-Having put himself to rights, he was ready for the
-attack.</p>
-
-<p>The battle had commenced, and it soon became
-lively. Both men were in form, and the Australians<span class="pagenum">[237]</span>
-had plenty of leather-hunting. Boundary hits did
-not come quite so quickly as might have been
-expected, as the ball seemed to fall rather dead, and
-did not roll far. When an adjournment for luncheon
-was made, both Graces were still in, and the crowd
-was jubilant.</p>
-
-<p>Murch was not at all depressed. He never gave
-in, or had the faintest intention of doing so.</p>
-
-<p>‘After luncheon will do it,’ he said. ‘There will
-be a separation then.’</p>
-
-<p>He was right, for in the first over E. M. Grace
-had his stumps upset.</p>
-
-<p>It was, however, uphill work fighting against such
-a powerful batting team. Man after man came in
-and piled up a score, and the captain was not got
-rid of until he had placed one hundred and fifty-two
-to his credit. He had played a grand innings,
-and fully maintained his great reputation.</p>
-
-<p>The Englishmen were not disposed of until they
-had piled up the large score of four hundred and
-two.</p>
-
-<p>‘What do you think of it now?’ asked Robert
-Foster of Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘It is a big score, but we may equal it,’ he replied.</p>
-
-<p>‘I admire your pluck, but I hardly think you
-will do that,’ was the remark of a friend of Mr.
-Foster’s.</p>
-
-<p>They did not do it. The Australians made an
-unfortunate start, for Murch, their great bat and
-popular captain, was caught before he had scored.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[238]</span></p>
-
-<p>Edgar made a fair show, and put on thirty runs
-before he was bowled; but none of the team made
-a good stand, and the innings closed, for a hundred
-and fifty runs&mdash;two hundred and fifty-two behind
-their opponents. This was a terribly black outlook
-for the Australians, and everyone was disappointed
-at their display.</p>
-
-<p>Muriel Wylde felt vexed, and she knew Edgar
-would be much cut up about it. He came to see
-her, and tried to put the best face he could on the
-matter.</p>
-
-<p>‘We must avoid a one innings defeat, anyhow,’
-he said; ‘I cannot make it out at all. It is sheer
-bad luck, for the wicket was good. I think when
-Murch got out for a duck it made our fellows feel a
-bit nervous.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You played well enough,’ said Brody.</p>
-
-<p>‘That you did,’ said Will Brown; ‘but I’m afraid
-you are in for an awful dressing.’</p>
-
-<p>‘No telling what may happen in cricket,’ said
-Edgar. ‘I have seen an even worse match than this
-pulled out of the fire.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Then you have not lost hope?’ said Muriel.</p>
-
-<p>‘By no means,’ said Edgar. ‘I have a presentiment
-we shall make a big score, and prove what we
-really can do.’</p>
-
-<p>Robert Foster was proud of the display of the
-home eleven, but he could not help feeling a pang
-of regret that the Australians had not made a better
-show.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[239]</span></p>
-
-<p>Will Murch was determined to have his revenge
-for the catch that disposed of him, and said he felt
-like making a big score. He got his men together,
-and talked the matter over.</p>
-
-<p>‘I’ll go in first again,’ he said, ‘with Bannman,
-and we must make a stand somehow. If we can
-make a big score the other side may be got out
-without getting the requisite runs, or they may not
-have time to get them, and we shall make a draw
-of it.’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar Foster was to go in at the fall of the first
-wicket, and Murch was very anxious every man
-should do his level best.</p>
-
-<p>‘They will be very down in the mouth about it
-at home,’ he said. ‘We can all imagine how they
-felt when they saw the poor stand we made; we’ll
-try and change the tune for them. Remember, lads,
-that every run tells. Run carefully, but run well,
-and then it is surprising how a few singles tot up
-and swell the total. Bat carefully until you are set,
-and when you feel safe don’t spare them. They have
-given us some leather-hunting, let us return the compliment.’</p>
-
-<p>The cheery words of their captain put heart into
-the team, and it was with considerable confidence
-they saw Murch and Bannman walk to the wickets
-to commence the second innings.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar went over to his father to watch the start,
-and his heart beat fast as he saw Murch prepare to
-take the first over.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[240]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘This is better, much better,’ said Robert Foster,
-as Murch hit a couple of fours in his first over. ‘We
-can afford to be generous, and wish you all to do
-well this innings.’</p>
-
-<p>Bannman played a cautious game, and left the
-bulk of the run-getting to his captain. After half
-an hour’s play there was a change of bowling. Will
-Murch treated the new-comer with scant ceremony.</p>
-
-<p>To Edgar’s great delight the Australian captain
-hit the bowling all over the field. His powerful
-drives and clean cuts elicited well deserved applause,
-which was freely bestowed.</p>
-
-<p>‘If you go on at this rate,’ said Robert Foster,
-‘it will put a very different complexion on the game.
-Your men always did play a good uphill fight.’</p>
-
-<p>‘And will do so to-day,’ said Edgar. ‘By Jove!
-that was a narrow shave.’</p>
-
-<p>Bannman made a miss-hit, and the ball went near
-to the fielder at point, but he just failed to hold it,
-although he touched it.</p>
-
-<p>When the second day’s play ended, Murch and
-Bannman were not out, and the score stood at one
-hundred and thirty, of which number Will Murch
-had made eighty-four.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[241]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXVI">CHAPTER XXVI.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">AN UPHILL GAME.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>The brilliant stand made by the Australian captain
-and Bannman caused intense excitement, and the
-attendance on the final day of the match was enormous.
-Hundreds of people who anticipated a tame
-finish, and a one-sided affair, changed their opinions
-upon reading the score in the morning papers. Contrary
-to expectation, the third day’s play promised
-to be the most interesting of all.</p>
-
-<p>When Murch and Bannman commenced again,
-every stroke was followed with interest. Runs came
-freely, and Bannman was not disposed of until he
-had made seventy. Then Edgar Foster joined his
-captain, and the reception he received on going to
-the wicket proved his father’s prowess in the field
-was not forgotten. Foster, in days gone by, was a
-name to conjure by, and people remembered Robert
-Foster’s feats with the bat.</p>
-
-<p>Muriel Wylde felt anxious, and whispered to Doris
-Foster:</p>
-
-<p>‘I do hope Edgar will make a score.’</p>
-
-<p>‘He will try to do so, because he knows it will
-give you pleasure,’ said Doris.</p>
-
-<p>Murch spoke to Edgar when he went in to bat,
-and gave him a hint or two as to the bowling.
-Edgar played the last ball of the over, and then
-Murch scored a couple in the next over.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[242]</span></p>
-
-<p>The bowling was splendid. Both Shaw and
-Morley were doing their level best. Edgar found
-Alf Shaw could deceive a batsman, and put in a
-swift ball when least expected. He scored a single
-off the last ball, and then faced Morley. Edgar was
-partial to swift bowling, as Morley soon discovered,
-and the over proved productive.</p>
-
-<p>‘I’m getting well set,’ thought Edgar. ‘I believe
-I’m in for a good score.’</p>
-
-<p>The runs came freely, and it was not until he had
-made a hundred and sixty runs that Murch was
-caught.</p>
-
-<p>He had done splendidly, and his return to the
-pavilion was a triumph. Royle joined Edgar and
-played steadily.</p>
-
-<p>Grace took the ball and faced Edgar. The English
-captain knew Edgar was a free hitter, and placed his
-men far out. Then he tried to tempt him to send a
-catch. Edgar narrowly escaped being caught at the
-second ball of the over, and this made him careful.
-The last ball, however, was one he could not resist
-hitting. He drove it straight as a dart, and it
-landed over the boundary. It was a tremendous hit,
-and caused an outburst of cheering.</p>
-
-<p>The next exciting moment came when E. M.
-Grace made a magnificent catch at long-on from a
-very high hit by Royle. He caught the ball with
-one hand, having had to run for it, and, much to
-Royle’s surprise, held it.</p>
-
-<p>Donnell came next, and then there was some big<span class="pagenum">[243]</span>
-hitting. Both batsmen knocked the bowling about
-terribly. When Edgar had scored fifty there was a
-hearty cheer, and he appeared likely to make as big
-a score as his captain. The Australians were playing
-a splendid uphill game, and keeping up their reputation
-as ‘men who never know when they are
-beaten.’</p>
-
-<p>At the fall of the seventh wicket the two hundred
-and fifty-two runs had been wiped off, and they were
-over fifty to the good.</p>
-
-<p>The game now became most exciting, as the
-Englishmen knew if they did not quickly dispose of
-the Australians the game would end in a draw.
-Each man worked hard, and the fielding and bowling
-was splendid.</p>
-
-<p>Still Edgar Foster kept on increasing his score,
-and passed his century, to the great delight of his
-father and his friends.</p>
-
-<p>Connor was now in, and his hits were marvellous.
-The giant&mdash;he was about six feet four&mdash;lifted the balls
-all over the ground, and safely out of the reach of the
-fielders.</p>
-
-<p>When the last wicket fell Edgar Foster was a
-hundred and fifty, not out, and the score was five
-hundred and two runs, or two hundred and fifty
-ahead of the Englishmen.</p>
-
-<p>Such a grand uphill game it was generally acknowledged
-had never been played before. Edgar Foster
-was overwhelmed with congratulations, and Muriel
-Wylde showed her delight on her face.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[244]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘It was splendid, Edgar,’ she said. ‘I believe you
-would have made two hundred or more.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I felt like it,’ said Edgar. ‘I knew you were
-watching me, and that put me on my mettle.’</p>
-
-<p>It seemed well nigh a hopeless task for the
-Englishmen to get two hundred and fifty runs in the
-short time at their disposal. However, they lost no
-time in making a start to try to do so.</p>
-
-<p>Strange to say, they did not bat in anything like
-the form shown in their first innings. Three wickets
-fell for under fifty runs, W. G. Grace being unluckily
-run out.</p>
-
-<p>The Australians fielded with wonderful skill.
-Hardly a ball got past them, and many boundary
-hits were saved.</p>
-
-<p>Seven wickets fell for a hundred runs, and now it
-was the turn of the Australians to endeavour to get
-their opponents out before the call of time.</p>
-
-<p>The Englishmen had reckoned with certainty upon
-a draw, but they now had to fight hard to avert
-defeat, and even a draw would not be in their favour.</p>
-
-<p>‘It is a most extraordinary game,’ said Robert
-Foster. ‘The glorious uncertainty of cricket again.
-You never can tell how it will go until a match is
-over, no matter how favourable it may look for a
-particular side.’</p>
-
-<p>He had joined the ladies, and they were all watching
-the game with interest, taking keen note of every
-good stroke and every brilliant piece of fielding.</p>
-
-<p>Will Brown looked at his watch.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[245]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘They have only half-an-hour left,’ he said. ‘I
-should not wonder if they were got out in that time.’</p>
-
-<p>The thousands of spectators also wondered how the
-game would end.</p>
-
-<p>Ten minutes before time Morley joined Shaw at
-the wickets. They were not good bats&mdash;anything
-but that, and the crowd knew it. Morley hit out
-recklessly and made a couple of fours, and Shaw
-played steadily. The Australians did all in their
-power to separate them, but, as luck would have it,
-they failed to do so. The game ended in a draw,
-which practically amounted to a victory for the
-Australians, as the English eleven required over
-seventy runs to win.</p>
-
-<p>The result of this match was the subject of conversation
-for some days, and the grand struggle made by
-the Australians was commented upon on all sides.</p>
-
-<p>At Elm Lodge the event was duly celebrated, and,
-as Robert Foster promised, the party made a night
-of it.</p>
-
-<p>When the tour of the Australians was finished they
-left for home, but Edgar Foster did not return with
-them. At his father’s request he remained at home.</p>
-
-<p>‘What will Eva think when she finds that I have
-not returned?’ said Edgar. ‘I promised her I would
-go back.’</p>
-
-<p>‘We must try and get her over here,’ said his
-father. ‘I shall feel lonely when you and Doris have
-left me, and Eva will be nice company for me.’</p>
-
-<p>‘She is a dear little thing,’ said Edgar, ‘and you<span class="pagenum">[246]</span>
-will love her as much as though she were your own
-child.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Do you think every soul on board the <em>Distant
-Shore</em>, with the exception of Eva and yourself, was
-drowned?’ said Robert Foster.</p>
-
-<p>‘There can hardly be any doubt about it,’ said
-Edgar. ‘Why do you ask?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Because I have received a rather mysterious letter,’
-said Robert Foster; ‘it bears the Sydney postmark,
-and contains news that may interest you. I will show
-it you.’</p>
-
-<p>Robert Foster unlocked his desk, and put his hand
-in one of the pigeon-holes. He looked through the
-letters, but could not find the one for which he
-searched.</p>
-
-<p>‘Strange,’ he said, ‘I am sure I put it there.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You may have dropped it, or torn it up by
-mistake,’ said Edgar. ‘Perhaps you remember the
-contents?’</p>
-
-<p>‘The bulk of them,’ said his father. ‘The letter
-stated that the writer had been on a cruise to the
-South Sea Islands, where he met a man who had
-been saved from a wreck. He believes, from hints
-the man, who was very reticent, let fall, that he was
-saved from the wreck of the <em>Distant Shore</em>. When
-he returned to Sydney he met with Wal Jessop, who
-was much interested in what he was told about this
-man. Wal Jessop described Captain Manton, and
-my correspondent says he firmly believes from this
-description it is Captain Manton who was saved and<span class="pagenum">[247]</span>
-is now in the South Seas. He did not tell Wal Jessop
-this, because the man seemed to have a great desire
-to be left alone, and had no wish to let people know
-he had been saved from the wreck of the <em>Distant
-Shore</em>. It is a most extraordinary story, and I wish
-I had the letter. I must have torn it up by mistake.
-It was careless of me to do so.’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar was amazed at what his father said, and
-replied:</p>
-
-<p>‘I can hardly credit this story. How any man
-could live if washed out to sea on such a night I do
-not know. If it is Captain Manton, surely he would
-have made some sign before this. It cannot possibly
-be Eva’s father, for I saw him standing on the deck
-as the ship struck, and from the look on his face, and
-the way he waved farewell to me, I knew he meant to
-go down with her.’</p>
-
-<p>‘He may have been washed out to sea, and found a
-spar or something to support him. I have a peculiar
-feeling that this man who was saved from the wreck
-is Manton. I have had strange dreams about him
-since I received the letter, and I am not a dreamer as
-a rule, or a superstitious man. I knew Manton well;
-he was a proud man, and very sensitive. If he be
-the man so strangely saved, I think it is precisely
-what he would do&mdash;to hide himself away in some
-lonely spot, in order to make people think him dead.’</p>
-
-<p>‘But surely he would come forward and tell the
-story of the wreck,’ said Edgar. ‘No blame attaches
-to him; he did his utmost to save the ship, and went<span class="pagenum">[248]</span>
-down with her when he found he could not do so.
-Then there is Eva. He would want to see his child
-again; surely he would hear that she had been
-saved.’</p>
-
-<p>‘He may not have heard. In such a lonely spot
-one hears very little news from the outer world.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Do you really place any faith in your mysterious
-correspondent’s letter?’</p>
-
-<p>‘I do, Edgar, and for this reason: I feel no man
-would have written such a letter had he not been convinced
-of the truth of its contents.’</p>
-
-<p>‘But why should he write to you?’ asked Edgar.
-
-‘Wal Jessop probably told him how you saved
-Eva from the wreck, and it would occur to him that
-you might wish to know what he thought he had discovered.
-He no doubt wrote to me, thinking I would
-tell you if I thought it well to do so,’ said Robert
-Foster.</p>
-
-<p>‘It may be as you surmise,’ said Edgar. ‘I shall
-never be easy in my mind until I have seen the man
-who wrote the letter, and heard all he has to tell.’</p>
-
-<p>‘That would mean another trip to Australia,’ said
-his father with a smile. ‘What would Muriel say to
-that?’</p>
-
-<p>‘I do not think she would object to my going, for
-we are not to be married, as you know, until she is
-twenty-one. Her mother will not consent to part
-with her before that time. In any case I should not
-have the journey for nothing, because I could bring
-Eva back with me.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[249]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘So you could,’ said Robert Foster. ‘We should
-be put down as a couple of foolish fellows if anyone
-knew what you went to Sydney for.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I shall tell no one, with the exception of Muriel,’
-said Edgar. ‘She will not think it foolish.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I ought to tell you more,’ said Robert Foster.
-‘There was a sketch in the letter, and it bore a strange
-resemblance to Manton. I cannot make out where
-the letter has got to.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Was it a sketch made on the spot, or drawn from
-memory?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Drawn in Sydney, I believe the writer said.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Then it may have been drawn from Wal Jessop’s
-description,’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘Possibly, but I hardly think so. It seemed to
-me to be a sketch just as the man who drew it remembered
-to have seen him. I did not tell you of
-this before, because I thought it might upset you
-during the tour.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I should have thought a good deal about it, no
-doubt,’ said Edgar; ‘and perhaps it was as well you
-did not tell me.’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar pondered over what his father told him, and
-the more he thought over it, the more impossible it
-seemed to him that anyone, least of all Captain
-Manton, should have been saved from the wreck of
-the <em>Distant Shore</em>.</p>
-
-<p>The spirit of adventure, however, was still strong
-within him, and this letter his father had received
-would serve as an excuse, if a poor one, to revisit<span class="pagenum">[250]</span>
-Australia. He communicated his intention to Muriel,
-and when she heard the reason for his setting out
-again she did not consider it so improbable as Edgar
-himself did.</p>
-
-<p>So it was arranged that Edgar should again voyage
-to the Colonies, and Ben Brody was glad of a comrade
-to return with him. Will Brown, having
-obtained a situation in a large shipping office, decided
-to remain in England, and Doris Foster was consoled
-by the thought that if Edgar left again, she would
-still have a companion of her own age to whom she
-was much attached.</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXVII">CHAPTER XXVII.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">THE CAPTAIN OR HIS GHOST.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>In due course Edgar Foster arrived in Sydney again.
-He thought it better to take Wal Jessop into his
-confidence, and related to him the real reason of his
-return to Australia.</p>
-
-<p>Wal Jessop remembered the circumstances, and
-said he did not think Edgar would easily find the
-man.</p>
-
-<p>‘He spoke of sailing for America,’ said Wal; ‘and
-as I have seen nothing of him for some time, I think
-he must have gone away.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I mean to have a cruise in the South Seas, at any
-rate,’ said Edgar. ‘I have never been there, and it<span class="pagenum">[251]</span>
-will be interesting. I am sure to hear something
-about this man from the natives and traders.’</p>
-
-<p>Wal Jessop thought for a few moments, and then
-said:</p>
-
-<p>‘I have a schooner that would suit your purpose,
-and I should not mind making a voyage with you.
-It would be better than going alone, and I have been
-in the South Seas several times.’</p>
-
-<p>‘That would be splendid!’ said Edgar, overjoyed
-at the prospect of having Wal Jessop with him.</p>
-
-<p>Wal Jessop communicated his intention of accompanying
-Edgar to his wife, and although she did not
-care for him to leave her again to go on a cruise, she
-raised no objections when she heard what object they
-had in view.</p>
-
-<p>‘How strange it will be if you find Captain
-Manton there!’ she said. ‘Even if such a thing
-happened I am afraid he would not return with
-you.’</p>
-
-<p>‘We shall persuade him to do so,’ said Wal, ‘if
-we find him; but that is more than we hope for.
-Still, more extraordinary things than this have happened
-over shipwrecks, and truth is often stranger
-than fiction.’</p>
-
-<p>Wal Jessop’s schooner did not take much fitting
-out for the voyage, for both he and Edgar were used
-to roughing it. A couple of good men were engaged
-to go with them, upon whom Wal Jessop knew he
-could rely.</p>
-
-<p>They set sail early one morning, and were soon<span class="pagenum">[252]</span>
-outside the heads, going along at a fair rate of speed
-in their small craft.</p>
-
-<p>‘She sails well,’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘Many a craft twice her size does not skim over the
-sea so fast,’ said Wal.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar thoroughly enjoyed being on board the
-schooner. It was vastly different from the life on an
-ocean liner. They had on board a stock of goods to
-trade with the natives, and hoped to make the trip
-profitable. The wind and weather being in their
-favour, they sailed merrily along, and there was every
-prospect of their making a fast trip.</p>
-
-<p>Wal Jessop suggested going to Fiji first of all.</p>
-
-<p>‘It’s a jolly place,’ he said, ‘and will not be out of
-our way, and we are not tied for time.’</p>
-
-<p>‘It is a good thing your wife cannot hear you,’ said
-Edgar, laughing. ‘I fancy I heard you say we should
-return as quickly as possible.’</p>
-
-<p>‘So we shall,’ said Wal; ‘but we made no stipulation
-as to the course we should take.’</p>
-
-<p>They made sail for Levuka, the former capital of
-Fiji, Suva being the present capital. Levuka is
-situated on a narrow strip of beach, from which the
-backbone of Ovalau rises precipitately to a height of
-2,500 feet, and falls in a similar manner on the other
-side.</p>
-
-<p>Levuka, Edgar found, consisted of one main street
-about a mile in length, which runs along the beach
-from old Government House to the native village
-at the other end. The ground ascends rapidly on<span class="pagenum">[253]</span>
-leaving the beach, and the hills around are dotted
-with pretty villas. The stores and hotels face the
-water, and here Edgar and Wal took in a fresh stock
-of provisions for the schooner.</p>
-
-<p>After leaving Levuka, they sailed along the coast
-and saw a number of small native towns dotted about
-at varying intervals, usually among a little grove of
-cocoa-nuts or bananas.</p>
-
-<p>They landed near one of these native villages and
-obtained a supply of yams and sweet potatoes, also
-bananas in any quantity. The village was surrounded
-by filth and garbage of all sorts, and among
-this highly-scented mess a number of scraggy pigs,
-thin hens, and young children were rummaging. The
-stagnant water lying about attracted swarms of
-mosquitoes and flies.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar entered one of the houses and was almost
-choked with the smoke, and was glad to get a breath
-of fresh air. The earthen floor of the house he
-could just discern was covered with dry grass over
-which were spread a few mats. The men seemed a
-lazy lot of fellows, passing the bulk of their time in
-smoking. They went inland for several miles, but
-found the country hilly and uninteresting.</p>
-
-<p>They saw numerous inland villages nestling in the
-valley or perched on the top of a hill. After leaving
-Fiji they sailed for the New Hebrides, rather an inhospitable
-country, so Edgar understood. Wal Jessop
-had, however, been to Tana before, and meant to
-steer for that place.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[254]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘What sort of a place is Tana?’ asked Edgar as
-they sat idly in the schooner with the blue sky
-shining brilliantly overhead, and the blue water of
-the ocean all around them.</p>
-
-<p>‘It is a volcanic island,’ said Wal. ‘There are
-several of them in the group, and on many of them
-the natives speak different languages. It is a circular
-island, with a high mountain in the centre which we
-ought to see before long. The mountain is constantly
-in eruption, and answers the purpose of a
-lighthouse. It is covered with vegetation almost to
-the top.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I hope we shall not have an earthquake during
-our stay on the island. I have experienced one
-already, during our exploration in the cave of
-Enooma, and I should not care for the experience
-to be repeated,’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>Next morning the island of Tana came in sight,
-and Edgar marvelled at its beauty as seen from the
-schooner. In the centre of the island rose the high
-mountain, as Wal Jessop had described it, and smoke
-and fire were issuing from the top. They were not
-long in reaching a landing-place, and on the beach
-they saw a number of native canoes, some about
-fifteen feet long, and others from twenty-five to
-nearly fifty feet in length.</p>
-
-<p>When the natives saw the schooner let go her
-anchor, two canoes put off and were quickly paddled
-alongside. The natives in them were rather under
-the middle stature and the colour of old copper.<span class="pagenum">[255]</span>
-Their faces were painted a reddish colour, and looked
-oily and sticky. Their hair was frizzy and of a light-brown
-colour, and was twisted and curled into
-numerous tails, which were thrown back from the
-forehead and hung down the back. It looked for all
-the world like a wig made of whipcord, Edgar
-thought.</p>
-
-<p>‘These fellows are Tanese,’ said Wal. ‘I must
-try and make them understand a few questions.’</p>
-
-<p>He spoke to one of the natives, who was taller
-than his companions, and asked him to come on
-board the schooner. Without the least hesitation
-the man did so. As he stood on deck, Edgar saw
-that he was a well-made, athletic young fellow. The
-septum of his nose was pierced, and through it was
-inserted a reed horizontally, but not so as to project
-beyond either nostril. He had tortoiseshell earrings
-in his ears, about half a dozen hanging down
-on each side, and the weight had enlarged the
-aperture until a child’s hand might have been passed
-through. He was not tattooed, but on his breast a
-rude device of a fish had been either cut or burnt in,
-and on the upper part of his arms was a leaf done in a
-similar way. He had no clothes on except a matting
-bag round the loins. He had armlets on, and also
-three large whale’s teeth on three strings hanging
-horizontally on his breast.</p>
-
-<p>‘He’s a chief,’ said Wal. ‘I can tell that by those
-teeth he has on his breast.’</p>
-
-<p>‘He is a formidable-looking savage,’ said Edgar.<span class="pagenum">[256]</span>
-‘I should not care to have a hit with that club he
-carries.’</p>
-
-<p>Wal Jessop motioned the chief to sit down, which
-he did, and was presented with a necklace of bright-coloured
-beads which delighted him immensely.</p>
-
-<p>The other natives in the canoes were looking at
-the schooner with eager eyes, evidently with the expectation
-of getting a few presents.</p>
-
-<p>The chief, whose name was Meri, spoke a few
-words of English, and as Wal Jessop knew a little of
-the Tana language, they managed to understand
-each other.</p>
-
-<p>Although Edgar could not make out what they were
-talking about, he knew Wal Jessop was questioning
-him as to the white men who visited the island.</p>
-
-<p>‘Psan Aremama,’ said Meri.</p>
-
-<p>‘There is a white man on the island,’ said Wal to
-Edgar. ‘We must go ashore and try and meet him.
-Meri knows where he is to be found, but he avoids
-the coast.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Strange a white man should be here,’ said Edgar.
-‘It may be the very man we are in search of.’</p>
-
-<p>‘If it turns out to be Manton, it will be stranger
-still,’ said Wal.</p>
-
-<p>Meri agreed to take them ashore in his canoe, and
-to make room for them ordered two of the men to
-jump out and swim back to land.</p>
-
-<p>Wal Jessop asked if there were sharks about, for
-he saw the natives were frightened, but dared not
-disobey the chief.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[257]</span></p>
-
-<p>Meri laughed, showing his even teeth, and hinted
-that it would be good sport to see a shark or two
-hunt the natives.</p>
-
-<p>‘Pleasant sort of man to work for,’ said Edgar,
-when Wal had explained.</p>
-
-<p>The canoe shot away from the side of the schooner.
-Wal and Edgar had their rifles with them and also a
-number of beads, trinkets, and pieces of bright-coloured
-cloths, with which to propitiate the natives.</p>
-
-<p>As they neared the shore one of the natives who
-was swimming dived, and before he came to the
-surface the water was dyed with blood.</p>
-
-<p>‘Laumasan! [good],’ chuckled Meri.</p>
-
-<p>The native came to the surface, and they saw he
-had dived and stabbed a shark that had been in
-pursuit.</p>
-
-<p>‘That was cleverly done,’ said Wal.</p>
-
-<p>‘They must have some pluck,’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘Good fighters, many of them,’ said Wal. ‘We
-must try and get them to give us an exhibition of
-spear-throwing and stone-slinging. It will interest
-you.’</p>
-
-<p>They got out of the canoes and waded through
-the surf to the beach. Here a number of natives,
-men and women, were gathered. The women were
-fairly well covered with long girdles reaching below
-the knee. These girdles were made of rolled dried
-fibre of the banana stalk, which was soft to touch
-and very like hemp. They also wore a few ornaments,
-and their hair was shorter than the men’s,<span class="pagenum">[258]</span>
-standing erect in a forest of little curls about an inch
-long.</p>
-
-<p>The chief conducted them to his hut, which was
-rudely constructed, but large enough to hold half a
-dozen persons comfortably. This hut was built
-amongst the trees, and there were huts of a smaller
-size for about eight or ten families.</p>
-
-<p>The chief gave them to understand that they must
-join them at the marum, or place of public meeting.</p>
-
-<p>This meeting was held under a banyan tree in a
-large clear space. All the men assembled here at
-sundown for their evening meal.</p>
-
-<p>A bowl of kava was prepared by chewing the root
-and ejecting the contents of the mouth into a bowl,
-which was filled up with water, then mixed and
-strained. In addition to the kava, there were raw
-yams served, and cooked food consisting of figs and
-fowls. The women had their meal apart from the
-men.</p>
-
-<p>Meri repeated a short prayer before the meal,
-wishing them success in their crops and in the battles
-in which they were often engaged.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar, having seen the kava prepared, did not
-relish tasting it, but at a sign from Wal Jessop, he
-took the bowl and sipped a little.</p>
-
-<p>‘They would have been greatly offended had you
-refused it,’ Wal explained.</p>
-
-<p>After the meal, which, with the exception of the
-kava, Edgar relished, the men made speeches and
-danced, flourishing their clubs. It amused Edgar<span class="pagenum">[259]</span>
-to watch the children, of whom the men seemed very
-fond. The copper-skinned little ones imitated their
-elders with precocious dexterity.</p>
-
-<p>It was a curious sight to see these natives holding
-a marum under the huge banyan tree, and as the
-shades of night quickly fell their figures loomed in
-the light with a peculiarly weird effect as they
-danced and chanted their monotonous song.</p>
-
-<p>Meri sat between Wal Jessop and Edgar, and as
-the dance proceeded, he caught them one by each
-arm and nodded across the opening. Edgar and
-Wal looked in the direction Meri indicated, and saw
-a strange figure standing looking at the scene.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar sprang to his feet and shouted:</p>
-
-<p>‘The captain or his ghost!’</p>
-
-<p>‘The very image of him,’ said Wal.</p>
-
-<p>The stranger had, however, noted their movements,
-and, suddenly turning, darted back into the shadow
-of the trees.</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXVIII">CHAPTER XXVIII.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">A STRANGE STORY.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Wal Jessop hastily explained to Meri that it was
-their intention to go in pursuit of the white man,
-and the chief said he would accompany them. The
-meeting came to an end, the savages dispersing to
-their various huts.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[260]</span></p>
-
-<p>Meri, beckoning to Wal and Edgar to follow him,
-led the way across the marum into the forest beyond.
-They were soon in richly-wooded country, and found
-progress difficult. Edgar constantly stumbled over
-some tangled, twisted root that lay hidden in his
-path; thorns, growing on some of the bushes, pricked
-him and tore his clothes, and Wal Jessop was in no
-better plight. Meri, however, did not appear to mind
-the thorns, but walked on at a rapid pace.</p>
-
-<p>They continued their tramp for some time, but saw
-nothing of the white man who had so quickly and
-mysteriously disappeared.</p>
-
-<p>When they halted to rest Wal Jessop questioned
-Meri, and learned that the white man had been on
-the island for some time. He came in a trading
-vessel, and was left behind, either wilfully or through
-his own desire. The natives regarded him with
-superstition, and thought him scarcely human. Meri
-himself was evidently a believer in the white man’s
-powers over the natives for good or evil.</p>
-
-<p>On resuming their search they came upon a pathway
-evidently cut in the bush, and along this Meri
-led them.</p>
-
-<p>He halted at the entrance to a small clearing, and
-here they saw a strange sight.</p>
-
-<p>Standing straight up from the ground were several
-large trunks of trees, that had been hollowed out and
-rudely carved in the shape of hideous heads at the
-top. They appeared to be idols, and Meri regarded
-them with a look of awe.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[261]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘This is a Sing-Sing ground,’ said Wal; ‘I have
-heard of them before, but never seen one. This is
-where their gods live, and it is regarded as a sacred
-grove. If the white man is here it easily accounts
-for the fear with which he is regarded. No native
-would remain here alone; in fact, they dare not
-venture except upon special occasions. I’ll ask Meri
-about it.’</p>
-
-<p>Wal questioned the chief, who said he could enter
-the sacred grove as chief of his tribe, and they walked
-into the clearing. Raising his club Meri struck one
-of the hollow trunks a blow, and it echoed through
-the forest with a sound like a drum.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar looked into the hollow of each tree, but saw
-nothing. Presently a tall figure glided into the grove,
-and stood still regarding them.</p>
-
-<p>They were at once convinced it was the unfortunate
-captain of the <em>Distant Shore</em> standing before them,
-but he showed no sign that he recognised them.</p>
-
-<p>He was strangely altered from the fine, stalwart
-seaman they had known as Captain Manton of the
-<em>Distant Shore</em>. His figure was gaunt and thin, and
-his arms and hands were mere skin and bone. His
-hair was white, his beard of the same hue, and
-his eyes looked vacantly from under his bushy eyebrows.
-He wore an old coat, which reached to his
-knees, and his legs and feet were bare. As he
-advanced slowly towards them Meri fell back, but
-Edgar and Wal stood their ground.</p>
-
-<p>‘Begone!’ said this ghost-like figure of Captain<span class="pagenum">[262]</span>
-Manton. ‘This is no place for you. Begone, and
-leave me in peace! I harm no one. I am quite
-alone&mdash;alone in a world of my own, peopled with the
-ghosts of the drowned!’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar stepped forward, and, looking him straight
-in the eyes, said:</p>
-
-<p>‘Do you not know me, Captain Manton? I am
-Edgar Foster. I was saved from the wreck with your
-daughter Eva.’</p>
-
-<p>At the mention of Eva’s name a momentary light
-of intelligence came into the man’s eyes, but it
-quickly died away, and left them dull and vacant.</p>
-
-<p>‘Poor fellow!’ said Edgar sorrowfully; ‘his brain
-has given way under the strain. He must have
-suffered severely.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Do you think he is mad?’ asked Wal.</p>
-
-<p>‘Not a dangerous form of madness,’ replied Edgar;
-‘but I have no doubt he is not in his right mind. We
-must humour him, and question him. He has a
-strange story to relate, if he can be persuaded to tell
-it, and if he remembers all he has gone through.’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar took the unfortunate man by the hand, and
-persuaded him to sit down.</p>
-
-<p>Meri looked on, his curiosity evidently being
-excited.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar tried as gently and simply as possible to
-lead the wandering mind of the captain back to
-the wreck of the <em>Distant Shore</em>, and found, to his
-delight, that he succeeded in rousing his dormant
-memory.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[263]</span></p>
-
-<p>Captain Manton began to talk in a strange,
-monotonous way. He was evidently recapitulating
-what had happened to him after the wreck of the
-<em>Distant Shore</em>, and he seemed almost unconscious of
-anyone being present.</p>
-
-<p>From time to time during the course of the strange
-tale he related Edgar refreshed his weak memory.</p>
-
-<p>‘If we can lead him on to tell us everything,’ said
-Edgar, ‘he may recognise us in the end.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I hope so,’ said Wal; ‘it is terrible to see him
-like this, but it may be caused through not having
-any white men to converse with.’</p>
-
-<p>Captain Manton&mdash;for, indeed, it was that unfortunate
-seaman&mdash;commenced by telling them, in a somewhat
-incoherent way, that he was on a big ship when
-it went on to the rocks and crashed to pieces.</p>
-
-<p>‘It was the captain’s fault,’ he said; ‘he ought to
-have made for a harbour; he is responsible for all our
-deaths.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You were saved,’ said Edgar. ‘You are not dead,
-and you ought to be thankful. It was not the
-captain’s fault, for he was a brave man, and a good
-seaman. I knew him well, and he was incapable of
-a cowardly action.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I knew him once,’ said Captain Manton, ‘but it
-must have been a very long time ago. He’s dead
-now, and you say I am alive. Strange how little I
-remember of Manton, for I must have known him
-well.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You did,’ said Edgar. ‘Have you forgotten?<span class="pagenum">[264]</span>
-Can you not remember that you are Captain Manton,
-and that I saved your daughter Eva?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Eva,’ said Manton, with a deep sigh, ‘I know
-the name very well&mdash;Eva; yes, I once knew little
-Eva.’</p>
-
-<p>He spoke in such pathetic tones that both Edgar
-and Wal Jessop were affected.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly Manton began to talk rapidly.</p>
-
-<p>‘I remember now,’ he said; ‘the captain went
-down with the ship. I was tossed about on the rocks&mdash;washed
-on and then off again. A huge wave rolled
-me back into the sea, and I clutched a broken spar.
-The captain clutched that spar, too, but I pushed
-him off&mdash;ah, ah! I pushed him off because there was
-only room for one; but he came up again and sat
-beside me, and I had not strength to push him off
-again. He did not try to push me off. Out to sea
-we were taken, and then I recollect nothing until I
-awoke on board a small craft, and the captain was
-not there. He must have fallen off the spar, and
-been drowned. I was starved on the boat, for they
-had very little to eat. When they landed on some
-island, they went away and left me. The natives
-were kind to me and gave me food. I have lived
-here many years. I do no one any harm, and I want
-to stay here. You will not take me away?’ he said
-suddenly, turning to Edgar and Wal, with an imploring
-look in his eyes.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar evaded the question, and said:</p>
-
-<p>‘I will tell you what happened on the night the<span class="pagenum">[265]</span>
-<em>Distant Shore</em> was wrecked, and how Wal Jessop
-here saved me and your daughter Eva.’</p>
-
-<p>‘My daughter Eva!’ said Manton, with a soft smile&mdash;‘my
-daughter Eva!’</p>
-
-<p>He lingered fondly over the name, and Edgar said
-to Wal:</p>
-
-<p>‘I believe if I relate all that took place he will
-remember. His sufferings have caused loss of
-memory, that is all.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I hope so,’ said Wal; ‘it is pitiable to find him
-like this.’</p>
-
-<p>Edgar then told him as briefly as possible all that
-took place at the wreck of the <em>Distant Shore</em>. As he
-described how Wal Jessop found himself and Eva
-on the rocks, and at great risk got them to the top of
-the cliffs, Manton’s eyes brightened, and he listened
-with intense interest.</p>
-
-<p>‘Eva is now a beautiful little girl,’ said Edgar, ‘and
-she has been expecting to see you. We have always
-told her you would come back to her, and I am sure
-you will do so. You remember me now, do you not?’
-said Edgar; ‘and also your good friend in Sydney,
-Wal Jessop?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Ay, you’ll remember me, skipper,’ said Wal, in a
-hearty voice; ‘I’ve towed you safely into port many
-a time. Come, give me a grip of your hand, and say
-you know me.’</p>
-
-<p>Manton looked, first at Edgar, and then at Wal
-Jessop. He was wrestling with the memories of the
-past that had so long been absent from him. Gradually<span class="pagenum">[266]</span>
-they saw his memory was recovering its power.
-The mind was only clouded, and brighter days would
-chase the gloom away.</p>
-
-<p>‘My God! can it be true?’ said Manton, as he
-gazed at them. ‘Am I dreaming, or am I mad?
-Can this be Edgar Foster, and my old mate, Wal
-Jessop? Where am I, and how did I come here?’</p>
-
-<p>He was wrestling with his memory, and gradually
-drawing it back to life. With the return of reason
-he failed to comprehend what had happened to him,
-and why he was on this wild island in the New
-Hebrides.</p>
-
-<p>‘True, true, true!’ he murmured; ‘they are indeed
-my friends!</p>
-
-<p>He grasped their hands, and his frame shook with
-the intense emotion he felt. He was in a very weak
-state, and the reaction was too much for him. The
-change from darkness to light overpowered him, and
-he sank back in a dead faint.</p>
-
-<p>Meri, when he saw Manton fall back, to all appearance
-dead, sprang forward and brandished his club
-in a savage manner. He thought Edgar and Wal
-must have practised some witchcraft upon this white
-man, who had been so long amongst them.</p>
-
-<p>Wal Jessop, leaving Manton in Edgar’s care, explained,
-as well as he could, what had happened.
-Meri looked displeased when Wal said they would
-take Manton away with them, and said evil would
-fall upon their tribe if they allowed him to go.</p>
-
-<p>It was some time before Manton recovered, and<span class="pagenum">[267]</span>
-when he did so he was too weak to walk. Wal Jessop
-persuaded Meri to return with him to the village, and
-obtain help to carry Manton to the beach.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar remained with the captain, and did all in
-his power to cheer him. He knew it would be some
-time before they returned, and Manton was not in a
-fit state to be left alone. With the return of his
-memory he had become nervous and excited. For
-the first time since that fatal night when the <em>Distant
-Shore</em> was wrecked, he began to remember clearly
-what had taken place.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar saw what it was preyed upon his mind, and
-said:</p>
-
-<p>‘Everyone will be glad to hear you have been
-saved in such a strange and marvellous way. You
-will be heartily welcomed in Sydney when we return;
-and think of little Eva waiting and watching for
-you.’</p>
-
-<p>‘The ship was lost,’ said Manton in a hollow voice,
-‘and I am responsible. Did all on board perish with
-the exception of three?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes,’ said Edgar; ‘but you were not to blame.
-Everyone praised your conduct, for I told them how
-you stood by your ship, and went down with her.
-Nothing could have saved her. You did all that
-man could do.’</p>
-
-<p>‘And my poor wife?’ he moaned.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar was silent. He knew words would avail
-nothing.</p>
-
-<p>‘How did you find me?’ asked Manton.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[268]</span></p>
-
-<p>Edgar related how his father received a letter, and
-his own determination to set out in quest of him in
-order to ascertain the truth.</p>
-
-<p>‘And you did this for my sake?’ said Manton.</p>
-
-<p>‘I must not take too much credit for that,’ said
-Edgar. ‘A love of adventure prompted me, and,
-although I hardly credited your being alive, yet I
-knew it was not impossible.’</p>
-
-<p>‘And where am I, and how long have I been
-here?’ asked Manton wonderingly.</p>
-
-<p>‘You are on the island of Tana, in the New
-Hebrides,’ said Edgar. ‘You were no doubt picked
-up by a schooner on its way to the South Seas from
-Sydney.’</p>
-
-<p>‘It is all very strange,’ said Manton. ‘I must
-have been near to death when I was rescued from
-the sea.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Your sufferings were so great that your mind
-became deranged,’ said Edgar. ‘With complete rest,
-and amongst your friends, you will speedily recover.’</p>
-
-<p>Manton shook his head despondingly. He was in
-a melancholy mood, and his mind was not quite
-balanced. As Edgar looked at him his heart was
-full of pity for him, and he fervently hoped it would
-not be many weeks before Captain Manton was fully
-recovered both in mind and body.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[269]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXIX">CHAPTER XXIX.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">WARLIKE SPORTS.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>When Meri and Wal Jessop reached the village the
-chief explained to his followers how the white men
-had recognised their friend, and the natives were
-excited at such an unlooked-for occurrence. A
-stretcher was quickly made of long poles and
-matting, and, accompanied by four stalwart natives,
-Wal Jessop and Meri returned to the Sing-Sing
-ground where they had left Edgar and Captain Manton.
-They carefully carried Manton to the village,
-and Wal Jessop went out to the schooner to obtain
-drugs from the medicine chest.</p>
-
-<p>In the course of a few days Captain Manton was
-much better, and eager to be gone from the island.
-The chief and the natives, however, seemed loath to
-part with him, and Edgar thought there might be
-some trouble in getting him away. To make matters
-easier they presented Meri and most of the natives&mdash;men,
-women, and children&mdash;with gifts of beads, cloth,
-and small ornaments. It amused them to watch the
-women adorning their persons with bright red and
-yellow cloths, and they were particularly delighted
-some with the strings of bright-coloured beads.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar noticed the natives, even when going to
-walk in the plantations, were armed, and Meri said
-they were always at war with one or more of the<span class="pagenum">[270]</span>
-neighbouring tribes. Even the women and children
-were armed, and it was surprising with what accuracy
-of aim the smallest lads could shoot their arrows.
-These natives were all fond of sports, and spent the
-greater part of their time practising with the various
-weapons they used.</p>
-
-<p>Meri, at Edgar’s request, ordered some native
-sports to take place; and the men, nothing loath, prepared
-for them in a very short time. Wal Jessop
-promised the most successful should have prizes
-given them, selected from the stock of trade goods
-on board the schooner.</p>
-
-<p>Spear-throwing was first undertaken, and the
-natives aimed with wonderful skill, far better than
-the Enooma blacks. They hurled their spears with
-terrific force, and often buried them six inches deep
-in the trunk of a tree the wood of which was almost
-as hard as iron. Smooth stones were piled up on the
-beach, and the natives, using slings, whirled them out
-to sea for such a long distance that the splash made
-when they fell could hardly be seen. Club-swinging
-they were clever at, and an attack with clubs, warded
-off by wooden shields, made Edgar fearful for the
-result, so furious and excited did the combatants
-become.</p>
-
-<p>The boys and girls, all naked, ran races on the
-clear white sand, and swam out to sea in the most
-daring manner. One lad, a son of the chief, shot his
-arrow through Meri’s fingers as he spread the back of
-his hand out wide against a tree. The girls were<span class="pagenum">[271]</span>
-quite as active as the boys, and ran as fast, and swam
-as well. These youngsters had very little fear in
-them, and even a shark near the shore did not
-frighten them, for the lads would swim out with
-spears in their hands and attack the monsters.</p>
-
-<p>The canoe-races caused much excitement, and the
-chief, Meri, paddled dexterously&mdash;in fact, he was
-superior to the others in most of the sports.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar was much interested in watching the natives
-build a canoe. A tree was felled, and the branches
-cut off. Then, for a common fishing canoe, the log
-was hollowed out about fifteen feet long, and a
-rough canoe was soon formed. The better-built
-canoes were made of separate planks raised from
-the keel, and laid on in pieces from twenty-five to
-fifty feet long. Gum of the bread-fruit tree was
-used instead of pitch, and smeared over to make
-them water-tight. The inside and outside were
-smoothed, and when finished the canoe looked a
-creditable craft.</p>
-
-<p>Although Edgar enjoyed the experiences he was
-going through at Tana, he was anxious to get away
-now Captain Manton had been discovered; but the
-chief always made some excuse for detaining them,
-and Wal Jessop said it would be safer to obtain his
-permission to leave. Captain Manton was also in a
-hurry to depart, and once more get to sea. Wal
-Jessop gave Meri to understand that it was necessary
-for them to leave, and the chief said he would
-consider the matter.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[272]</span></p>
-
-<p>A meeting was held under the banyan tree in the
-marum, and the three friends looked on, much
-interested in the proceedings.</p>
-
-<p>Wal Jessop gathered that there was considerable
-opposition to Captain Manton’s departure, and that
-the chief did not care to resist the will of the natives.
-When the meeting was over, Meri said his people were
-not willing that Captain Manton should go with Edgar
-and Wal.</p>
-
-<p>To this Wal Jessop made no reply, but after consulting
-Edgar and Captain Manton, it was arranged
-they should make a bolt for it at night, seize one of
-the canoes, and row back to the schooner.</p>
-
-<p>Wal Jessop went to the schooner to give instructions
-for all to be ready for sailing immediately they
-were on board.</p>
-
-<p>Towards evening, when the natives were returning
-from the plantation, there was a great row amongst
-them. They came forward shouting, dancing, and
-gesticulating, and in their midst was a poor wretched
-native, almost ready to drop with fright. Meri’s men
-had kidnapped this man, who belonged to another
-tribe, and he knew, poor wretch! the fate in store for
-him.</p>
-
-<p>‘What will they do with that poor beggar?’ said
-Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘Eat him probably,’ said Wal Jessop with a
-shudder. ‘The natives here are cannibals.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Horrible!’ said Edgar. ‘Can we do nothing to
-prevent it?’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[273]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘I am afraid not,’ said Wal. ‘I will remonstrate
-with the chief, but it will be all to no purpose. All
-we can do is to take advantage of their absence
-when the poor wretch is killed, and make for the
-schooner.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Speak to Meri,’ said Edgar. ‘We ought to stop
-it if we can.’</p>
-
-<p>Wal Jessop went to the chief, who acknowledged it
-was the custom to kill and eat prisoners of another
-tribe. Wal then tried to buy the wretch off, but the
-chief was firm. He could not interfere with the custom
-of the tribe.</p>
-
-<p>That night a large fire was lighted in the marum,
-and they could see the flames flashing in the darkness.</p>
-
-<p>They shuddered as they thought of what was
-about to take place; but as they were powerless
-to interfere they determined to steal away to the
-schooner.</p>
-
-<p>Cautiously they went down to the beach and
-secured a canoe. Captain Manton sat in the bow,
-where there was a seat for the chief, and Wal and
-Edgar paddled.</p>
-
-<p>Before they were half-way to the schooner the
-natives saw them, and, uttering loud cries, ran down
-to the beach. A large canoe was quickly launched,
-Meri took his place in the bow, and the pursuit commenced.</p>
-
-<p>‘They will overhaul us before we reach the schooner,’
-said Wal. ‘Our only plan is to frighten them. We<span class="pagenum">[274]</span>
-have our rifles. You must send a bullet or two in
-their direction, Edgar. Do not harm anyone if you
-can help it, but strike the canoe somewhere near the
-chief. It will give him a shock, and may hinder the
-pursuit.’</p>
-
-<p>The natives were fast nearing them, their canoe
-skimming along the water with wonderful swiftness.
-Meri stood up in the bow, spear in hand, and signalled
-them to stop. His dark figure was plainly seen in
-the moonlight which covered the sea with a soft,
-silvery glow.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar put down his paddle and took up his rifle,
-which he levelled at the chief.</p>
-
-<p>Meri saw him, but did not flinch. He turned to his
-men and urged them on.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar took aim and fired at the bow of the canoe.
-It was a lucky shot, for just as he fired the bow of the
-canoe rose slightly, and the bullet splintered the wood
-under Meri’s feet.</p>
-
-<p>This caused the chief to spring backwards, and in
-so doing he stumbled and fell into the water. The
-natives at once ceased rowing, and assisted him to get
-into the canoe.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar, as soon as he had fired the shot, put down
-the rifle and grasped the paddle. They gained on
-the canoe again, and reached the schooner before
-the natives. Captain Manton was assisted into the
-schooner, and Edgar and Wal quickly followed,
-taking good care to throw their rifles to the men on
-deck.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[275]</span></p>
-
-<p>Everything was ready for sailing immediately, but
-before the schooner could get under way the canoe,
-full of natives, was alongside.</p>
-
-<p>Meri was about to spring on the schooner when
-Edgar levelled his rifle at him, and Wal Jessop
-shouted:</p>
-
-<p>‘Get back, or we shall fire. We want to leave
-peaceably. Go back to your island. You have had
-many presents from us.’</p>
-
-<p>The chief said they wanted their white man back,
-and meant to have him.</p>
-
-<p>‘Then you must look out for a row,’ said Wal.</p>
-
-<p>The schooner was now under sail, and although
-there was but little breeze, she made headway. Seeing
-the schooner gliding away, the chief gave some
-order to his men, who stood up and hurled their spears
-at those on deck.</p>
-
-<p>‘Lie flat down,’ shouted Wal, who saw their intention;
-and they all fell on the deck. The spears
-whistled harmlessly over them, one or two striking the
-mast.</p>
-
-<p>‘Give me the gun; I’ll give them a dose of shot for
-that,’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>Wal Jessop handed him a gun, and Edgar fired it
-at the canoe. The shot told, and one or two of the
-natives were hit, but not severely. This had the
-desired effect, and, seeing pursuit was both hopeless
-and dangerous, the chief ordered them to paddle back
-to the island.</p>
-
-<p>The travellers were all glad to get safely away from<span class="pagenum">[276]</span>
-Tana, and decided to sail direct to Sydney, as there
-was an ample supply of food on board. Captain
-Manton seemed to recover every day at sea, and
-both Edgar and Wal Jessop did all in their power
-to cheer him and make him forget what he had
-suffered.</p>
-
-<p>The voyage back to Sydney was uneventful, and
-the little schooner entered the Heads sooner than was
-expected, and cast anchor in Watson’s Bay.</p>
-
-<p>Captain Manton, as they neared the Heads, had
-looked long at the fatal rocks where the <em>Distant Shore</em>
-went to pieces, and the tears stood in his eyes as he
-thought of that awful night.</p>
-
-<p>When they were in the smooth waters of the
-harbour, and snugly at anchor in Watson’s Bay, his
-spirits revived at the prospect of meeting his daughter
-again.</p>
-
-<p>He wondered if she would know him, for he was
-much altered, and she was a little child when last he
-saw her on that fatal night.</p>
-
-<p>‘I am sure she will recognise you,’ said Edgar;
-‘you look much more like your old self now. When
-we found you at Tana you were a different man.’</p>
-
-<p>They landed at the jetty, and walked up to Wal
-Jessop’s cottage.</p>
-
-<p>‘We shall give them a surprise,’ said Edgar.</p>
-
-<p>‘A pleasant one,’ said Wal.</p>
-
-<p>Captain Manton’s heart beat fast as he walked up
-the familiar road, and hastened to meet the daughter
-he had thought he would never see again.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[277]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘Perhaps it will be better for me to go on first,’ said
-Wal, ‘and prepare her. The sudden joy may be too
-much for Eva.’</p>
-
-<p>They agreed, and Wal walked on. He reached
-the cottage door, and knocked. His wife opened it,
-and gave a cry of joy as she saw him. After a hearty
-embrace, she said anxiously:</p>
-
-<p>‘Where is Edgar? Is he well?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Never better,’ said Wal. ‘Where’s Eva?’</p>
-
-<p>Eva heard them talking, and came running into
-the room. She rushed into Wal’s outstretched arms,
-and he kissed her tenderly.</p>
-
-<p>‘Edgar has come back,’ said Wal, ‘and someone
-else&mdash;someone you love best in all the world.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Daddy?’ said Eva excitedly.</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes,’ said Wal, looking from her to his wife;
-‘daddy has come back.’</p>
-
-<p>He heard footsteps outside, and said:</p>
-
-<p>‘And here he is, with Edgar.’</p>
-
-<p>Captain Manton came into the room. Eva looked
-at him for a few moments, evidently in doubt.</p>
-
-<p>‘Eva, my child, my little one, don’t you know me?
-Come to my arms, my pet; come to daddy again.’</p>
-
-<p>‘It is my daddy!’ said Eva, with a joyful cry, as
-she flew to him. ‘Eddy said he would come back.
-I shall never let him go away again&mdash;never, never,
-never!’</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[278]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXX">CHAPTER XXX.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">GOOD-BYE TO AUSTRALIA.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>How Captain Manton came to Sydney, and how he
-received a welcome of the heartiest description on all
-sides, is well known throughout the colony. His
-marvellous escape and subsequent adventures, and
-the strange discovery of him at Tana by Edgar
-Foster and Wal Jessop, have been related over and
-over again. His examination by the Marine Board
-was thoroughly satisfactory, and Captain Fife said
-no man could have done more than Captain Manton
-to save his ship.</p>
-
-<p>The tall, commanding form of Captain Manton,
-and the pretty child accompanying him wherever he
-went, soon became familiar figures in the parks of
-Sydney. The big, stalwart seaman was wrapped up
-in his child, and his intense love for her was shown in
-every word and action.</p>
-
-<p>They sat together for hours on the grassy slopes of
-the Botanical Gardens overlooking the harbour, and
-watched the big steamers pass to and fro, and the
-sailing vessels towed out from their snug berths to
-face the perils of an ocean voyage to some far-distant
-land. Those were halcyon days for little Eva Manton,
-and she often thought of them in after years, when
-the business of life had commenced for her in real
-earnest.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[279]</span></p>
-
-<p>Leaving Captain Manton to rejoice in his new-found
-happiness, Edgar Foster took a trip out West
-to Yanda, in order to bid good-bye to his friends
-before finally departing for England.</p>
-
-<p>They were all very pleased to see him at Yanda,
-and Ben Brody could not refrain from relating
-wonderful and improbable yarns about his experiences
-with Edgar in London.</p>
-
-<p>‘It’s grown into a mighty big place,’ said Ben.
-‘You fellows have no idea what London is like.
-Bless me if the people are not thicker on the pavements
-than sheep in a catching pen!’</p>
-
-<p>‘What’s the mutton like over there?’ asked Jim
-Lee solemnly.</p>
-
-<p>‘Nearly as juicy as it is here,’ said Ben, with a
-wink, and a smack of the lips that betokened fond
-remembrances of sundry succulent London chops.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka made quite a scene when he discovered that
-Edgar had returned. He summoned all the blacks
-in the neighbourhood, and a great corroboree took
-place in his honour.</p>
-
-<p>To Edgar’s inquiries Yacka said he had resolved
-never to return to the country of the Enooma, or to
-the cave of the White Spirit, now no longer there.</p>
-
-<p>Yacka was contented to live and die at Yanda,
-where Ben Brody and the hands were kind to him,
-and where he could idle away most of his time, and
-spend a savage life such as the blackfellow loves.</p>
-
-<p>‘Would you not like to become civilized,’ asked
-Edgar, ‘and cultivate the ways of the white man?’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[280]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘No,’ said Yacka; ‘to be civilized means rum and
-ruin. Yacka loves his freedom, and wants no civilization.’</p>
-
-<p>It was in vain Edgar endeavoured to induce Yacka
-to leave Yanda, and go to Sydney with him. The
-black was firm in his resolve never to quit Yanda
-again, and many years after Edgar learned that
-Yacka died at the station, and was much regretted,
-not only by the blacks, but also by the hands.</p>
-
-<p>Before Edgar left Sydney he was entertained by
-the cricketers of the city at a banquet, and the
-speeches made on that memorable occasion were
-treasured by him. They were not mere after-dinner
-displays, but real, genuine words spoken from the
-heart, and Edgar accepted them as such.</p>
-
-<p>Edgar made many attempts to induce Captain
-Manton to return to England with him.</p>
-
-<p>The captain, however, was firm in his determination
-not to leave Sydney.</p>
-
-<p>‘I want to end my days here in peace,’ he said to
-Edgar; ‘I have only Eva to live for, and I feel we
-shall be happy here with our good friends the Jessops.
-You will tell your father how much I thank him for
-all his kindness to me and mine.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I am sorry you have decided to remain here,’
-said Edgar; ‘we should all be so pleased to welcome
-you home.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I feel I must remain, my lad,’ said Captain
-Manton. ‘I want to be near the place where I lost
-my wife and my ship, and all the poor souls who<span class="pagenum">[281]</span>
-went down with her. God knows I did my best to
-save them, but it was not to be. I feel it to be my
-duty to stay here&mdash;a duty I owe to the dead who lie
-buried fathoms deep off this spot. At Watson’s Bay
-I hope to end my days, and I am thankful Eva has
-been restored to me to keep me from being lonely
-in my declining years.’</p>
-
-<p>Wal Jessop became more reconciled to parting
-with Edgar Foster when he heard that Captain
-Manton had decided to remain and take a small
-cottage at Watson’s Bay.</p>
-
-<p>‘I should have been lost without one of you,’ he
-said, ‘and I don’t know what the wife would have
-done without Eva. She loves that bairn as much as
-if she were her own.’</p>
-
-<p>The day that Edgar sailed for home Captain
-Manton and Eva stood on the cliffs at Watson’s
-Bay, and watched the great steamer pass slowly
-through the Heads. They waved their handkerchiefs,
-and Captain Manton, looking through his glasses,
-spied Edgar leaning over the rails of the upper-deck
-also waving a farewell.</p>
-
-<p>As he saw those two figures on the cliffs, Edgar
-Foster felt a sadness creep over him at the thought
-that he might never see them again. He watched
-them as the steamer ploughed its way south, until
-they were mere specks against the sky-line.</p>
-
-<p>As for Captain Manton and Eva, they stood there
-until the steamer had disappeared, and only a faint
-line of smoke denoted where she had sunk below<span class="pagenum">[282]</span>
-the horizon. Then the captain took Eva by the
-hand, and led her gently down the rough, steep,
-pathway to Wal Jessop’s cottage. He did not feel
-lonely, for he had his child to comfort him, and he
-knew the remainder of his life would be quiet,
-uneventful, and peaceful. He had determined to
-devote his life to his child, and to try and teach her
-how to be a brave, good woman.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Jessop had been a mother to Eva, and she
-felt it would be hard to part with her.</p>
-
-<p>‘Try and persuade Captain Manton to stay with
-us,’ she said to Wal. ‘We have room for him, and
-then I shall not lose Eva.’</p>
-
-<p>Wal Jessop broached the subject to Captain
-Manton, who was easily persuaded to fall in with
-Mrs. Jessop’s wishes.</p>
-
-<p>‘It will be better for Eva,’ he said, ‘for your wife
-has taken her mother’s place. I shall not want
-much attention. We old sailors are accustomed to
-looking after ourselves and taking things easily, eh,
-Wal?’</p>
-
-<p>‘I guess we are,’ replied Wal; ‘I’m right glad
-you have decided to stay with us, skipper. I believe
-the wife would have broken her heart if you had
-taken Eva away from her.’</p>
-
-<p>So Captain Manton and Eva remained at Wal
-Jessop’s cottage, and a happy united family they
-were.</p>
-
-<p>Leaving Captain Manton and the Jessops, we
-must now return to Edgar Foster, who, after a safe<span class="pagenum">[283]</span>
-passage home, was once more at his father’s house
-at Elm Lodge.</p>
-
-<p>He related how Captain Manton was found, and
-excited interest by displaying a number of curiosities
-he had secured in the South Seas.</p>
-
-<p>‘I wish Manton had come home with you,’ said
-his father; ‘I wanted to see him again.’</p>
-
-<p>‘After all, I think he decided rightly to remain
-in Sydney,’ said Edgar. ‘Eva was much attached
-to Mrs. Jessop, and Wal will be a good companion
-for the captain.’</p>
-
-<p>Naturally, Edgar had not been home long before
-he paid a visit to the Wyldes, and he found Muriel
-looking more charming than ever. After several
-years of travel, Edgar felt it was high time he settled
-down and devoted himself to business seriously.
-He knew his father was moderately well off, but he
-was determined to get his own living, and not rely
-upon him. He did not know that Mrs. Wylde was
-a wealthy woman, or he would perhaps have felt
-some diffidence in proposing to Muriel.</p>
-
-<p>Will Brown and Doris Foster were married soon
-after Edgar’s return, and resided in a comfortable
-house at Putney.</p>
-
-<p>When Edgar had been at home some time, the
-secretary of the M&mdash;&mdash; Cricket Club died, and
-Robert Foster thought it would be a good place for
-his son. The salary was excellent, and the work
-such as Edgar liked, and knew a good deal about.</p>
-
-<p>At a meeting of the club Edgar’s name came up,<span class="pagenum">[284]</span>
-and the committee decided in his favour, at the same
-time suggesting that he should play when required.
-This suited Edgar’s plans admirably, and it was
-somewhat of a novelty to see the secretary of such
-a club taking a prominent position in the cricket-field.</p>
-
-<p>Feeling his position secure, and having now an
-ample income for his wants, Edgar asked Muriel
-Wylde to marry him at an early date, and she consented.
-The wedding took place at Twickenham
-Church, and never had the sun shone on a prettier
-bride, or a more manly-looking bridegroom.</p>
-
-<p>Prosperity dogged Edgar’s footsteps, for he invested
-a considerable sum in mines in West Australia,
-and being well advised, his speculation proved successful.
-As the years rolled on he became a devoted
-husband and father, and he taught his sons to be
-honest and manly, and to earn for themselves a good
-name as lads of mettle.</p>
-
-<p>In the cricket-field Edgar constantly distinguished
-himself, and many a century was recorded to his
-credit. Through his management the club of which
-he was secretary advanced by leaps and bounds,
-until financially it stood far above the average run
-of clubs, and in the cricket-field had twice held the
-honours at the close of the season.</p>
-
-<p>News from Sydney came frequently, and kept
-Edgar in touch with the world over the water, for
-which he had a great affection.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[285]</span></p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>Many years after Edgar Foster left Sydney for the
-last time an old man and a lovely girl were sitting on
-the cliffs at Watson’s Bay. Below them the vast
-expanse of sea lay calm and still. Hardly a ripple
-stirred the placid surface of the water, as it gently
-lapped over the smooth worn slabs of rock at the
-base of the cliffs. A faint breeze fanned the faces of
-the old man and the beautiful girl, and waved his
-white beard gently, and caressingly lingered amidst
-her silken hair. It was easy to see they were father
-and daughter, for she resembled him very much.</p>
-
-<p>They both looked out to sea, and watched the
-boats sailing slowly in the calm water. Scores of
-yachts and small boats had ventured outside the
-Heads on this calm day.</p>
-
-<p>It was Sunday, and there were many people from
-Sydney enjoying the cool breeze on the cliffs.
-Several of them looked at the gray-bearded man
-and his lovely daughter, and there was respect in
-their glances, for they knew the history of this inseparable
-pair.</p>
-
-<p>Eva Manton had developed into a lovely girl.
-The promise of childhood had been fulfilled in
-womanhood&mdash;for woman she was, although her father
-always called her ‘my little girl.’</p>
-
-<p>Captain Manton was ageing rapidly, but still looked
-to have many years of life before him. With sturdy
-Wal Jessop and his wife he passed life comfortably,
-and lived for his daughter, who amply repaid the
-affection he bestowed upon her.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[286]</span></p>
-
-<p>Eva Manton had her admirers as other girls have,
-but she kept them at arm’s length. She meant to
-be her father’s companion while he lived, and
-thought it no sacrifice upon her part to remain with
-him.</p>
-
-<p>Now she could understand all about that terrible
-wreck, and how Wal Jessop’s sturdy arms had rescued
-Edgar Foster and herself from the rocks below
-where they stood.</p>
-
-<p>She often sat there looking down into the depths,
-and thought how Edgar Foster had at the risk of
-his own life saved hers. Then she would think of
-the peril her father had passed through, and of his
-wonderful rescue and discovery on the island by
-Wal Jessop and Edgar. She felt it was good to be
-alive after such trials and sufferings, and she was
-thankful for her existence.</p>
-
-<p>‘A letter from Edgar,’ said Wal Jessop one morning
-as they all sat in the cottage.</p>
-
-<p>This was an important event, and one always
-eagerly looked forward to. Edgar’s letters gave
-them all pleasure, they were so bright and cheery,
-and full of good news and good wishes.</p>
-
-<p>Wal Jessop read it, and, as usual, had to repeat the
-operation.</p>
-
-<p>‘That’s what I call a manly letter,’ said Captain
-Manton.</p>
-
-<p>‘He was always a straight goer,’ said Wal Jessop.
-‘As a lad he was a manly youngster.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[287]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘He was brave,’ said Eva, ‘and full of courage.
-He risked his life for mine.’</p>
-
-<p>‘And for that I am ever grateful,’ said her father.</p>
-
-<p>‘I wish him well,’ said Wal, ‘for he deserves to be
-happy. I always thought him a lad of mettle.’</p>
-
-
-<p class="center p2 smallfont">BILLING AND SONS, PRINTERS, GUILDFORD.</p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<hr class="tb x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<div class="transnote">
-<h2 style="margin-top: 0em">Transcriber’s Note:</h2>
-
-<p>This book was published in 1897.</p>
-
-<p>Some cricketers in the book have the same names as well-known
-cricketers of the time period.</p>
-
-<p>The original hard copy version of this book has advertisements at
-the end, some of which are now illegible due to wear, and these
-advertisements are not included in this version.</p>
-
-<p>Punctuation has been made consistent.</p>
-
-<p>Variations in spelling and hyphenation were retained as they appear in
-the original publication, except that obvious typographical errors
-have been corrected.</p>
-
-<p>The following change was made:</p>
-
-<p><a id="BRef_187" href="#Ref_187">p. 187</a>: MacDonald changed to MacDonnell (the MacDonnell Ranges)</p>
-
-</div></div>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<hr class="pgx" />
-<p>***END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A LAD OF METTLE***</p>
-<p>******* This file should be named 66030-h.htm or 66030-h.zip *******</p>
-<p>This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:<br />
-<a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/dirs/6/6/0/3/66030">http://www.gutenberg.org/6/6/0/3/66030</a></p>
-<p>
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.</p>
-
-<p>Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-</p>
-
-<h2 class="pgx" title="">START: FULL LICENSE<br />
-<br />
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE<br />
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</h2>
-
-<p>To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.</p>
-
-<h3 class="pgx" title="">Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works</h3>
-
-<p>1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.</p>
-
-<p>1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.</p>
-
-<p>1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.</p>
-
-<p>1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.</p>
-
-<p>1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:</p>
-
-<p>1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:</p>
-
-<blockquote><p>This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United
- States and most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost
- no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use
- it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with
- this eBook or online
- at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
- are not located in the United States, you'll have to check the laws
- of the country where you are located before using this
- ebook.</p></blockquote>
-
-<p>1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.</p>
-
-<p>1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.</p>
-
-<p>1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.</p>
-
-<p>1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.</p>
-
-<p>1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.</p>
-
-<p>1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.</p>
-
-<p>1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that</p>
-
-<ul>
-<li>You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."</li>
-
-<li>You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.</li>
-
-<li>You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.</li>
-
-<li>You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.</li>
-</ul>
-
-<p>1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.</p>
-
-<p>1.F.</p>
-
-<p>1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.</p>
-
-<p>1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.</p>
-
-<p>1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.</p>
-
-<p>1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.</p>
-
-<p>1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.</p>
-
-<p>1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.</p>
-
-<h3 class="pgx" title="">Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm</h3>
-
-<p>Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.</p>
-
-<p>Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org.</p>
-
-<h3 class="pgx" title="">Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation</h3>
-
-<p>The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.</p>
-
-<p>The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact</p>
-
-<p>For additional contact information:</p>
-
-<p> Dr. Gregory B. Newby<br />
- Chief Executive and Director<br />
- gbnewby@pglaf.org</p>
-
-<h3 class="pgx" title="">Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation</h3>
-
-<p>Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.</p>
-
-<p>The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/donate">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>.</p>
-
-<p>While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.</p>
-
-<p>International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.</p>
-
-<p>Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate</p>
-
-<h3 class="pgx" title="">Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.</h3>
-
-<p>Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.</p>
-
-<p>Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.</p>
-
-<p>Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org</p>
-
-<p>This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.</p>
-
-</body>
-</html>
-
diff --git a/old/66030-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/66030-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 42a561d..0000000
--- a/old/66030-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ